^ 2^0. »^^ S^ ^^ ti^^ ®i?wl0gfr^l ^ "^iS %y ^ PRINCETON, N. J. ^ Division. Section... aJ ■■H The Holy Spirits Divine Ferfon: OR, THE DOCTRINE OF HIS GODHEAD Reprefented, As Evident and ImportIaniI'^^ In feveral PRACTICAL SERMONS. On I COR, xii. ii. CF m k %i\ By JOHN GVTSE.ap, Minifter of the Gofpel. ' ; LONDON: Printed for John Clark, at the Bible and Crown m the Poultrey, near Cheap fide. M^DCQXXI. V "% s. Ill THE PREFACE, THE Perfonality afid Operations of the BLESSED SPIRIT, have fre- quently been in f fled on with goodSuc cefs^to the Edification of the Church. Two or Three valuable Performances I have likemje feen relating to his Divinity : But as it appears to nie^ that there is confiderable room to add to them 5 /. xht Spiritual Gifts, which the Apoftle exprefsly tells us are the Subject of this Chapter, ver. i. Now if the Holy Ghoft is here fpoken of alone, as the God who is the Author of *em, they are Gifts, as he freely beftows 'em, and may well be de- nominated Spiritual from their immediate Author whofe perfonal Name is the Spirit. They are Adminiftrations as he deals 'em out in an agreed OEcononiy, according to the Gofpel, which is called the MinijlratiGnofthe Spirky and with refped: to which he is cail'd 3^ ^^^ ^' ■\ the LORD the Spirit; And they are 0/--- t';cyp;« rations, as he works 'em by his own proper T^•5•;^' Efficiency as God. And fo, tho' both they7«f- and their Author bear different Names, yet they are all the Mamfejlation of the Spirit^ wjio is alfo Lord and God. Or if the Father, Son, and Holy Ghoft are here fpoken of, as three Perfons, and yet edentially one God, who is the Author of thefe Gifts, then ac- cording to the Chriftian OEconomy, they are Generations of God the Father through Jefus Chrift, who as Mediator adminiflers B 3 thenj (O them by the Holy Ghoft; and the Holy Ghoil: gives them to us as the next imme- diate Worker of them in us : And fo the one Energy of the Godhead is put forth by all the Divine Perfonsto produce them. In the next Verfe we have the End for which God vouchfafes his various Gifts, and that is, that every one who has 'em might profit others by 'em. They are given not for the private Ufe of the Perfons who have 'em, much lefs for them or their Partifans to boaft of, or to make 'em occafions of Strife and Envy to the troubling and dividing of f Cor. the Church : But the Manifeftation of the Sprit li. 7. ts given to every one, or to each one that has it, to profit others zvithalL As a Proof of this, the Apoftle in the three following Verfes ranks the Gifts of the Spirit into feveral forts, and fpeaks of 'em in fuch a manner as fhews that He is the Author of 'em all, and V, 8, 9, defigns 'em for that purpoie. For to one is ic. given by the Spirit the Word of pf/ifdom ; to ano- ther the pVord of Knowledge by the fame Spirit : To another Faith by the fame Spirit : To another the Gifts of Healing by the fame Spirit : To ano- ther the luurking of Miracles y to another Prophe- fy, to another the difcerning of Spirits, to another divers kinds of Tongties, to another the Inter- pretation of Tongues. And then in our Text the Apoffle fums up all together, and afferts that concerning the whole, which he had been diilincily declaring concerning each particular apart. But all thefe worketh that one and the J elf -fame Spirit, dividing to every Man ftverally as he will. In thefe Words we have I. An Afription of great and god-like Works to the Holy Ghofi, ai the Cod who performs \m. Th4 (7) The Gifts beftow'd are indeed many and various, and may be calTd by many Names, as may the Author of them ; But all thefe ijjorketh4hat one and the felf^fame Spirit : they have all but one immediate efficient Caufe, v/hich is the Holy Ghoil:. Jhat the Holy Ghoft is m;;ant by tiie Spirit in our Text, is fufficiently plain from the whole current m the foregoing Context, where this Spirit is exprefsly called the Spirit of God, and the Holy GhoRy V. 3. and is all along down to our Text fpoken of as an ading Perfon. He is one fingle Spirit^ in oppofition to the M«/- titude of his Giks^ and to all other Spirits as the Authors of 'em. And he is the felf-fame unchangeable Spirit, in oppofition to the Variety or Diverfity of thofe Gifts. He v^crk- eth 'em all, not as an inilrumental or fubor- dinate Caufe, but as the principal Efficient of 'em. For the Apoille here fpeaks of the fame manner of Operarion as he fpoke of, and ufeth the fame emphatick Word to de- note it, as he ufed when he call'd it the O- peration of God, "j. 6. There he afcribes all thefe Gifts to the Energy o^ the fame Godj * who ivorketh them all in ally i. e. ill all that ^erfp>% have 'em. And here he afcribes them all to the fame Energy of the fame Spirit, ivho t worketh them ally dividing them to every M^f^ -fiy^oy^. that has them. And this either fhews (ac- cording to one of the Interpretations that has been given of the foregoing Context} that the Energy of the Spirit herein, is his Energy as God. Or (according to the o- ther) that God, viz>y the Father, and this Spirit exert one and the fame Energy, and fo are in Nature and Operation one and the ftme God. Hence '' ' B 4 5. We ( 8 ) 2.. We have the God-like manner in which this Spirit ivorky. Dividing to every Man f eve ^ rally c^ he vjill. Ail the Diver fitiesoi GiftSy Admimflrations, and Operations -i which were afcrib'd in the preceding Verfcs to the fame Spirit, the fame Lord, and the fame God, are diver [ifjd by this one and the felF-fame Spi- ritf who makes ail that Difrerencc' that is m the forts oF thole Gifts^ and in the Diftri- butions of 'em ieverally. For it feems very obfervable, that the Word here ufed for dividing, hath a peculiar reference to thofe Diverjities before mention'd, and is the ^el>c6/p«y. * Particle from which the f Noun, there t c?>^/pe three times repeatedj is deriv'd. So- that it : ^^^^' is as ii the Apoilie fliould. fay, v Whatever Di- verjuies there are of Gifts from the fame Spi- rit, or of Adminiflrations from the fame Lordy or of Operations ircm the fame God, one and the fe If- fa?ne Spirit is the Divider or Diflri- buter of 'em all ; either as that Lord and God before mention'd ; or (according to the other Explication that has been given) as he adls undividedly with the Father and Son, and they ad together with and by him. Sup- pofing that by God and. Lord before men- tioned, we ftould underftand the Father and Son; yet, to fecure the Spirit's Equality in Power and Operation with them, the ac- count of thtfe V/orks begins and ends with him as the Giver and VVorker of 'em all ; and whereas Thy are mention'd but once. He is mention'd feven tim^s as the acting Per- fon herein. But if we confider God and Lord as Denominations of the Holy G hod (according to the other Suppofiiion) th^ii Be is clearly Crtli'd God and Lord as well as the (9) the Spirit J that we may know what fort of Agent he is in thofe Operations. So char, which ever way we take it, 'tis jplain his ading herein is the Sovereign and Almighty Acting of God himfelf. Hence 'tis added, He divides to every Man feverally. All and each of thefe excellent Gifts are his Dircribiitions ; and no Man had any of 'em but from Hm. Yea, and he doth this like the fovereign God, cvs he vnlt. All his dividings of 'em are ads of his own Pieafure and Authority, as God ; tho, ac- cording to a voluntary Difpenfation, fuitable to the Order of his Subfiftence, he performs 'em in fiich a manner that the Godhead, or the other Perfons of it, perform 'em by him. On this account, God is faid to bear his Ser- vants zvitnefs, both with Signs and PVonderSy and with divers fldiracks and Gifts, or * Di- Htb. 2, ftributicns, of the Holy Ghofi according to his 4- . own WilL 'Tis doubtful whether hts_ civn'^ ^;:^^'^' Will here refers to God, mention'd in the former part of the Verfe, or to the Holy Ghofi, mention'd in the next preceding words : The Grammar of the Sentence will admit of either. It 'tis refer'd to the Holy Ghofl, as fccws mod natural, becaufe he is the nearefl Antecedent, \is as full a Teftimony as can be to his div^ine Sovereignty in thefe Diftributions, and well agrees with what is J'did concernin.<^ it in our Text, And if 'tis refer'd to God, the fame Sovereignty that i^ here afcrib'd to God, il in our Text afcrib'd to the Holy Ghvft in the lame fort of Diftri- butions, xAdca fliews that his Sovereignty, and the Sovereignty of God therein:, is all i)m Sovereignty. This ( 10 ) This one and the felf-fame Spirit is Lord of all his Gifts and Operations; none can oblige him to them^ or controul him in them. He herein ads like the great Dan. 4. y.bova/j, who dcth according to his Will in the ^^' Army of Heaveuy and among the Inhabitants of the Earth: and none can flay his handy or fay unto him, what do ft thou ? The fame fovereign fejf-fufficient way of ading is afcrib'd to the Ifa. 4o« Spirit ; For who hath direBed the Spirit of the 13. Ij)rdy or being his Counfellor, hm taught him ? He don't behave it in his Operations like a dependent Being, that waits for Orders be- fore he ads ; but he manageth according to the Counfel of his own Will He diflributes or with-holds his Gifts, when and where, and to or from whom he pleafes, and in what manner and to what Degrees feems beft in his fight. His own Will, under the unerring Condud of his own infinite Wifdom, Good- nefs, and Rfghteoufnefs, is his Rule of ad- ing towards us : He is Debtor to none, and is obligd by none, and makes a Difference between fome and others, not according to their Deferts, but according to his own free .and fovereign Pleafure. For -who maketh thee to differ from another} And what hafi thou that thou did ft not receive ? Now if thou didft receive it, why do fl thou glory, 05 if tbvu hadft not received it ? From the Words thus ex- plained, we may juftly Form this Obferva- tion to be fpoken to : 7'hat the Holy Spirit u the Sovereign and Al- mighty God, Til at the Father is God, none who bear the Chriftian Name pretend to deny. And that (It) that the Son in his original Nature is efTen- tialiy the fame only true God with the Fa- ther, I have fome time ago, 1 hope, fuffici- ently piov'd. And as we who believe thus far, do generally profcfs to believe that the Holy Ghofl is another divine Perfon in the fame undivided Godhead, we ought to be concerned for his Honour as much as for the Father's and Son's. And we need to have our Faith direded and fettled in this Point, efpecially in an Age, wherein He and his Operations are unworthily treated by fome, and profanely derided by others. That therefore the Holy Ghofl is one God with the Fauber and Son, or thai , he together with them is the ^Soveveign and Almighty God:, i$ what I now intend, by his AfliflancCj to confider in the moft plain and pradical man- ner I can to your Advantage. In the Ma- nagement of this Defign, I fhall attempt three Things, with their Application, as I did in my former Difcourfes on Chrift's God- head. I. Explain the DoSliine in feveral FkoposI" I. TIONS. II. Confirm it, II- III. Shew the Importance {which ivill he alfo III. to Jhew the Ufefulnefs) of it. I. I fliall endeavour to explain the DoElriney I, viz. 'That the Holy Spirit is the Sovereign and Almighty God. By explaining the Doctrine, I don*t mean an Explanation of the Manner of the Pro- eeiTion and Subfiftence of the Holy Ghoft as a difiind Perfon in the adorable God- Ite^d. This is generally allow'd on all hands (13) hands to be inexplicable. 'Tis only the Rcr altiy and Neceffity of .hefe things that we are concerned about, or can be hds^yd in, ac- cording to the Scripture. Therefore all the Explication I aim at, is only by orderly fteps to reprefent witiv Evidence what I take to be proper to fettle our Thoughts about the Per/on and Deity of the Holy Ghoil according to my meaning in the Dodrine, and to clear our way to a more enlarged Proof of it. And this i ihall humbly elTay in the following Propositions. > ' Prop.!, Prop. I. T^he Holy Spirit is a Perfvn,- Gifts and Graces are not the Spirit of God, but are diflingui/h'd from him as Effeds from their Caufe. The Apoflle, fpeaking of fpiritual Gifts in our Context, reprelcnts the Holy Ghoft as the Giver and IVorkcr of them. And therefore, tho he is likewife a Gift, as Chrift alfo is, who is generally allow'd to be a Perfon ; yet the Spirit himfelf can't be the Gifts which he is the Author of :In like manner the Apoftle giving a fummary ac- count of Gracesy fpeaks of them as the Frmts of the Spirit^ and fo diflinguifiierh them from the Spirit himfelf. The Fruit of the Gal. 5. Spirit is Love, Joy, Peace, 8cc. And the Fruit J2. oftke Spirit is in all Goodn'efs, Righteoufnefs:, * ^1^^'^' 9* and Truth. Ordinary Gifts and Graces re- fide as Qoalities in us, and on that account are call'd ours ; but the Holy Ghoft is the Agent in us who produceth thefe Qualities : He is a Being intirely diilind from us, and is not call'd our Spirit nor can be fp call'd, in any other fenfe than that in which God is call'd our God. We often read of our Lightj Knowledge, Faith, Hope, Love, (13) &c, but never otir Sprity meaning the Holy Ghoft. Nor is the Holy Ghoft barely the Virtue and Power of God exerting it (df in di- vine Operations, Admitting that^ he is cali'd the Poiver of the Bzghcju when tlie An- gel fliid to the Virgin, The Holy Ghoft pallU\keJ. come upon thee^ and the Power of the Highefi^^' fiall Gverjhadow thee ; this is no Proof againft his being a Peribn. For Chn'fl is truly cali'd i Cor. i. the Wifdom and Power of God ; and *^^^^^^t\s8 ilf.3^^^ "was blafphemoufly cali'd the gyeat ^^^ Power of Gcd ; and yet undoubtedly they were- both Perfons. The Holy Ghcfl's coming upon the Virgin, is cali'd the Power of the Higheft over-fliadowing her, not to denote that the Power of the Higheft is his peculiar perfonal Charader, whereby he is diftinguifli'd from the other Perfons m the Godhead ; for that was before exprefs'd by his being cali'd the Hdy Ghofl, But this additional Charader denotes the efTential Property of his Being, and the Principle of his Operation, that it is no other than the infinite Power of God, or that the Power he put forth in forming the human Nature of Chriftj is the Power of the Higheft himfelf. Accordingly this Power of God by which the Holy Ghoft ads, is at other times cali'd the Power of the Holy Ghoft himfelf> which plainly diftinguifheth him in his Perfonality from his Power, as his eflential Attribute. Thus the Apoftle fpeaksof ^teW/>zg 7« -^(^/^jRoir.TS. through the PozDer of the Holy Ghoji, and of 15, 19. inighty Signs and JVonders ly the Pozver of the Spirit of Gcd, and Jefm returned ia the Powrr ^"^^ 4- of the Spirit into Galilee. Now to fuppcfe*^' that the Holy Ghoft is only the Power of the Higheft, Ci4) HIghefl, is according to thefe Texts to fay, that all the things there mention'd, were done by the Power of the Power of the Higheft, which is to force a very harlh and uncouth Interpretation upon them. He therefore muft needs be a Perfon who puts forth this Power. By a Ptrfon I mean a^z underftanding volun- tary Agent. This is what we ufually appre- hend by the word Per foriy and this the Scrip- ture rtprefents the Holy Ghoft to be. What grounds we have to ufe this Term in this Cafcr and how his being a Perfon may be conceived of:, coniifiently with his being One in Nature or Elfence with the Father and Son, may be more properly confider'd when we come to fpeak of that Onmefs. I am now only to fhew that he is an intelligent vo- hmtary Agent y which is the Idea intended by this Word. Therefore I. He has an Under fl-anding., and fo is an intelligent Agent. Thus the Apoille clearly 1 Cor. 2,reprefents him : T'he Spirit fearchetk all 'ThingSy ic, ir, yea the deep Things of God. For what Man ^^' knoweth the "Things of a Man, five the Spirit of Man which is in him ? Even fo the Things of God knoweth no Man^ hut the Spirit of God. Now we have receivedy not the Spirit of the JVorldy hut the Spirit which is of God, that we might knoiv the Things that are freely given to m of God. He fearches and knows divine Things, and reveals as much of them as is known to others, as the Spirit of a Man knows human Things, and difcovers them to others. He is often faid in an aBive manner to reveal the Things of God, to teach, infiruB, and guide us, and to kad m into all Truths and he who dLCt[\(^\y doth this, muft ( 15 ) muft be himfelf an intelligent Perfon, know- ing what he fays, and how to convey it to others. Hence the Apoflle fpeaks of the Rom. 8. Mind of the Spirit^ meaning the Holy Ghoft,i7« which is a Form of Speech proper unto Perfon s. 2. He has a W'llh and fo is a voluntary A- gent. This our Text exprefsly afcribes to him, as to one that divideth to every Manfe- veraUy oi he IV ILL. 'Tis not by Force or Conftraint on one hand, nor by NecelTity of Nature on the other, that he diftnbute* his Gifts, but according to the Freedom of his own Will, as was fhewn in the Explication of the Words. Accordingly many Paflages relating to his Work, inpurfuance of Chrifts Exaltation, are properly rendered, He Wtll, as he WILL reprove the World of Sin; A^Joh. i6. WIL L lead you mo all Jruthy and he M^ILL% ^5* Jhew you 'Things to come. And many others which are rendered he {hally might as well be render'd/j^* will, and are to be underftood as denoting Ads of his Will, as well as cer- tain Futurities and matters of Fromife. Thus the like Paffages are to be underftood when they refped the Adings of the Father and Son, as when Chrift fays. Now is the Son of Job, 13, Man glorified, God SHALL alfo glorify jt, jz. him in himfelf, and SHALL firamvay glorify^^y^^* him : And he S HA L L give you another Com- forter : and / SHALL Jhew you plainly of the Father, None can doubt but thefe ExpreiHons lignify the Ads of their Will ; and why fhould not the fame Forms of Speech, when ufed (as they commonly are in the fame Context) with refped to the Spirit, fignify the fame in him ? His having an Underfianding and Will are plainly intima- ted ted together, when the Apo files y Elders^ and Brethveny fpeaking of the Decrees' ^t Jerufa- A^s n, /^;^2^ {2iid, Itfeemedgood to the Holy Ghofi, and ^^» 2.8. .^^^^ 'j^l^g PIqI^, Qj^Q^j. ^3 there fpoken of as an unJerftanding voluntary Agent, as much as the Members of that Adembly them- felves. Aftd if hs feeming good to them de- notes that they were Perlons, its feeimvg good to Him muft denote thift He is a Perfon too, whofe judgment and Will were the Rule of their's in thofe critical Determinations. Hence. 3 . He aBs in a perfonal manner ^ like one who ha£ an Under Banding and Will, Sometimes he is faid to co^ne to the T>ikvp\tSy in oppo- iition to ChriiVs perfonal departing from Job. 1 6. them. If 1 g^ ^o^ away the Comforter will 7i 8. ^ot come to you ; hut if I depart I will fend him to you: and when 'he is come,, he will reprove the World of Siuy . and of Right eotifnefsy and of Judg7nent. At other times. He is faid to c^- i4« teac)'} ^, and bring I'hings to our Rei'nembrance. ^J\ Q At other times to fpeak unto us. T'he Spirit ^^f ' SAID to Philipy go near y and join thy felf to &I2. i.thls Chariot. And as the Prophets in the 2> 4> ' Church at Antioch^ minifrrcd to the Lord and ■ fafledy the Holy G ho ft SAID, feparate me Bar- nabas and Saul for the zuerk whereunto I have called them:, and they were fsnt forth by the Holy Ghoft, What manner of fpeaking and con- dua can affure us that any one ads as a Per- fon, if this don't aifure us that the Ho!/ Ghoft ads as a Perfon ? His furnifhing the OfFicers of the Church with Gifts, which are fpoken of at large in our Context as things diftind from himfclf, and freely di- Rom. 8. fpenfed by himfelf i his bearing Wtnefs with 1(5, z6.' Believer's Spirits, that they are the Children of God s C»7) CeJ ; and his helping their Infirmities y and ?naking Interceffion for them ; together with multitudes of other Pailapes of the like Per- fonal Strain, dearly Ipeak the fame Lan- guage. I might further urge his Affearances in vifible Reprefentationsj tho' his own Na- tute is invifible. Particularly at Chrift's Baptifm, The Holy Ghofl defccnded in a bodily^^^^ 5- Shape like a Dove upon him. This dcfcending*^' like a Dove, may probably refped the Man- ner of his defcenJing, rather than the Form in , which he defcended : A Dove was reckon'd an Emblem of the Holy Ghoft by the anti- ent Jewsy and therefore (as-fome have ob- ferved) in alliifion to that it is faid, the Holy Ghoft defcended in a bodily Shape y gently hovering over Chrift, and lighting en himy CMatt. 3. 16.) juft as a Dove ufeth to do when itlighteth upon any thing. According- ly this bodily Shape might be fome Form of a bright Cloud that overjiadowed ChriCl, as it did when the Words fpoken from Heaven together with this Appearance, were re- peated in his Transfiguration', This Cloud isf^^**'^^' generally fuppofed to have been like the She- chinah^ in which the Jehovah of Israel uled to appear to them of old. With refped to that, as it appeared to Mofes, it is faid, The Lord defcended in the Cloud; and with refped to this Appearance of the Spirit, 'tis faid, The Holy Ghofl defcended in a bodily or vifibleE^^^-H' Shape. And by the way, fuppofing that thcfe^'^.^^ u. Appearances were alike, they carry a {lrong25. ' Intimation that the Spirit who defcended m this luminous Body upon Chrilf, is (if not the fame Perfon, yet) elfentially that Jcho" ^vah who defcended in a Cloud of Glory of C old; C iS) old ; becaufe that manner of Appearance was peculiar to the only Jehovah as the Sym- bol of his own Prefence. But to return, this Shape or Form^ in which the Holy Ghoft appeared, whatever it was, was no more the Efience of the Holy Ghoft, than that Shechinah was the Efience of Jehovah, who defcended in it. But as none doubt, but he who made that Appearance in the Shechmah was a Perfon ; fo there is no reafon to doubt, but the Holy Ghoft, who made this Appear- ance in a corporeal Shape at Chritt's Bap- tifm, is a Perfon too. The Holy Ghoft likewife appeared to the Difciples on the Day of Pentecoft in the Form, of Cloven hdisz^l.'jtcnguesy like* as of Fire, and it fate tipon each of them. The Phrafe here ufed is different from that, which expreffes the Holy Ghoft's defending like a Dove, in the PafTage before ^ ftffl-ei recited : There it is like or ^' as a Dove, and 'TTfiTi^v^o 'tis likev/ife expreHed by the Evaiigelifts tcoV« Matthew and Mark ; but here 'tis \ like as ^yfoi' Q p p-y^ . ^hich difference in the Phrafe fome Criticks tell us, imports, that this Ap- pearance was in the Form of Fire ; and that that was not in the Form of a Dove. By this Appearance of cloven Tongues, the Holy Ghoft reprefented vifibly "juithout, what was the Nature of thofe Gifts, which he then filled them with by his Operation upon them •within, as the next words intimate. And they ver^ 4. "^^^^ ^^^ j'7// is vexed, and grieved. r 19 ) grieved. Thefe Expreffions concerning Him are familiarly known. And Ananun was ^^^ 5- faid to lye to the Holy Gbofty which is called a ^» ^' tempting the Spirit of the Lord, becaufe he thereby made a diftruftful Tryal of his Wis- dom to difcover the Fraud, when he aded the Cheat in pretending that the part of the Price of his Pofle/fion, which he laid at the Apoflie's Feet, was the whole for which he fold it ; but there can be no tolerable Senfe in faying, that he attempted to dtc^iv^ the Holy Ghoft, or told a Lye to him, i^ the Holy Ghofl is not a Perfon. To fuppofe that all thefe things are fpoken of and ap- ply *d to fomething that is not a Perfon, but a bare Virtue, Power, or Quality, is to com- mit the mod: manifell: Violence upon thofe many Texts which thus fpeak of Hirny and on the plain fcope of the Contexts, where feveral of them are found. Yea, his very Name, viz. the Spirit^ fuppoiingit to be ufed in a proper Senfe, muft needs import him to be a Perfon. For where there is a proper Spirit, there is a proper Perfon, or free in- telligent Agent. And therefore to fuppofe that He is not fuch an one, is likewife to fuppofe that he is not properly a Spirit, not- withftanding the Frequency and Eminency with which the Scripture giv^s him that Title. But Chrift plainly intimates, that he is pro- perly both a Spirit and a Perfon, v/hen he calls him the Spirit of 'truth, and at the fame time fpeaks of him by a ijiafculine Pronoun, Job. 1 6. 13, 14. And his being call'd the Comforter, or the Paraclete, befpeaks fuch a Charafter, and fuch Ads, as can belong to rone but a Perfon. C 2 Se- ( 20 ) Several of the Things I have but briefly hinted, are fuch as can't without the greateft abfurdity, be apply'd to any but a Perfon : And tho' fometimes the Scripture may ap- ply others of them to that which is no Per- fon; yet, either the Nature of the Things themfelvesj or fome other Places fhew, that in fuch cafes they can be only fpoken in a figurative Senfe, and fo we are eafily fecur'd from miftakcs with refped to them. But thefe Things are conilantly apply'd to the Holy Ghoft, without any Intimations from the Nature of the Spirit, or from Scripture- Interpretation, that they ought to be under- ftood as figurative Expreffions, fo that we have no reafon to take them otherwife than in a proper Senfe, to denote his Perfonality, And furely ii they were not indeed fo to be underfrood, we fhould have been fome- where clearly informed of it, that we might not be unavoidably led into fuch fatal Mi- ftakes, as we are by thofe numerous Paffages of a Perfonal Strain, if he really is not a Perfon. But this is fo far from being the Cafe, that on the other hand when any thing is faid concerning the Spirit, which looks inconfiflent with his being a Perfon, a Me- taphor ufually fbews it felf fo obvioufly, that 'tis next to impoflible not to difcern it. Hence this Evidence of his Perfonality is fo ftrong, that many of the moft flift' Oppofers of bis Deity have been forced to own him to be a Perfon, as feveral of the moft confiderable among them do at this day. For this rea- fon I have CDutented my {t\^ with the briefer Hints upon this Point ; as alfo becaufe mofl of the Proofs I am to give of his Deity will be a farther Confirmation of it. And in- deed ( «I ) deed I am prone to think, that a bare read- ing of our Text and Context, and feveral other Paflages of Scripture which fpeak of Him, are fufEcient to fatisfy an unprejtidi- ced attentive Mind, that He is ufually fpoken of under Perfonal Characters, Hence, Prop. 2. He is a diftinB Perfon from the^top.z, Fatbsr and Son. The Spirit, confider'd a6 2, Perfon, is not the Father, as the Father ; nor the S.on, a^ the Son. Or, the Perfon of the Spirit, is not the P.rfon of the Father or Son. In what- ever Senfe thefe three are ene^ they are difiinH Perfons from each other. The Spirit's Rela- tionto the Father and Son, and his proceeding and corning from them, and being Jem by them, fufficiently prove this. Hence they are very often mention'd together in fuch a juanner as (hews, that the Holy GhoR is fpo- Jken of as a Perfon, as much as the Father and Son, and is as fuch diftinguifh*d from them. Thus for Example, Chrifl fays, I will Joh, 14. • pray the Father^ and he jhall give you another "^^^ I7> Comforter y that he may abide zvith you for every ' even th$ Spirit of Truth. But the Co/nforter, which is the Holy Ghof^y whom the Father will fend in my Name, he jhall teach you all things j &x. And when Hey the Spirit of Truth is come y Hec\\2iV>,\6. xu ill guide you into all Truth — All things thati^^iU the Father hath are mine : therefore faid /, that He jhall take of miney and jlew it unto you. And the Apoftle fpeaks of the Grace of the zCor^il. Lord J if m Chrifly and the Love of Gody viz, M* the Father, and the Comjnunion of the Holy Ghofl. And he tells us , that thro him v ^^ j, (Chrift) we both (Jews and Gentiles) have jg, ' (i]fi an accefs by one Spirit to the Father. Not C 3 to :^ (22) to* mention many other Texts that might be j^^^^^g quoted, I (liail only add Chrifl's CommliTion ip. * * to Baptize in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy GhojL Nothing can be plainer to me, than that in thefe, and fuch like Places, the Holy GhoR is repre- fented as one, who has a Subfiitence diilind from the Father and Son. Hence, Prop. 3. Prop. 3. His diftinB , Suhfftence from the Father and Son is by an eternal necefjary fro^ eeeding in an inconceivable manner from them. Let us confider this Proportion by Parts. I. 'The Holy G heft's diftiriEl Subjtftence is by his proceeding in an inconceivable , manner from the Father and Son. The manner of his proceeding can t but be incomptehenfible to us, becaufc 'tis a Proceeding in an incomprehenfible Nature ; and wherein it differs from the eternal Ge- neration of the Son, any farther than as One is only from the Father, and the other from the Father and Son, is impclTible for us to determine, and prefiimptuous ro attempt. And how the Father, Son, and Spirit fland originally and internally related to each o* ther, may poifibly be a Thought too big ever to be taken in by a finite Mind in its mofl exalted Enlargement. But as the per- fonal Property of the Son, denoting his diilindSubfiftence, is exprefs'd by his being begotten, fo the perfonal Property of the Holy Ghoft, whereby his peculiar Subfiflence is denoted, is exprefs'd by his proceeding. He Xoh. 15. is the Spirit of Truth, who PROCEEDETH 3K3. from the Father, That which proceeds from another, mufl be fomc way diilind: from that, from which it proceeds ; and this Pro- c:eeding being made 4 perfonal Charader, to ... ;. denot©^ .mm. (a?) denote the Relation which the Spirit bears ad intra to the Father and Son, 'tis apparent that 'tis by this, that he has his perfonal di- ftind Subfift-nee from them. He is never faid to be createdy mads, or produced, as if he was a divine EffeEi, or was paffive under divine Operation ; but He is fpoken of aBively, as proceeding: He proceedeth, fays Chilli, from the Fatljer. Tiio it is only faid, h^ proceeds from the Fa- ther j yet tis not faid he proceeds 0 N LT from the Father, nor y I conceive is it to be underftood exclnfive of the Son, who in the fame Verfe fpeaksof his own fending him^Whom I will fend to you from the Fat her .Th^ Son's fending the Spi- rit by gracious Difpenfation has been ufually allow'd to fuppofe his antecedent eternal Pro- ceiTion from him ,• even as the Father's fend- ing the Son at his Incarnation, fuppofes his being eternally begotten of him. And 'tis indeed very incongruous to fuppofe that the Son ihould have the Power of fending the Spirit, unlefs the Spirit is originally related to him as his Spirit ; but how he fhould be fo related any otherwife than by what is call'd his Proceeding from him, is what I could never yet learn. The adings of th^ divine Perfons are according to the Order of their Subfiftence, and their original Relations to one another are fometimes fhadowed out by the manner of their actings towards us :J°"*^®' Accordingly Chrift's breathing on the Dif- ciples, when he faid to them receive ye the Holy Ghofiy feems to intimate, among other things, that as his Breath really proceeded from him in his human Nature ; fo the Spirit as reallyy tho' in an infinitely different and inconceivable manner, proceeds from him in his divine Nature : Or elfe, that as the C 4 tem-^ (24) tempornry EfFufion of the Spirit is from him, fo IS his eternal Proceeding too. Hence he is fpoken of as bearing the fame Relation Eph. g. to the Father and Son. He is the Spirit of M»^^» the Son, as well as of the Father. Becaufe ^'^ ^ ye are Sons, God hath Jent forth the Spirit of his Son into yvur Hearts. At other times he is Fh'l I. cali'd the Spirit of Chrifl ; thus the Apoftle '^* fpeaks of the fnpply of the Spirit of Chrifl, And he is cali'd the Spirit of Chrift in fuch a manner as intimates to us, that 'tis not barely on the account of Chrifl's having the Spirit without meafure in his human Nature, or having the Difpenfations of the Spirit in his Hands, as Mediator : but on the account of his eternal Relation to him in his divine Nature. For he is not only cali'd the Spnh of the Son, which is a Denomination of Chrift from his divine Nature, as I have formerly (hewn ; but he . is likewife call'd his Spirit before his Incarnation ; for the Apoftle fpea- king of the Old Teftament Prophets, fays, 1 Pet. I'they fear ch^d what, or lahat manner of 'Timey *^' the Spirit of Chnfi zvhich vjos in them did ftgnifyy when it, or he, tejiified beforehand the Sufferings of Chrift, and the Glory that fiouldf follow. Chrift, in a Difcourfe about fending the Spirit to glorify him, fays, All I'hings that Joh. i6. the Father hath are mine. The Expreflion is *5* as full and comprehenfive as can be with re- fpeci: to All that the Father hath. But if this Spirit is not originally the Spirit of Chrift, neceffarily and eternally Proceeding from him as well as from the Father, he would furely have qualify 'd this Expreflion, and excepted the Spirit from thofe All 'Things. But he is fo far from doing this, that on the ocher hand, he make3 hi§ joint Interefl in . . ■ aU (25) aU that the Father hath, the ground of his fending the Spirit, which imports that he is included in thofe all Things, 'Therefore faid /, that he jhall take of miney and jhall /hew it unto you; q. d. He fhall come as my Spirit to dif- play my Glory. Furthermore, Chrift don't fay all Things that the Father hath zxt given to me, as if he had them only by Difpenfa- tion, ox jhaU be mine when I fhall be exalted, as if they were only the Reward of his Sufferings : But he fpeaks of them in magni- ficent Strains like a prefent abfolute Proprie- tor, and fpeaks of himfelf like a Copartner with the Father, as one that has the fame original Right to them and Intereft in them, as the Faih.r has. And hence the Spirit of Chrift, and the Spirit of God, are ufed as Terms of the fame Import, which Ihews at once, that Chrili is Goa, and that the Spi- rit is calid his Spirit, on the account of this Relation to him as God, Te are not in t/jf Rom. S, Fkjhy hut in the Spirit, if fo he that the SPI-'^' RIT OF GOD dwell in you. Now if any Man have not the SPIRIT OF CHRISTy he is none of his. When he is call'd the Spirit of God, the Term God in fuch Paffages may be fometimcs taken Perfon ally for the Father, or for the F:.ther and Son, as the Circumftan- ces of the Context dired ; and accordingly the Spirit of God is a Pcrfonal Charader to diftineuifh the Holy Ghoft from the Father and Son, and from all created Spirits, as the ■Son of God is a Peifonal Charader to diftin- guifh the Logos from the Father, and Holy Ghoft, and from all mere Creatures. Thus when we are told the Spirit of God moved upon ^^"» '« the Face of the Waters, the word God may be ^* there underftood as denoting both the Fa- i thei: (20 ther and Son, iince the Son as well as the Job. I. Father is the God, i;>y whom all Things were I, h made that are made. Hence, 2. This Proceeding of the Holy Ghofl from the Father and Son ts an ETERNAL Erna^ nation. Tho' the Effafionof the Spirit in his Gifts , and Graces (which may be call'd his fecon- dary coming fonhfro?!! the Father and Son) began in Time ; yet that Proceeding, by which he has his Si-:S(ift'uice, is never fpoken of as having any Beginning or End, but as one continued Emanation, always and un- changeably the fame. The Old Teftament aifures us of his Exiftence all along, even from the firft Creation of all Things. He is that Spirit of God, wno moved upon the Face cf the Waters in the Beginning ; and afterwards fpoke in all the Prophets. And yet, when in the Fullnefs of Time Chrift came into this World, he then fpoke of the Spirit's Proceeding as a continuing Thing. Speaking 'hi? ^^ ^^^ Miflion he iifeth the future Tenfe, z6\ Whorn I IVI LL fend unto you from the Father, But fpeaking of his Exiftence, he ufeth the prefent Tenfe, Even the Spirit of Truth, which PROCEEDE TH from the Father. This intimates to us, that the eternal abiding Du- ration of this Spirit is the fame with that of the great Jehovah, who defcribes his own permanent eternal Being, not by any thing Exod. 5. ^^(^ or Future, but by a frefent I AM. 1 14. Am that I Am, In like manner Chrift fpeak- ing of the Spirit, don't fay he hath proceeded, or w/// proceed ; but he proceedeth, or is pro- ceeding permanently, without Beginning, Interruption, Alteration, or End. Hence (27) Hence he is exprefly call'd the eternal Spirit^ by whofe extraordinary Influences, the Man Cnrift Jefus freely otfer'd himfelf a Sacrifice^ Vl^ho thro the eternal Spirit offer d^^'^' 9- himj?''f vohhout fpot to God. It appears very ^^* evident to me, that by the Spirit is here meant the Holy GhofJ, For he is diftinguifh'd from Chrifiy 'who offered himfelf, and from God, viz. the Father, to wJ.om mofl immediately that Offering was made ; and the Holy Ghofl's concernment in thisgreat Tranfadion, is reprefented by the AiTiilance he gave to the human Nature ofChrifl therein. ThisPhrafe, thro the Spirit, is commonly ufed to iignify thro the Influence or AffiRance of the Holy Ghofi 3 nor do I know that 'tis ever ufed in any other Senfe throughout the Scripture. Thus Believers are faid THRO the Spirit ^om.S. to mortify the Deeds of the Body ; and T'HRO^'^ the Spirit to wait for the Hope of Righteoufnefs ; , pgt.'il and to obey the Truth THRO the Spirit. "Tis 22. obvious at firft fight, that thro the Spirit m thefe, and feveral other Places which might be named, fignifies ^^ro the AffiFiance of the Holy Ghoft. And fo Chrift, coniider'd in his human Nature, offer'd up himfelf a fpotlefs Sacrifice to God thro the Spirit, or thro the nnmeafurahle Influences and Affifiance of the Spirit, qualifying him for it, exciting him to it, and aduating every fuitable Grace to the moft exalted Exercifein it. Now, this Spirit is ftiled the eternal Spirit ; and I think the word Eternal, when, 'tis mentioned as the Property of a Perfon, is never ufed of any but of God himfelf His Name isfrcm e'verla^-iCa, 5^, ing, as well as to everlafting ; and therefore li, eternal or everlafling is made his peculiar Title to exprefs his permanent Being without Be- ginning (28) ginning or End. No intelligent Being be- sides him, ever bears this Name. Tho' An- gels and Saints will have an endlefs never- ceafing Exiftence, andarefaid to live /or ever; yet where do we ever read of an everlafting or eternal Angel, eternal Saint, on eternal Soul y « ^ or of any eternal Spirit befides this ? And 25, * 'the Word here iifed to exprefs the Eternity of this Spirit, is the fame as is ufed to exprefs the Eternity of the only true God, who is ^all'd the everlafting or eternal God. His very Name, the Spirit of God, inti- mates his Co-eternal Exiftence with the Fa- rther and Son. There never was a Time when it could be faid the Spirit was not ; nor is there the leaft intimation in Scripture that he ever began to be i or that God, viz,, either this Godhead, or the Father, or Son, ever were without the Spirit. There is no more account of the Beginning of his Days, than of the End of his Years ; nor anymore account of either of them, than there is of thofe of the Deity it felf, or of either of thp other adorable Perfons in it ; fo that it may be faid to him, as well as to each of them, Vb\»9o»E.venfrom Everlafting to Everlafting thou art z. God. Hence, 3 . 'This eternal Proceeding of the Spirit is a NECESSARY Emanation. His Subfiftence is never fpoken of as the Effed of the Will of the Father or of the Son, as all created Beings are. The moft excellent of thefe Beings owe their All to the Will of God : For with refpe^i to them 'tis Pfa.148. faid. He commanded, and they zvere created : He hath alfo eftai^Iified them for ever and ever : He hath made a Decree, which jhall not pafs. AH, that are not God, are under infinite Obli- gations (29) gations to him for all the Being, Excellencies and BlefTednefs they are poflefs'd of : For of hhriy thro bim^ and to him are all Things yKow,Jj, to whom he Glory for ever and ever. This fhews ^^* they derive from him by a free Ad of his Will, which might have for ever refufed to have commanded them out of nothing. But the Holy Ghoft is never fpoken of as any way obliged to the Father or Son for his Be- ing or Subfiilence; and this fhews that His is as neceffary as Theirs; or, that his Pro- ceeding from them could no more be avoided, than they could avoid being what they them- felves are. Hence he is call'd the Spirit of God:, i Con 2, by w2Ly of Peculiarity, in aJIufion to the Sp- lu rit of a Man^ which may denote the Neceifi- ty of this Spirit to the Godhead, or to the Father and Son ; as the Spirit of a Man is neceflary to the Exiftence of a Man. As no Man can be a Man without the Spirit of a Man within him i fo, as far as the Scripture has informed us, and as far as we can con- ceive according to the Accounts it has given us, God can't be God without the Spirit, any more than without the Father or Son ; and They can no more fubfift without him, than He without Them. The Eternity of his Proceeding from them, is a ftrong Implication of the Neceffity of it ; for it has hitherto been generally received as a Maxim of Truth, that what always was^ could not hut Be. If therefore the Holy Ghoft's Subfiftence is by a Proceeding co- eternal with the Father's and Son's, as I have fliewn it is,, it miift needs be as neceflary as either of Their's. A faint Illuftration of this we have in co-eval Emanations, fuch as Heat from Fire^ and Brightnefs troni the Stm^ or (- 30 y or from any luminous Body. Thefe have a necejfary Co-exiflence, and can't be feparated from one another. Why then fhould not the co-eternal ProcciTion of the Spirit be as ne- eeffary too ? Nor is the Vhluntarinefs of this ProcefHon any Objedion againft its being NecefTary. As. both They, from^whom he proceeds, and He who proceeds from Them, are ail in- telligent and infinitely excellent Perlbns* They can't but approve of all that necella- rily belongs to the Perfedion and Glory of the Deity ; and therefore that which is in. this refped voluntary, fully confifts with its being necefTary. f Thus the Father knows himfelf necefiarily, and yet voluntarily, that is, with an infinite approbation of his Will, tho not by the Power of his Will. All his Perfe(5i:ions are necejfaryy and yet he is willingly Perfed ; yea^ he exifts neceffarily, and yet none can fay but that he exiils m this fenfe voluntarily. The fame may be faid with refped to the eternal Generation of the Son, and Proceffion of the Holy Ghoft. The Proceeding of the Holy Ghoit from the Fa- ther and Son, is with the Approbation of their Will, tho not an Effed produced by the Power or by any Ad of their Will. Nay, I think they are never fpoken of as jBive with refped to the Proceedtng of the Holy Ghofl himfelf, tho they are with refped to his Miffion according to Djfpenfation. 'Tis likewife with the Approbation of the Holy Job, i5.Ghoft's Will, who is fpoken of adively as z6. t Vid. Dr. JFaterlnnd's Vindication of Chrid's Di- vhiity, jp. ii6, &c. one (30 one who froceedeth ; but this is no more incon- iiftent with the Neceffity of his Proceeding, than the willing active Subfiftence of the Fa- ther himfeif is iaconiiftent with the NecefTity of it. Hence, Prop. 4. As the Holy Ghofl eternally and?roi^. ^* neccffarily proceeds from the Father and Sony He is a divine Per Jo ay one in Nature with them. Tho the word Perfony as apply'd to finite Creatures, and according to the Notions our Acquaintance with them has given us of iu denotes an individual Being, or One who has a Subftance of his own, diflind from all others ; yet when we fpeak of Perfons in an infinite Nature, we muft regulate our No- tions of them only by the Scripture, and underfiand that T^erm in fuch a manner as a- grees with the Unity of the Godhead, which Godhead is the undivided Nature or EfTence of Father, Son, and Holy Ghoft. Thefe three are on one hand often reprefented as one divine Being, in the Attributions of the very fame incommunicable Titles, Perfedions, Works, and VVorfliip of the Deity, equally to them all, as is to be prov'd under the next principal Head : And yet on the other hand, they arefpoken of under fuch Diftin- dions from each other, as we ufe to apply to three diftind Perfons ; and therefore the word Perfon feems to be the propereft Word \vc have to exprefs thofe three Diftindions by. And the Ufe of this Word in this Cafe is countenanced by the Son's being cali'd, in his diftindion from the Father, r/>^ exfrefs^-^^'^" Image of his Perfon. ^* Howy or inivhat manner thrcQ Perfons can- di{lin6:ly fubfifl in one uncjivided Nature, fo (30 fo as that each of them fhould have the whole divine Nature in him, is freely allow'd to be altogether inconceivable by us : t But this is no more a Proof againft its being Fad, than the Inconceivablenefsof the manner how the whole divine Being, and ail its eflential Attributes are always at once intirely in Heaven, and on Earth too, is a Proof againft God's Omniprefence. Tho fuch Omnipte- fence may feem impoflible to us, yet we muft allow it to be real, it being the moft mon- ftrous and abfurd Notion of God to fuppofe, that only a Part of God, a Part of his Be- ing, a Part of his Attributes, is in Heaven, and another Part of God is on Earth. And if we muft believe the puzling Incomprehen- fible in one Cafe, why fhould we ftartle at it, and for that reafon alone rejed it in the o- ther ? Tho feparate Perfons, (as all finite In- telligences are) are fo many feparate Beings ; yet I can't fee any Contradidion in faying, that three infinite Perfons, who are fo eflen- tially and undividedly united as not to have a feparate Exiftence from each ether, are one Being, becaufe 'tis in difi'erent refpeds that they are threey and that they are One, Nor doth this make a Fourth intelligent Agent, becaufe this one divine intelligent Being has no other Exiftence, or Intelligence, or Agen- cy, than what it has in thofe three Perfons. That the Holy Ghoft is a Perfon diftind from the Father and Son, has been already^ proved. And that he is a divine Pxrfon, who is one in Nature with them, feems very plain '\Vid, Dr, Waterland'j Vindimion^ p. 171, &:g. and from from the Eternity and Necefpty of his Procee'^ ding from them. For neceffary and eternal Exiflence is the firft Notion of the Deity ; iiothingbut God can havefuchExillcnce, and whatever has fuch Exiflence cannot but be God ; For otherwife there would be feme- thing neceilarily and eternally befides God, whether he would or no. Somt-thing which he could not by his abfolute Omnipotence poiiibly prevent from Being, nor can ever make ceafe to Be. But toTay this, is both to Ungod him, and to fet up another God befides him. Since then the Holy Ghoft is an eternal neceflary Emanation not from the Godheady or from the Ncv.uve of God ; but from the other Vevfons in that Nature, his Na- ture mufl be the fame with the Father's and Son's from whom he proceeds, or elfe there mufl be more proper Divinities, or more eternally and neceffarily exifling Natures tiian one : For to fuppofe that his Fevfin is necefla- ry and eternal, and that his Nature is con- tingent and temporal, is the firfl-born of all Gontradidions. And if his Nature is ne- Cvfiary and eternal, what Nature can that be, but the one divine Nature ? The three Perfons of the Godhead can't \iZ predicated or afErm'd of one another ; that is, 'the Holy Ghoft can't be call'd the Fath-a, or the Sony or be defcrib'd by their perfonal Properties ; nor can the Father or Son be caird the Holy Ghoft., or be deicrib'd by his perfonal Property. The Scripture never thus interchangeth their Names or perfonal Properties, which fhews that they are diftincl Perfons. But God can be, and is predicated of them ail, that is, the ejfential Names and Properties of God may be call'd the Names D and ( 34 ) ^nd Properties of each of thofe Perfons, and they are in Scripture apply'd to, and affirm'd of the Spirit, as well as of the Father and Son, as is hereafter to be proved. This Ihews that their Nature or EJfence is one and the fame : For if their Nature or Eflence was diftind from. each other, as their Perfons are, the Names and Properties that belong to the Eflence of one, could no more be the Names and Properties of the other, than the perfo- nal Names and Properties of one, can be the perfonal Names and Properties of the other. As a Father and Son can't bear the diflin- guifhing relative Names and Properties of each other, but both bear the common Name Man^ and have the Properties effential to Man, which (hews their Perfons are diftind, and yet that they have the fame common Na- ture. So the perfonal Names and Properties of Father, Son, and Spirit, being diftinguifti- ing^ames and Properties of Relation, they can*t bear them interchangeably, but they all bear the Name Gody and have the Properties elTential to God, which fhews their Perfons are diftind, and yet that they have the' fame individual Nature of God, fince that Nature is undividedly One. 'Tis only the famenefs of Nature (as far as I fee) that can be the ground of attributing to the Holy Ghoft thofe Names and Properties which belong only to that Nature, and are incommunicable to any other. That thefe are afcrib*d to Him, will, I hope, fufficiently appear when we come to the propofed Proof of his Divinity ^ in the Interim, I fhall here only obferve, that the name jehovahy which I fhall then fhew belongs to Him, is a Name exprefJive of the Nature of the only true God, as it iignifies (3$) necelfary Exiftcnce, and Bejngk felf. If then this Name doth indeed belong to tlie Holy Gholh he can't but be a divine Perfon whofe Nature is no other than the divine Nature, becaufe this Name fignifies that Nature^ ■ nci is on that account the incommunicable Name of the o-ily true God, and belongs to none but him, as the Scripture clearly affirms. 7he Hof. it. Lord {Heb. Jehovah) is his Memonaly and ThQUy pj-^j^ g,^ ivhofe Name ALONE is Jehovah, art the ^2/ mcft High over all the Earth. This is the Name of the one only Deity ; and therefore this being the Name of more Perfons than One, plainly ihews, that that Deity is the ^^^^^ ^^ one Deity of them all : 'Pov the Lord our Cod, .^ is one Lord {H^b. one Jehovah.) The Holy GhoiVs proceeding from the Fa- ther and Son doth indeed prove, that he is fomeway diftincly namely, in Perfonality from them ; but it don't infer that He is totally j and in all refpeds diftind, fo as to be of a different Nature from them. For, fince the manner of this Proceeding is allow'd by all to be incomprehenfible, and lince the Pro- ceedin'g it felf has been fhewn to be necejfary and eternal, v/ho fiiall pretend to fay, that fuch a Proceeding denotes any Divifion, Se- paration, or Difference of his Nature from that of thofe, from whom He proceeds ? Even in created Beings, the nature of necef- fary and coetaneoas, or cotem.poral Emana- tions, is the fame with that from which they proceed ^ as in the Sun and its Brightncfs, which is call'd its Rays. Thefe Rays them- felves, as far as I can conceive, are of the fame Nature with the Sun it felf, and are fo effential to it, that it can't be a Sun without them, tho' it may without their being ex- D 2 tended ■( 3^ ) tended to this lower World. Now, tlio the Proceeding of the Holy Ghoft is in a man- ner too high and impenetrably fecret for us to conceive of by the help of this or any o- ther of the imperfed Iliuflrations, which Creatures afford us ; yet i£ the Rays, which proceed from the Sun, are undividedly the fame in Nature with the Sun it fclf. Why fbould not the Holy Ghoft, who necejfarily and eternally Proceeds from the Father ana Son, be undividedly of the fame Nature with them. T\\o proceeding from the Father and Son i$ his diil:inguifhing fsrfonal Property ; yet to fhew that He is not a different^ Being from them, and that He don't iubfift out of the Godhead any more than they do, He is re- prefented as being in God as the Spirit of Man is in Man : Otherwife I can't fee the Force of the Apoftle's wry of arguing, when he illuftrates the Knowledge which the Spirit of God has of the T'hings of Cody by the Know- ledge that the Spirit of Man^ tvhich is IN HIM, has of the T'hings of a Man, (i Cor. 2. II.) The Spirit of Man which is in him, is certainly of the EfTence of Man ; and therefore, as far as divine Things can be re- prefented by Human, we are hereby taught to believe, that the Spirit of God that is in Him, is of the Eflence of God, and con- fequently that He is one God with the Father and Son. SERMON (S7) S E R M O N II, I COR. xii. II. But all theje worketh that one and the felf-fame Spirit^ dividing to every Mm feverally as he wilU HAVING already infiflcd on four Propdtions, to fet the Divinity of the Holy Ghoft in fuch a plain and fcripturalLignt as may be ufeful, by the Blef- fing of God, to remove fome Difficulties ob- jeded againft it, and to adjuft o-ir Thoughts about Him, I now, in Purfiait of the fame Deixgn, proceed to a fifth. Therefore, Prop. 5. The Holy Ghofiy ly an intirely^^^^^S^ free^ and voluntary Difpenfatwn, fuitable to the Order of his Stihftflence, is fent and comes in fuch a 7nanner to aB from the Father and Son towards m^ that all his ABings are likewife their ABings by and together with Hi^- This Propofition confifts of three Parts, which *twill be prqpei: to confider diftindl-, ly- I. I'he fending of the Holy Ghofi, and hs coming to aB from the Father and Son towards D3 «^ (, 38 ) fU) is by an intirely free and voluntary D iff en-* fation. This fending of the Holy Glioft, and his coming to us, is the Language of Difpenfatjony and has a peculiar Reference to his commu- nicating fpiritual Gifts and Graces in the OEconomy of Salvation. Accordingly, the Gifts or Graces of the Spirit are fometimes meant, when the Holy Ghoft is faid to be gi^ A as 8. ti}gj2 to m, and pourd out upon us, and when ch* 2 ^^ ^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^ bci^'tiz>ed with him. But his jy* * coming upon us for Ipecial Operations, is ch, I. 5. altogether with hs own concurring free and unconitrained Confenr. He was as v/illing to be the Seut m his Turn, as the Father and Son wtre to be the Ser.dtts. Hence he is fpoken of as co-ming-^ like a free Agent, and his AtliUgs from the Father and Son are re- prcfwUtcd in as frjee and unconilrain'd a man- ner, as their fending him i^. For all thofe Paflages relating to his Works, which are render'd, He SHALL comey-^teach^ — i^ftify of Chrifly^'^gkrify him:, — receive ef his "Things ^^^ and Jbewthe?n unto my — and the hke, may (as has been already obferv'd) be as well ren« der'd. He WILL come, d>cc. they being /^r^x of the future Tenfe ; and fo they denote not only the certainty of thofe Operations, but likewife the gracious Condefcenfion and Free-' dom of the Spirit in them : Accordingly in forae Places the fame Forms of Speech in the Toh 1 6 ^^^'^^ ^^^ render'd He will, as He WILL re^ 8, I^ * {yove the World of Sin j and He WILL guide you into all Truth, His Aciings from the Father and Son are A^s of Choicey and not of Duty ; Ads of gracious Conde [cent ion to uSy and not of due Qbedience unto themo They proceed from his own r39) own free Concurrence with the Father and Son in this OEconomy, and not from Obli- gation or Neceliity, any farther than his perfect Agreement with them in Nature and Will may be faid to put a NecefHty upon Him. Hence He is calfd God's /rf-^ Spirit^ with regard to his gracious Operations. Uf- ^^^^' 5^* hold m2y fays Dav'idy imth thy free Spirit, And it feems to me very remarkable, that tho' He is ofcen fpoken ofasfent by the Father and Son ; yet He is never fpoken of as receiving >any Command from them, nor as acting in Obedience to them. Chrifl, confider'd in hisr human Nature, and Office-Capacity there- in, is faid to receive a Command from his Fa* ther, Qoh. lo. i8) and to become obedient ^ (Phil. 2. 8.) But nothing like this is ever faid of the Spirit. The obvious Reafon of this dilferfeiice in fp^aking of Chrift and the Spirit is, that C/;r.y2 having an inferior Na- ture in perfonal Union with the Divine, in that inferior Nature became God's Servant^ (as he is calfd Matt. 12. 18.) and was ca- pable of receiving a Command from his Father, and of paying Obedience unto Him. Whereas the Holy Ghofty being merely and in all re- fpeds a divine Perfon, and having no other than his original divine Nature, was unca- pable of being a Servant y or of receiving any Commandsy or of paying any Obedience ; and therefore is never fpoken of in that Lan- guage. And confequently whatever He did muft be by an unconflrained and originally unobliged Voluntarinefs> and by as free ^ Condefcenfion to us, as either the Father oir Son ad by. The only Place that occurs to myThoughts, which looks like the Spirit's coming and P 4 adin^ (40) afting by a Command, is his coming in Joh. 14. ChrilFs Name, whom the Father will jendi ^^* fays Chrift, in my name. But how harfh and unfuitabie to the whole Tenor of the Con- text is it to fiippofe, tiiat Chrift ihould fay. The Father will ftnd the Holy GhofI: by my commanding Authority^ which mull be the Senfe of the Expreff on, if by Name we here under- {land a comma,Jiing Authority. Therefore by his coming in the Name cf Chrift, 'tis moft natural to iindtrftand, either his coming and iac^ting by fpecial Difpenfition from Chrift, and as it wcxq perfonating Him, by fupplying his Abfence, and teaching them the fame Things, as Chrift had taught them, and would ll:ill have taught them, had he been to continue perfonally among them. In this Mat. 24.Scnfe of the Expreffion Chrift fays, Many 5« JhalJ come in my Name, perfonating me, /'zji;^^ I am Chrift, Or rather it may be underiiood of the Spirit's coming in the Virtue or Merit of Chrift's Death, on which his coming de- pends. In this Stnfe of the Expi-criion, Job. 14. Chrift lay s* in the fame Chapter, Whatfot'ver ^li H* yejhall ask in my nmne, that I will do, that the Father may he glorified in the Son. If ye fall ask any thing in my name, I will do it. This meaning of the Phrafe well agrees wiih Chrift's Difcourfe about the coming of the Jch. 16. Spirit ; For he fpeaks of his fending the 7- Holy Ghoft upon his Departure to fupply ^^4* his Ablence, and of his graying the Father^ ^ ' that as the Fruit of his Death, He would give them, another Comforter. Nor is the fending of the Spirit h the Father and Son any more a Proof of his coming by a Command, than his being fent in Chrift*s N^m^ is. Fof one Perfon's being fent by ^^ nother, (41) nother, merely on the foot of an agreed Difpcnfation, and not by any antecedent Obligation, m^y very well confift with his original Equ.ilny in Nature and Power with the Perlon from whom He is fent. Nothing is more common than for Pcrfons equal in Nature, Power, and Interefi, to fort them- felves into ditferent Ranks ot- Acting, ac- cording as they think the Reafons of Things direct. This is plain in the Cafe of Joira- Partnerjhip, in which feveral Pcrfons, equally Principal, take to themfelvcs difrerent Parts to ad in. One Partner may chiefly form. Schemes of Bufinefs, and enter into Engage- ments about fuch Things as concern the common Intereft of the Partners, and may fend another Partner to execute thofe Schemes, and make good thofe Engagements, according to the Order of ading fix'd upon as moll agreeable among themfelves. Kence, 2. 7);^ Holy Ghojt's ABings in this Difpenfa- tion are ftii table to the Order of his Subfijience. His being a d jlinEl Perfon in the God- headj makes Him capable of acting in a perfonal manner fomeway diftindly, tho' nevf-T feparately from the Father and Son. And the Order of his Subfiftence, as the third Perfon, makes it appear very congru- ous that, in the Operations of God ad extra^ or toward the Creature, and particularly in the OEconomy ot Sahation, He fhould bear the finifhing Part, and fliou'd be the mbfc immediate Agent therein. Hence the Scripture reprefents the Order of the three Perfons working according to the Order of their Subfiflence. The firfl Contrivance and Def.gnation of all is ufually afcrib'd mod im- mediately to the Father ; the procuring or ptir-^ C 40 puYchafing all,^ to the Son ; and the effediial Application of alJ, to the Holy Ghoft. Thus they are reprefented all together, when the t Pet. 2, Apoftle Peter fpeaks of the EleH according to the Foreknowledge of God the Father, thro Saur Bification of the Spirit unto Obedience, and f prink- ling of the Blood of Jefi^ Chrifl. The Apoftle Taul abounds in Reprefentations of the fame fort throughout his Epiflles, of which I fhall Eph. T. recite but this one. Blejfed be the God and m with all fpiritual Blejjings in heavenly Places in Chrifl : According c^ he bath chofen m in him^ before the Foundation of the World ; that lue fiould be Holy, and withotu blame before hhn, in Love, Having predeflinated ^;5 unto the Adoption of Children by Jefm Chrifl to himfelf, according to the good Fleafure of his WdL — In whom (Jefus Chrifl:) iJne have Redemption thro his Blood, the Forgivenefs of Sins, In whom alfo, after that ye believed, ye were fealed with the Holy Spirit of Promife, which is the Earnefl of our Inheritance, &c. This Account of the feveral Parts, in which thefe adorable Perfons ad, is evidently moli agreeable to the Order of their Subfiftence. The F/Vy^Perfon bears the leading Part in this great and glorious Enterprife ; the Second, who is eternally Begotten of him, comes from him to open the way, and to do what was neceiTary for an honourable Accornplifh- ment of it ; and the "Third, who eternally proceeds from them both, comes from both to bring the whole to a bleffed and effedual IfTue. Hence the Father and Son having al- ready performed the principal Parts of their peculiar Work, the Holy Ghofl: in purfuance ?:hereLinto, is fent and comes to perform the prin- (43) principal Part of his Work that peculiarly belongs to him. I teU you the "Truths (fays Job, i5. Chrift) it is expedient for you that I go away ;7>B* for if I go not away, the Coinforter will not come unto you, hut if 1 depart, I will fend him to you. And when he is come, he will reprove the World of Sin, and Righteoufnefs, and Judgment, &c. And yet, 3. All the AElings of the Holy Ghoft in this Difpenfation are likewife the ABings of the Fa-- ther and Son by and together with him. • When the Holy Ghoft comes, and dive lis in Believers, the Father and Son come and dwell in them by and together with him. Hence when Chrid faid to his Difciples, J will p-ay ch. r^, the Father, and he fb all give you another Com- i<^> T7> forter, that he may abide with you for ever, even ^^j^-g, the Spirit of Truths He dwelleth in you, and Jhall be in you. He immediately adds, I will not leave you Comfortlefs, I will co?ne unto you» ■ And, If any Man love me, he will keep my Words, and my Father will love him, and zve will come to him, and make our abode with him. The Spirit can't come to us and abide with us feparately from the Father and Son ; be- caufe the peculiar Prefence of the Spirit with us, is the peculiar gracioufly-operating Pre- fence of the Divine Nature^ which is equally the Nature of them all. Accordingly we are faid to be the Habitation of God thro (Gr. in Eph. 2; or by) the Spirit, 'Tis God, confider'd in ^2. the Perfon of the Holy Gholl, that moft im- mediately refides by fpecial Relation and gra- cious Operation in us, and 'tis mediately by him, that the Father and Son fo refide and operate. Hence thofe Operations, for the doing of which the Spirit i$ faid to befent and to come (44) to US, are frequently afcrib'd to the Father and Son, as their own proper Ads, as well as to him, as his. Thus the Things fpoken of in our Text and Context, are faid to be per- formed by the fame Energy of all the three Perfons, ii (according to xht mod: common Interpretation) we underfl-and thofe Perfons iCor.tz. tQ '^^ diftindly meant by the oneGod, one ^'^» *^^' Lord, and one Spirit, there mentioned. A.nd at the beginning of that Chapter, the Apoille ^. 5. tells us, No Man can fay that Jejki is the Lardy kit by the Holy Ghoft. And yet Chrill fpeaks of this as his Father's Aft, when upon Peter's Matth. faying, T'hQU art Chrift the Son of the living 16.16,17 God^ J^'f^ anfwered and faid unto hiniy Bleffed art thou Simon Bar-Jona ; for Flefi and Blood bath not revealed it to thee, hut mj Father luhich is in Heaven. And at another time this is fpoken of, as Chrift's own Ad. We knowy I Job. 5. fays the Apoflle, that the Son of God is comey zo. and hath given m an underflanding that we may know him thai is true • and we are in him that is true, even in his Son ^Jefm Chrift, Thus the very fame Ads are afcrib'd difiindly to all the three Perfons as their own proper Ads, which fhews that whichever of them they are afcrib'd to, 'tis the one Energy of the Deity that performs them, and all the three Perfons concur in putting forth that Energy. Tho' the Holy Ghoft is the moft imme- diate ading Perfon in puting forth the efftntial Power of the Godhead in his pecu- liar Operations ; yet as that Power is the only Principle by which they are perform'd, and is equally the Power of all the three Per- fons, it feems as if the Father and Son can t but concur with the Spirit therein ,• and the jnoft natural Order of that Concurrence isy ' tha^ C40 that according to the Order of Subfiftencei they, a5 diflinB Perfonsy fliould apply that Power unto thofe Operations mediately by the Spirit. Tho we can't pretend to fay that thjs Order of their working is abfoliitely ne- ceifary, btcaufe (for what we know) the Father might moft immediately exert the Power of the Deity, and the Son and Spirit mediately by him • yet it appears very plain from their eflential Union, or undivided Samenels of Nature with one another, that the Father or Son can no more ad feparately from the Spirit, than he can from them ; or that, neither of them can aft excliifively of the other two ,• excepting merely perfonal and relative Ads among themfelves, the im- mediate Principle and manner of which, we neither have, nor it may be ever fhali have any Notions of Hence I conceive it is faid. When Hey the]o\\. 16* Sfirit of 'Truth is coniBy He ivill guide you into ^33 ^5- allTruthy or into nothing but what is Truth, and into all neceflary Truth ; For he jball not fpeak of himfelf ; hut zvhatfoever he Jhall hear that {Imll he fpeak. All Things that the Fa- ther hath are mine, therefore faid /, He f: all take of miney and [hall Jhew it unto you. His not ^ fpeaking f of himfelf y may denote that he^^?>*^ don*t fpeak feparately from or exdufwely ot^'^''"^^* the Father and Son. In this Senfe Chriil ufeth this Phrafe, when in the foregoing Chapter he fays, the Branch cannot hear Fruit ^^* ^U * of it felf, that is, feparate from the Vine ;i' , or, as he explains it in the next woras, ^^^^P 'zclvt^* it ahide in the Vine. And in the Application of this Metaphor, to ilkiilratc the Union that is between Him and tht Church, he fays, the^' could do nothing feparate from Him. Him. / a?n the Vine^ ye are the Branches : i), §. He that abideth in me^ and, I in himy the fame f X«f''^ hrini^rh forth much Fruit ; for f without me ^ or *l^* feparate from me, ye can do nothing. Now as the Holy Ghoft is moft intimately and infe- parably one in Being and Operation with the Father and Son, he could fay nothing of himfelf, or a-part from them ; and nothing but what they faid together with and by him. And its being added. Whatever he pall heary that pall he [peaky may denote that his Relation to the Father and Son, as their Spirit, is To intimate, that whatever he fliould fay frould be in full Concert and perfed Harmony with them, and therefore mud be entertained with the fame Regards' of Faith, Thankfulnefs, and Obedience, as i^ either of them had immediately fpoke it. And it may farther import, that his intimate Ac- quaintance with the deep Things of God, as the Spirit of God, who by his own Confci- oufnefs is privy to all his Secrets, particularly about the OEconomy of Salvation, fhould be the Rule and Meafure of what he fhould fpeak. For hearingy when apply 'd to God, fignifies, among other things, his infinite J ^^'**^^' Knowledge. Thus fays God, / have heard all thj BlafphemieSy which thou hafi fpken a- Hof. i^,gain[i the Mountains of Ifael. And, / have ^' heard arid o!feYvedhi7ny (peaking of Ephra^?^^ And fo this hearing or knoiving of the Spirit well agrees with what is added. He jimll take of the Things of the Father and Son, and/j^xy them to you. They are not jkewn to him by Revelation ; but he is originally acquainted with them, as he is the Spirit of God, and fo the Spirit of Truth, who is capable of re- vealing them to others. And 'tis impoilible that (47) tliat he fiiourd have any thing to reveal, which is not the Father s and the Son's too, or which they could not have reveal'd, becaufe his Nature, Perfedions, and Knowledge are the fame with their's, and they are at perfed Agreement with one another in all things. Or elfe, all thefe Expreffions may be con- iider'd as the Language of Difpepfation. And fo we may underfland Chrill as faying. The Spirit of Truth yZ>^// /iof /peak of bifnjelfy but according to agreed OEconomy. And, fpeaking after the manner of Men in fuch Cafes, iVinitfoever he jJjall hear, or find to be his part to reveal in purfuance of my Afcen- fion, that jhall he [peaky taking fuch things of mine2i\\d the Father Sy as belong'to that Branch of the Difpenfation, and Jbeiving them unto you. Hence, Prop. 6» All that the Holy Ghofi doth from P^^op. 6, the Father and Son are divine Works proper to the Godhead) and are performed by him in fuch Almighty and Sovereign Manner y a5 can agree to none but the only true God. The Evidence of this Propofition may ap- pear by confidering three Things with regard to thefe Works of the Spirit. I. His Works of Application^ and the other Performances which are peculiarly afcrib'd to him^ are m great and divine, as any of thof Works y which are more peculiarly afcrib\i to the Father er Son in the OEconomy of Salvation, This will fufficiently fpeak for it {t\U when we come to confider thofe Works which are moft peculiarly afcrib'd to him, as Proofs of his Divinity. In the mean while, I fhall only obferve, that He who can do the great Things, which we fhall hereafter fee the Spi« ric (48) rit doth, could (if it had been Co order'd in the divine OEconomy) as eafily have donethofe Works which are moft pecuharly afcrib'd to the Rather or Son; unlefs we Oiould fiippofe that there arefome, the Spirit's doing of which would be repugnant to the eternally neceiTary Relations of the divine Perfons a- mong themfelv^s. The Contrivance of a way of Salvation for lolt Sinners, and the chujing of Heirs of Glory, which are ufually fpoken of as the Fathci's peculiar Works, could nor be Enterprifts too big for the Holy Ghoft^ I Cor. 2. £]p^^g /^j> kiiOivs the deep 'Things of God^ as the Ra ^^ Spirit of a NLm kntws thu "things of a Man, 5j/ * ' Tho all Creatures are excluded from this Privilege, yet he, as a divine Perfon, from everlafting knew the Mind of the Lord, and was his CounfelloYy joining in Concert with him therein. And he had an original Right to elc6t or appoint Perfons to Glory, fince f Pet, 4 he is the Spirit of Glory ^ who by his own free 1^. ' * Agency fits 'em all for it, and lands 'em fafe in it, as may be fhewn hereafter. And if he could do the Thmgs peculiarly afcrib'd to the Father, there is no juil: room to doubt, but he could have done thofe Things that are peculiarly afcrib'd to the Son, in cafe divine Wifdom had feen fit to order that he Ihould have aifum'd our Nature into perfonal Union with himfelf, for that Purpofe. For, fuice he qualify'd Jcfm of Ndz>areth, as Man^ for his Office- Work, he could furely have given the fame Abilities to the human Nature to go thro its Difficulties, had it been perfonally United to himfelf, as he did, when it was perfonally united to the Son. There is no ddctt of Dignity orPov/er in the Spirit for this Work. He, on fuppo-^ fition C49> (Tcion of fuch Perfonal Union, was fufficfeac of himfelf to hav: done it to the full Satis- faction of Juftice, without the more imme- diate Influence ot any other Perfon in the Godhead. Mor is this to afcribe more Suffi- ciency to the Spirit than the Son himfelf had : For, had it been agreeable to the Order of the divine Pcrfbns Working, He, as the eter- nal Logos:,could have communicated all need- ful Influence to his human Nature in the moft immediate Manner by himfelf, as well as mediately by the Spirit. But admitting that thus it might have been, yet infinite Wifdom order'd it to be otherwife for the peculiar Honour of the Spirit, and for the Beauty of the divine OEconomy. Hence, 2. All the great and god-like Works of the Holy Ghoji are uorongbt by his own Ahnighty Tower, He is never fpoken of as receiving Ability, or being qualify d for his Operations by the Father or Son 5 He is never reprefented as Anointedy or as indued with Power to enable Him to ad as He doth. But on the other hand, is reprefented as the divine Perfon who moft immediately doth thefe to others, and even to Chrift himfelf, confider'd in his human Nature, as may be fecn hereafter. And what is this manner of Ading, but that of the felf-fufficient Jehovah ? Of whom, but of the on]y true God, can it be faid, that he Ads after this fort ? Surely, if the Power by v/hich the Spirit performs his mighty Deeds was not originally his own ; If God by any free Vouch fafements furnifh'd Him with the iinmenfe Capacities He has of furnifhing d- thers, and of Ading the part or God to- wards others> it would be fomewhere inti- E mated ( 50 ) mated to us. But nothing like this occurs in the Scripture. Nay, on the other hand, to fatisfy us that his Power is not derived to liim for an Office-Performance, but is by Nature originally his own^ what he doth, both with refped to Gifts and Gracey is ex- prefsly aflerted to be done by his own Pow- Rons.Tj.er. Now the God of HopCy fays the Apoftle, 'S, ip, fill you ivith all Joy and Peace in helievingy that ye may abound in Hope thro the P 0 WE R OFT'HE HOLT GHOST. And he af- terwards fpeaks of Mighty Signs and Wonders ly the POWER of the Spirit of God. The Power is denominated from the Holy Ghoft to fhew that 'tis his own, and God is faid to work by this Power to fhew that 'tis no o- ther than the Power of God himfelf. For what Power doth God put forth and work by but his own ? How contrary is this Language concerning the bleffed Spirit, to that which is ufed con- cerning the miniflerial Intereft of Creatures in divine Operations ? They are faid to re- Lulce 24. ceix^e Power from on high for them. 'Tarry ye 45^' in the City of JerufaJemy faid Chrift to his Jyi^" ciplQS, tint i I ye be indued with Poiver from on High. And this Power was put forth upon them, and thro them, by the Holy Ghoft, as Chrift Ads I. g, explains it when he fays, Tejhall receive Pow^ & 2. A, er after that the Holy Ghofl is come upon yoUy and accordingly they were all filled with the Holj Ghofly and began to [peak with ether T'ongues^ a^ the Spirit gave them utterance. Who can fay thefe were not God-like Works ? And yet the Power of the Holy Ghoft is fpoken of as the proper efficient Caufe of them all. There is no fcruple made of calling them the EfFeds of his Power ,• and yet the utmoft Cautioii (51) Caution was ufed to prevent all Apprehen- (ions as if the Apoftles wrought any divine Works by their own Power. Thus when a notable Miracle had been perform'd by the Apoitle Peter y he utterly difclaim'd any KOi- iwgs of his own Power therein, faying, Te s^p^^ ^^ Men of Ifrael why 7naYvel ye at this ? Or why 12, look ye fo earnefily on m^ as tho by our own Power t))' HoUnefs zve had made this Man ivalk '^ And fo did the Apoftle Paul on a like occafion, A^s 14. 14, 15. But thcfc mighty Signs and tVonders were wrought by the Power of the Spirit of God in oppofition to the Apoftles own Power, as we are told in the Place juft now quoted from the Romans. Now what can be the Reafon of this different Language about the Pov/er by which thefe Works were performed ? I can conceive no other that looks natural, or that can fecure the Honour of God, but what I take to be the only true one, and that is, that the Power the Holy Ghoft put forth therein is indeed his own Power as God. Hence, 3 . He manageth all his grand omnipotent Per- formances in afovereign Manner. As he \s infinitely able of himfelf to effect them, fo he, like the great Jehovah, like an abfolute Lord of his own Gifts, beftows or with-holds them as he pleafeth. The mod: excellent Creatures ad as Servants to God. The holy Angels are his Minifters that do his pfa.ic^ Pleafurey hearkning to the Voice of his word. And 2c, 2.1. Chrift himfelf as Man was God's Servant, devoted to his Pleafure, faying not my Wilh hut thine he done. But the Holy Ghoft doth all Things with a divine Sovereignty accord- ing to the Counfel of his own IVtU, which is fpoken of as the fole Prerogative of God E 2 him- himfelf, Eph.i. ii. Sovereignty is the Jewel of God's Crown. 'Tis one o( the moft ex- alted Ideas we can have of the Majefty of his Being. Heil give ur> this Prerogative to none, nor fliffer any to ftiare Witn him in it. All fliall be for ever accountable to him, who Job 53. giveth not account of any of his matters. But ^>« the bleffed Spirit is never fpoken of as owing any thing to God, or as accountable to him for any thing he doth. Such leffening Gha* raders are never put upon him, but he fpeaks, and his Condud is fpoken of, in fuch mag- nificent lofty Strains, as fhew that he exerci- feth the Sovereignty of the great Jehovah himfelf. God's Sovereignty fometimes denotes his Imperial Abfoiute Dominion, or that he has a fupreme and abfoiute Right in himfelf to command or do whatever lie pleafeth for his own Glory. And this Sovereignty the Holy Gholl evidently claim'd, and exerted in a mou remarkable Manner, when in a very momentous Affair, that dix^dly concern'd God's Glory, he with a fupreme Authority, like an abfoiute Lord, commanded it in his own Name to be done to his own Honour, A^s il, faying^ Separate unto ME Barnabas and Saul for the Work lohereunto I have called them. How Gould the eternal Father himfelf haveaflerted his own Sovereignty iw llronger Terms than thefe ? Ac other times, GoA's Sovereignty denotes his freely difWbuting undeferved Favours to fome, and not to others, according to the Foil 9 ^<>^^ Pleafure of Yiis'<^i\\i who faith to MofeSy ^l '* ' / vjiil have Mercy on whom I will have Mercy p and I will haveCompaffion on whom I wiU have OmpajVirn. And the' Holy Spirit's Diflribu- tions ( 53 ) tjons of Gifts and Graces is in the fame fo- yereign Strain. Whacever he diflributcs, and to whomfoever he makes the Diftributions, 'tis not according to the Will or Deferts of thofe that receive 'em ; but according to the fovereign Pleafure of the Spirit who beflows them. AS theje (faith our Text) one as well as another, worketh that one and the felf-famei Spirit^ dividing to every Man, whoever he is that has any of them, feverally as he will. What can more fully exprefs the Sovereignty of the Spirit in his free Vouchfafements ! Accordingly Chrift, fpeaking of this Spirit's fpecial diftinguifliing Work of Renewing Grace, represents it as a fovereign Ad of his Will. The JVnd blows where it liflethy — ^ Job. J. fo is every one that is born of the Spirit. The 8, unconftrain'd Motion of the Wind is 2l lively Emblem of Sovereignty ; and its being faid .to blow where it lifieth, adds Strength and Beauty to the Reprefentation. The Hfiing or willing of the Wind is plainly Metaphori* caly and can't be otherwife : But its Applica- tion to the Spirit is proper j as all Metaphors are in their Application, as far as the Nature of Things admits ; and it admits of fuch Application here, becaufe, as has been fliewn, the Holy Ghoft has in a proper Senfe,a Will. If therefore we are to learn any thing by Me- taphors, This plainly teacheth us, among or ther things, that Regeneration, or the New Pirch is the Effed of an unconftrain'd free and undeferved Ad of the Holy Ghoft's Will. 'Tis here afcrib'd to his Will with the fame Air of Sovereignty as 'tis to the Will of God, when we are faid to be born, not qfch. 7, Bloodi nor of the Will of the Fleihi nor of the iJ* E J ' mil ( 54 ) !• Will of Many hut of God-, who of his own Will begat m with the Word of 'Truth, Hence, . 7. Prop. 7. The Holy Ghofi together with the Father and Son is the one Sovereign and Almighty God. He is not the only true God exclufive of the Father and Son, but incliifive of them ; and together with them, to the Excluiion of all others. Tho Father, Son, and Spirit are three Perfonsy yet they are not three Gods ; becaufe the fame individual Deity is the Deity of them all, and is the one Principle of divine Operation exerted by them feveral- ly, according to the different manner of their Subfiuing in it. And therefore whatever in- conceivable Difference there may be be- tween thefe three adorable Perfons with re- fpcct to the Order and Manner of their Sub- liftences and Operations, yet with refpeft to EJfence, and with refped to the Self-Jufficient -principle of Operation, they are, as tar as I apprehend, ail alike, and all together, one no more than another, the Sovereign and Almighty God. The Holy Ghoil's proceeding is not to be conceived of as an effential Property of his Nature^ exprefling what that is ; but merely as a perfonal Property, exprefling his peculiar Manner of having the fame divine Nature, which the Father and Son have in a differing Manner. And therefore I can't fee-how any Subordination of the Holy Ghoft can on this account be admitted of, that is inconfifient with his effential Equality with them. Hence if we confider Independency and Self-origination, not as relating to the Grder of the Firft Per- fon*s Suhfifttng ^ and alfolute Supre?nacy^ not as re- Ms) relating to the Order of the Firft Perfon's luorking ; but if we confider all thefe, as ejfential Charaders, relating to the abfolutely perfed and neceffary Exiftence and Suprema- cy of the Godhead^ it feems very plain, that the Holy Ghoft can be no more inferior to the Father or Son in thefe^ than in any other eifential Perfedions oi the Deity. As one and the fame divine Nature neceffarily and infeparably Qx\{ks in Him and in the Father and Son, the Nature itfelf can't be different in them, tho there is an inconceivable Dif^ ference in the Manner of their having it. And if the Eternal Spirit has the fame Nature, He muft have all the fame Perfedions that are ejfential to it, or elfe 'tis not the Jhne Na- ture. And on this Suppofition of Samenefs of Nature (which I have endeavour'd to eftablifh in fome of the foregoing Propofi- tions) we muft either fay, thar Self-origina-- tion. Independency^ 2Xid abfolute Supremacy y are to be coniider'd only as perfonal Properties^, which don't belong to the divine Nature merely as fuch ; or elfe, we muft unavoid- ably allow that thefe, as well as all other effential Perfections, are equally in the Holy Ghoft as in the Father and Son, which is the fame as to allow that He is one and the fame God in Nature, effential Perfedionsj and Glory with them. To conclude. If the Holy Ghoft is a di- vine Perfon, whofe Nature or Eifence is the one divine Nature, and who by his own Power and Will performs divine Works ia an Almighty and Sovcreii^ii Manner, accor- ding to the preceding Propofitions, then He muft needs be the true and fovereign God, becaufe none but the true God can be fuch E 4 ' (56) a divine Perfon. And if He is the true and fovereign God, He muft be the one true God, becaufe rhere can be no more true an4 fovereign Gods than one. And for the fame Reafons, if the Father and Son are hkewife Divine, Almighty and Sovereign Perfons as well as the Holy Ghoft, thefe three Perfons can be together in Nature, Being, or ElTcnce^ but one true Almighty and Sovereign God. And in this Light we may very naturally un-= derftand that contefted P^iiage jn Jof.ii:, wkh- out putting the Icafl Force upon any one 1 Job. $.Word in it. Inhere are Three that bear Record ^" in Heaven^ the Father^ the JVordy and the Holy Chofly and th^Jc three are cue, APPLICATION. Ufe I. This Explication of the Do(^rinc may furnifh us with fair, audi hope fatisfy- ing, Anfwers to the moft confiderable Oi^- jeBiom againft the PerfomlHy and Deity of the HoIyGhof):. 1. Is kohjeEied^ That the Holy Ghoft is only the Name of fome divine Qualities that are form'd and do refide in us? The Anfwer is. The Scripture afcribes fuch perfonal Cha- raders and A(5ts to Him, as can't agree to any fuch Qualities ,- and He is plainly diflin- guijb'd from them as the Author of them. 2. Is it oljeEled, That He is the Power of God, and therefore not a Perfon ? Anfwer.y If He is call'd the Power of God, 'tis not to exprefs his peculiar Charader, in diftin- dion from the Father and Son ; but only tQ denote his eifential Property, and the Prin- ciple of his Operation. The Power of God is indeed put forth by the Holy Ghoft in hv4 Works : / (57) Works ; and yet 'tis call'd the Power of the Holy Ghoft himfelf, which diftinguifheth his Perfon from the Power, and at the fame time fhews him to be God, His own Power being the Power of God. Ch'riji alfo is calfd the Poiver of God ; and yet there is no reafonable doubt but He is a Perfon. 3. Is it objeBedy That He is the Gift of God ? Anfw. This relates in a fpecial Man- ner to the Difpenfation of the Spirit for ex- traordinary and gracious Operations, and is no objedion againft his being a Perfon, fince He IS fuch a Gitt as beftows Ciks^ and fince Chrift is alfo the Gtft of God, and yet allow'd to be a Perion. Nor is it an objedion againfi: his Deity ^ fince God may be faid to give Him- felf in his Covenant, to be the Portion of his People. 4. Is it objeBedy That we are baptiz ed with the Holy Ghoft, which feems to be the greateft Impropriety, if He is a Perfon ? Anfcj, This is to be underftood with refped to his Gifts or Graces^ which he beftows upon us ; and fo denotes a being baptized with them by Him. And accordingly^ that Form of Expreflion might be rendered by the Holy Ghoft, as it is, when it*s faid, BT one Spirit^ ^or, are we all baph^ed into one Body, * ^, * 5- 5. Is it objeBedy That He is only a diffe- rent Denomination of Gody and is really the fame Ferfon with the Father and Son ? Anfw, The Scripi'ure fpeaks of Him under fuch per^ final Charaders and Adings to diftinguijfi Him from the Father and Son, and under fuch Relations to them, as are utterly incon- fiftent with his being one and the fame Ver* fon with them. ^ 6. Is C5§) 6. Is It ohjeEled, That He proceeds from the Father and Son;, and therefore is a diiferent Being from them, and inferior to them > Anfw. His proceeding is necejjary and eternal^ not from the iV^i'^^/r^,* but from the Perfons o£ the Father and Son in the fame undivided Nature ; and therefore whatever may be the Inferiority of Order with refped to this his Charader, yet his ProcelTion b.eing eternal^ necejfary, and vjithout Divifion or Separation, it implies no Difference or Inferiority, but Samenefs and Equality in Nature with the Fa- ther and Son. 7. Is it objeSledy That His proceeding from the Father and Son denotes Derivation from them, and therefore He can't, be the Self -originate God, as the Father is ^ Anfw, If Self-origination is confider d as a perfonal Character, rel]:)e(5ting the manner of having the divine Nature or Efff^nce, fo it peculiarly belongs to the Perfon of the Father. But confidering it, as an effential Charader, re- fpeding the abfolutely perfed and neceffary exiftent divine Nature it felf, in which the Holy Ghoft has his perfonal Subfiftence by an inconceivable and unavoidable ProceiTion from the Father and Son, in that refped it i$ the effential Charader of the Holy Ghofl, as well as of the Father and Son, the one un- divided Deity being the only Nature or Ef- fence of them all. 8. Is it objeSledy That He is call'd the Spt^ rit of God, and therefore is not himfelf God? Anfu). He is call'd the Spirit of God in allufion to the Spirit of Man ; and none doubt but the Spirit of Man is of the Effence of Man. He may therefore be call'd the Spirit of God to diftinguifli his Perfon from the Father and Son, ( 59) Son, and from a!l created Spirits, and yet may be by Nati;re thit Spirit,' which God is hid to be, when 'd> zfdxmd that Cod is ^Joh. 4, Spirit. 24, 9. Is it ohjeEled, That He can't be an /«- finite Perfon, btxaufe He co^^/^^^i to v^s and withdraws froi^i -us, which feem inconfifient with Omniprcience ? Anjw. His coming or wither:: wing relates not to hiseflential Pre- fence, but to his applying or not applying himfeh: to us in his ipiritual and gracious Operations upon us. Moreover, Jehovah was faid to go dewa to fee the City and Yozuer o/Gqu. it, Eal^el ; and the Father himfelf is laid to come ^^ , to us and to make his abode with us ; and^°'^' ''^' yet few are hardy enough to difpute againft hi^ being the omnipr-efenr God. /lo. Is it objeEled^ That the Holy Ghoft can't be the Almighty and Sovereign God toge- ther with the FjtthtT and Son, becaufe He is fent by them, and comes from them. Anfw. His being fent, and his coming from the Fa- ther and Son, are according to OEconomy fix'd by mutual free Agreement among them- felves, and not injoin'd on him hy a Com- mand, nor fubmitted to by him as an Act of Obedience. And therefore fuch fending, ia which he comes with as unconflrain'd a Li- berty as he isfent^ is very confiftent with his being by Nature equal to the Father and Son, and the one Sovereign Almighty God toge- ther with them. And he accordingly Ads as the great Jehovah, with all his /Power and Sovereignty, in all that he doth in purfuance of his being fent. II. Is it objeEledy That 'tis inconceivable that He fliould have the whole Epnce of God, and yet the Father and Son fhould have (6o) luve it too ? Anfw. 'Tis as inconceivable that God fhould be elTentially every where and always prefent ; or that the whole God- head, with all its eiTential Perfedions and Glory, fhould be in Heaven, and at the fame time on Earth too. And yet both Scripture and Reafon afTure us he is To. But why fhould we wonder that there are Inconcei- ables in God / 'Twould be indeed incon- ceivable that he fhould be the infinite God, if there were not in him numberlefs Deeps of Excellencies inconceivable to us. 1 2. Is it ohjeEiedy That Being and Verfonzxt Terms of the fame Import, when apply'd to intelligent Agents, and therefore the Holy Ghoft mufl be the fame Perforiy or he can't be the fame Being with the Father and Son? Anfvj, Tho' an intelligent Being and Perfoii are indeed Terms of the fame Import, when apply'd to finite Creatures of limited Natures, and when ipoken of, according to the No- tions of Pcrfons, taken from what we fee and obferve concerning thofe that we are acquainted with ; yet they are not Terms of the fame Import, when apply'd to the infinite Deity in a manner fuitable to its Unity, and when fpoken of according to the Notions we take up of them from the Scripture, which is the only Rule we have to fettle and adjufl our Thoughts about the divine Being and Perfons. 13. Is itobjeBedy That if the Father, Son, and Spirit are three Perfons in the Godhead, the Godhead is sl fourth Perfon, becaufe it is an exiflent intelligent Agent. Anfw. All rhe Exiftence, Intelligence and Agency of ^he Godhead is only in the Father, Son, an4 Spirit y and therefore, it being no Qtherwife ex- ( 6i ) exiftent, intelligent, or adive but in them, it is no diftinct Perfon from them. Accor- dingly, when God's doing any thing is fpo- ken of abfolutely, without reftridion to any one Perfon in the Godhead, the meaning is, that the Deity Ads in all thePerfons, or that they all put forth its Energy. Thus from the Principles that have been laid down and vindicated, a plain and fami- liar Anfwermay bereturn'd tothefe and fuch like OhjeElions. Others have been confider'd, as 1 met with them under the foregoing Pro- politions, which to fave time I forbear to re- peat J and more fhalJ be taken Notice of, as they may occur to my Thoughts n\ dK- cuffing what farther lies before us. Vje II. /foxy great muft the SALVATION hey in which all the divine Perfons are moft a^- tarently and remarkably concern d} The Greatnefs of an Effed is to be efteem'd by the fignal Appearances of God in »pro- ducing it. The greater Shew he makes of himfelf in it, and the greater Solemnity he ufeth about it, the more noble and excellent that Effed muft be accounted by us. When God created the World, there feemU to be a more than ordinary Confult about making Man. Man was to be the Mafter- piece of this lower Creation. He was to be conftituted of an immortal Soul, as well as of an earthy and provifionally immortal Body. He was likewife to be created^' in the moral Image of God, and to have Dominion over the inferior Works of his Hands. And. therefore the common Ftat feem'd not So- lemn enough for the ProdudioU' of this nobleft Piece of his Work manfji in. But all the (62) divine Perfons reprefent themfelves^ as if they were in-Confult about him, faying, Gen. T. Let US make M'ln in OUR Image^ after ^^- OUR Likemfs. Not but that 'twas as eafy to God to make Man, as to make the moil: inferior of his Creatures ; but he hereby put a peculiar Mark of Honour upon him, and ftew'd him to be a far more excellent Pro- dud of his VVifdom, Power, and Goodnefs, than the reft of this vifibJe Syftem. But Man having tum*d Apoftate from, and Rebel againft his Maker, I'he Crown is fallen from his Head, He hereby loft the holy Image of God, forfeited the Dominion he gave him, made his Body mortal, and fub- jeded his immortal Soul to endlefs Difgrace, Confufion, and Agonies. The Order of this lower World was hereby difconcerted, its Beauty defaced, its Peace and Harmony funk into Jarring and miferable Difcord. The vil^k Contempt was put upon God, and the blackeft Slur was caft on the Glory of his Name, which before difplay*d its regular Beauties in all his Works. To retrieve the difmal Lofs of God's Glo- ry and Man's Happinefs was the- Work of God. A Work exceeding all that had gone before it, becaufe of the active Oppofition that lay againft it, not only from the rebel- lious Race of Men, headed by the Powers of Darknefs, but likcwife from God's own vin- didive Juftice, unfpotted Holinefs, and ftri- dly righteous and violated Law. Hence all the divine Perfons agreed to fliew themfelveS in the moft explicite, aftonifhing, and in- dearing Manner^ beyond all that they had ever done before 5 hot only to make the moft ample Difplay of the Glory of the Deity in ge- general, but likewife of each Pcrfon in lU Father, Son, and Holy Ghofl:, *in particular, according to the Order of their Subiiflences, that they might be diftindly and unitedly Adored on this Account, with the Joudeit Acclamations of Saints and Angels to all Eternity. And who can conceive the Greatnefs of that Salivation, which is the EfFed of thefe their confulted Operations ! Was there ever any Work in which God open'd himfelf ac fuch a Rate as He has done in this! In which He has proceeded with the Appearance of fo much Counfel and Concern, with fo much Condefcenfion to us, and I. had almofl faid, with fo much Vidory over himfelf^ with re- fped to thofe juft Refentments, which the Righteoufnefs and Purity of his Nature had awaken d againll the moft contemptible In- grates ! And among all his other grand Per- formances, where has he fo fully and uni- tedly difplay'd the Glory o£ all the Perfe- dions of his Nature, and fo clearly difcover'd himfelf to be fome way Three in One, to- gether with the Order of this Three's Sub- (iftence and Operation ! Had it not been for this Work, it may be, the ftupendious Myfte- ry of the for ever to be Adored Trinity, had never been reveal'd with fuch Evidence and Advantage as now it is to Men and Angels : But here it fhines with fuch tranfcendent Luftre as forbids our Curiofity, and com- mands our Adoration. Surely the Salvation that has drawn oat fuch fweet and aggran- dizing Difcoveries of God as thefe, raiifl needs be reckon'd among the chief of his Works. Yea, ( ^4 ) iTca, fpcaking after the Manner of Merii this feeras te* have been a Work in which there are fuch Kinds of Difficulties, that (with the utmoft Reverence be it fpoken) it could not be effected by one divme Per- fon alone, in a way becomiiig the great and hoJy Jehovah. Not that there is any dtfcd: of Power m any of thofe infinite Penbns for any part of this Work ; but the Nature of the Work it feif feem'd to require the Ad- ings of one Perfon in the Godhead towards another, that it might be brought to ah ho- nourable Iflue. There is no other Work, that we know of, which in the Nature of it re- quires the diftind Adings of more divine Perfons than One, any farther than as They all work when any one of them is the moft immediate Worker. But according to the OEconomy- of Salvation, thro and on the Account of an infinite SatvsfaBion to the Law and Juftice for Sin, it feem'd neceffary that there fhould be One Perfon to receive, and Another to make fuch Satisfaction ; it be-^ ingvery incongruous that any one Perfon in the Godhead fI::ould, in the moft immediate Manner, fuftain the formal Charaders, and Act the Parts both of paying and accenting it. Hence, according to the Order of Subfift- ence, the Father Ads the Part of Lawgiver, in demanding and receiving the Sadsfadioii due to God ; and the Son becomes Man, that he might Ad for Men, and have fomething to offer to God in the Perfon of the Father, for them. And tho' it may be fuppofed, that either of thofe Perfons might, confift- ently enough with their other Charaders and Works, have apply'd the Benefits obtained by by the accepted Atonement ; yet 'tis very proper, and tends to inhaiince the magnifi- cence of this Work, that, fince there is a third Perfon in the undivided Godhead, he likewife fhould have the Honour of bear- ing his peculiar Part in it, and of diftind- ly making himfelf known thereby. And ac- cordingly the Application of all is underta- ken and perform'd in a fpecial and mofl immediate Manner by the Holy Ghofl. A bare Confideration of this diilind and remarkable Agency of all thefe adorable Per- fons in this grand Affair, is fufficient to make us think and fay with melting Afto- nifhment, What hath God _ IVr ought ! JVhat Vfzl.S. is Man that he JJjould in fuch an unexampled4« manner h mindful of him ! What a preg- nant Salvation hath he provided ! What vafl: and endlefs Bleflednefs has he laid up /orpf^jj^ ^j^ them that fear himy and wrought for them thati^, trufi in him ! The Happinefs of the firft Creation, in all its Innocence and Glory, was not equal to this. And all the Plea- fures of this World, in its prefent finful and exhaufted State, are IVant and Mifery it felf, compar'd with Salvation-Felicities. Surely the blefled Prefence of God, which is re- ftor'd to obnoxious Mifcreants by all the three Perfons ading their agreed Parts in the OEconomy of Salvation, mufl be an En/oy- ment full of the moft ravifiiing Delights ; and it can be no Wonder to a confidering Mind, that in that Prefence fhould be FulInefi?Ca], i5, of Joy — and P leaf tires for ever?7iore, ^ * • SERMON («) SERMON III. I COR. xii. II. But all thefe worketh that one and the felf^fame Spirit^ dimding to ewry Man fever ally as he wilL THAT which lies next before us isy To frove the Divinity of the Holy Ghoft : Or, T'hat ^according to the foregoing Explication) He is the So- verign and Almighty God, The Explication we have gone through, hath removed fome Diificulties that might be urged againft the fupreme Deity of the Holy Ghoft I and has likewife in an orderly Procefs co^atributed towards a Confirmation of it. Evidence was therein offer'd to jfhew, that He is a diftind Perfon from the Father and Son, who necejfarily and eternally proceeds from them, fo as to be one in Nature with them, and under no Qhligations to them ; and that He ads from them and together with them, according to a voluntaryy free and un- conftrained Difpenfation, in fiich a Sove- reign and Almighty Manner by his ov^n Pow- €ry as can agree to none but the only true God, C confirmed in its feveral Parts by Scripture- Light, may be look'd on as no fmall Proof, that he, together with the Father and Son, is the Sovereign and Almighty God, and con- fequently the only true God. But as a farther eftablifhing this Point may be needful to many, and will naturally carry our Thoughts to feveral other Truths, which are exceeding Ufeful for Faith and Pradice, I fhall proceed to a more dired Confirmation of it. Therefore, Firft, Some 'Things, which it is nf parent none A^^» t* hut the only true and fovereign Jehovah f poke in his own Name, or was perfonated ly the Prophets as fpeakingy are in other Places interpreted of the Holy Ghofi, CIS that Jehovah who fpoke^ or was perfonated as /peaking thern. What I now intend refpeds not fuch Things as were fpoken barely by the Infpi- ration of the Holy Ghoft, which belong to another Head of Argument; but fuch in which God alone was perfonated by the Pro- phets as fpeaking, or in which he himfelf immediately fpoke. Such fort of fpeaking as this, is applyM to the Holy Ghoft as the Speaker, which Ihews him to be that fpeaking God. I fhall a little infift on an Inftance of each of thefe. The Firfi is taken from the Pfahns, v/here the great Jehovah himfelf is perfonated as faying, To Day if ye will hear his Voice y Ha-i^den Vh\. g^. not your Hearts, as in the Provocation, and as /;2 7>*~-ii. the Day of Temptation in the IVildernefs ; when your Fathers tempted me, proved me, andfaw my Works, Forty Tears long was I grieved with this Generation^ and /aid it is a People that do err F a in (^8) in their Hearty and they have not known my ways. Unto ivhom I fwear in my Wrathy that they fhoiild not enter into my Reft. For the clearer UnderFtanding of thefe Verfes to our prefent Purpofcj 'tis proper to obferve, that in the foregoing Words the Ffalmifi fpeaks to Ifraely to join with him in the moft fo- *-'• 0, 7> \Q,xcin kdi of Worfhip, faying, O come let m worjhjp, and loin down ^ Let m kneel before the Lord our Maker. For he is our God, and we are the People of his Paflure, and the Sheep of his Hand. Thefe are the Pfalmift's Words fpeaking in his own Perfon under divine In- fpiration. But becaufe too many were either backward to, or hypocritical in this Wor- ftiip, therefore to inforce w~hat he had faid, God himfelf is brought in as faying to Ifrael in the next Words, Jo Day if ye wiU hear his Voice, &c. And there I conceive the 8th Verfe fhould begin ; for thefe Words relate to thofe that immediately follow, as appears by the Citations of theiti together in the New Teftament : And fo they begin a Dif- courfe, in which God himfelf is brought in as the fpeaking Perfon. \ That 'tis the great Jehovah himfelf, who fpeaks thefe and the following Words, is very evident at firft fight. For He who fpeaks them fays. Your Fathers tempted me^ proved me, and faw my Works, with whom / was grieved, and to whom / fware in my Wrath they fliould not enter into my Reft. And that this can be no other than Jfrael's Jehovah, farther appears from the Place to Num.14, which thefe Paffages manifeftly refer. The 20, 12, Lordfaid becaufe of thefe Men, which have ^^' 'feenmy Glory and my Miracles, which 1 did in E'Zyt^y ^'^^ ^^ ^^•'^ IVildernefs^ and have tempted me (69) 9ne new thefe ten times ^ and lynve not hearkened to my Voice ; furely they jh all not fee the Land, which I/ware to their Fat hers ^ neither [hall any of them that provoked me fee it. Now the Words in the Pfalmsy (which are thus apparently reprefented as fpoken by God hitnfelf in his own Name, or as the Words of God, and of no other) are in the Neiv j'efiament exprefsly faid to be fpoken by the Holy Ghofi as his own Words ; which is a plain Interpretation that He is that Jeho- vah who fpoke them. Wherefore as the Holy ^'^\* ^' ijhoft faith. To Day if ye will hear his Voice i, *?* harden not your Hearts y as in toe Provocationy tn the Day of T'emptation in the Wilder nefs ; when your Fathers (fays the Holy- Ghoft) tempted ME, proved me, and faw my Works Forty Tears i wherefore i wa6 grieved with that Generation, and faid they do always err in their Hearts, and they have not known my ways. So i fware in MY Wrathy they Jhall not enter into my Refi, Thefe are all recited as the Words of the Holy Ghoft himfelf, fpeaking in his own Name, juft in the fame manner as they were repre-^ iented in the Pfalms, as the Words of IfraeTs Jehovah fpeaking in his own Name, which thews that the Holy Ghoft is that Jehovah. And that thefe Words are applicable to Him, as the God that fpoke them, appears from his being in other Places reprefented after the manner of Men, as vexed, rebeWd againfty and refifted by the People in the Wil- dernefs, which are E^^preifions of the fame Import with their temptingy proving, and grieving the God, who fpoke thefe Words, Thus 'tis faid, 'They rebeffdy and vexd his Holy Ifa. 6^^ Spirit, And Stepheny fpeaking to the Jews, ^^^ faid, Te do always reftfi the Hqlj Ghofi 7 as your ^^^^ ^* F 3 Fathers (, 70 ) Fathers did Jo do ye. He therefore is the God, who wa.s tempted and grieved by Ifrael in the Wildernefs, and as fuch might well fpeak the Words that have been infilled on. The other Inftance I have in my Eye is in the Prophefy of Jfaiah, where the Lord of ira.6. 9. Hofts fpealung to the Prophet, faid, Go, and '°* tell this Peopky Hear ye indeed, but underftand not 'y and fee ye indted, but perceive not. Make the Heart of this People fat, and make their Ears heavy, and /hut their Eyes, leji they fee with their Eyes, and hear with their Ears, and underftand with their Heart, and convert, and be healed*. It appears with the ftrongell: Evidence from the foregoing Verfes, that He who fpoke thefe Words is the great and fovereign God, whofe Glory appeared to the Prophet, and ^ whom the Seraphiras adored, Crymg one to another, and faying. Holy, Holy, Holy, is the J^ord of Hofls, the whole Earth is full of his Olory, 'Twas the Voice 0/ this great Jehovah, or Lord of Hofts, which the Prophet heard faying. Whom jhall I fend, and luho will go for m ^ "then faid the Prophet here am I, fnd me. And hereupon He (this Jehovah whofe Voice he heard) faid, Go, and tell this People, &c. Now thefe Words which were fpoken by Jehovah himfelf, are cited verbatim in the New Teftament, according to the LXX. And he, who fpoke them, is afErmed to be ^as i8. the Holy Ghofl. Well fpake the Holy Ghoft by is, 25, Efaioi the Prophet unto our Fathers, faying. Go ^1^ unto this People and fay^ Hearing ye jhall hear, andjkall not underftand; and feeing ye Jljall fee, and not perceive. For the Heart of this People is waxed grofs, and their Ears are dull of hear- ing ; and their Eyes have they clofed, left they Jhould fee with their Eyes^ and hear .with their Earsg r70 Ear^, and tmderfiand with their Hearty and Jhould he converted, and I jhould heal them. That which makes this Inflance very perti- nent to our Purpofe, is, that there is no pther Speaker reprefented in the Vifion to the Prophet Ifaiah, but Jehovah himfelf; and yet this fpeaking Jehovah is here in the AEls exprefsly declared to be the Holy Ghoft, Some PafTages in Ifaiah's Context are in- deed in another Place apply'd to Chrifl, and interpreted of him, as the God whofe Glory Ifaiah faw in this Vifion -, and by Confequence who fpoke thefe Words : For t hefe things f aid ]o^- 1^* Ifaiasy when he faw his (Chrift's) Glory, and^^" fpoke of him. But this is no Objedion againft the Holy Ghoft's being the God who fpoke them too ; fince Chrift, confider'd in his o- riginal Nature, and the Holy Ghoft, are one God. It is the divine Being fome way per- fonalized that fpeaks, which-ever Perfon of the Godhead is the moft immediate Speaker. This Being is equally the Being of all the three Perfons ; and therefore, when one of them fpeaks, the other Perfons may be faid to fpeak too, and the Words fpoken may properly be call'd the Words of all or of either of them. Thus the Words which Chrift: himfelf appear d as mofl; immediately fpeak- ing, are reprefented as the Words, which the Spirit, as well as He, then fpoke to the Seven Churches of AJia : He that hath an Ear ^-^' 2. hthi-mhear (fays Chrift) what the Sprit faith l'^^'^'^' to the Churches. & 5.6, The Argument drawn from the Applica- 13, n? tion of the Words in Ifaiah to the Holy Ghoft as the Speaker, is not that he fpoke them ex- clufive of the Father and Son, but that nei- ther of them fpoke 'em exclujSve of the Holy F 4 Qhofti C 72 ) Ghoft ; or, that the Holy Ghoft, together with the Father and Son, is the one great God, who appeared and (poke thefe Words in this Vifion ,• or, that this fpeaking muft be apply'd to him as that God, as well as to the Father or Son. For if He was not that God, it could not be faid that He fpoke thefe Words, becaufe 'tis plain from the Place where they are firft recorded as fpoken, that none but that God himfelf fpoke them. And, fo this Text, confider'd in the Light of in- fallible Interpretation in the NewTeflament, is an eminent Proof that this one God is the Son and Holy Ghoft, as well as- the Father ; and that tho' they are diftind Perfons, yet they are all the one Jehovah to whom the Glory difplay'd to the Prophet did effcnially belong. And this Plurality of Perfons in the one divine Effence, feems to be intimated in Ifaiah's Context^ where God fpeaks of him- felf both in the faigtdar and phral Number. In the Jingular, relating to the EJfence and Glory, it being but one Glory and o?ie Lord Ifa. 6.i,gffenj;ially confider'd, that appear'd, fayingy • IVhomjhaU I fend ^ And in the plural^ rela- ting to the diftind Perfons, who were one in thatEflence and Glory, faying, M'^ho will go for vs> How ftrongly doth this intimate^ that tho* he is bat one God in Effence; yet that this one God is in another Confidera- tion, more Perjons than one. And poiTibly the Seraphims might have a Regard to the Trinity of Perfons in three times repeating the ^oidHoly in their Adoration of the great v» 5» Jehovah, faying. Holy, Holy, Holy, is the Lord of Hojis, This trinal Repetition of Holy is no where ufed but in this Place and one more, which (75) which manifeflly refers to this, where th Wour Beafls are faid to refl not Day and Nighty R^^« 4- faying. Holy, Holy, Holy, Lord God Almighty : ' And even that is underftood by divers t ju- dicious Expofitors, as an Addrefs to God effentially confider'd, inchifive of all the Per- ions of the Trinity. 'Tis furely very re- piarkable, that this Form of Adoration is ufed no where elfe^ and iince there are fa many Circumftances in the Place where 'tis firft ufed to intimate that *tis applicable to each divine Perfon, it can't but be worth confidering, whether the Myftery of the Tri- nity is not hinted to us thereby. The only remaining ObjeBlon, as far as lObj, know, againft the Application of the Text before us to the Holy Ghoft, as the God that fpoke itj is, that in the New Teflament 'tis faid, the Holy Ghoft fpoke thefe Words l^y the Prophet Ifaiah ; whereas in the Prophefy of Ifaiah 'tis to be underftood, that the Lord fpoke them to him , which fome may think intimates, as if the Holy Ghoft was con- cern'd therein only as the Infpirer of the Pro- phet, to enable him to hear what God faid to him, and to declare it unto others. But to fay this, is to fay that the Holy Anfvr. Ghoft did not fpeak thefe Words at all, but only influenced the Prophet to hear and fpeak 'em ; which is diredly contrary to the ex- prefs Teftimony of the Apoftle, who fays the Holy Ghoft did fpeak thefe very Words, which were faid to be fpoken by God himfelf, and no other. 'Tis not exprefsly faid in Jfaiah tp whom they were fpoken, but this •]' Vid, Pifcator, P^rew, and Poll's Synopfis in Loc. very C74) very Form and Manner of Spieech is in a- iiother Cafe call'd God's fpeaking l?y this Ifa. 20. Prophet. At the fame time /pake the Lord BT ^' Ifaias the Son of Amos, faying. Go, and loofe the Sackcloth from off thyiLoms, and put off thy Shoe from thy Foot, and he did fo. And if God's fpeaking fiich things to the Prophet as only concern'd his own Con dud, which ftiould carry prophetick Inftrudions to others^ is caird his fpeaking by him • much more his telling him what he fhouldfpeak in his Name, as his Meflenger to Ifrael, might be call'd his fpeaking hy him. His fpeaking immedi- ately to the Prophet was his fpeaking medi- ately by him to the People ; juft as a Prince's telling his Secretary what he fhall write or fay, and bidding him fpeak it in his Name to others, is his fpeaking by him to thofe p- thers. And that this was the Cafe in what God faid to Ifaiah, in the Text we are con- fidering, appears from the foregoing Words. V.8. Whom (fays the Lord) jhaUIfend} and who will go for m ? The Prophet anfwers, Here am I, fend me. And then the Lord put thefe Words into his Mouth with a Commiffion to v.p, fpeak 'em, faying. Go, and tell this People, hear ye indeed, and under ft and not. See. 'Tis very plain, that God here fpoke to Ifrael by the Prophet Ifaiah ; and therefore the Apoftle's Form of Quotation was very proper to de- note the God that fpoke thefe Words, whei> he faid. Well [pake the Holy Ghofl by Efaioi the Prophet to our Fathers. The Holy Ghofl: fpake immediately to the Prophet, faying. Go unta this People, and fay ; and he fpoke medi- ately by him to the People in what he com- manded him to fay, viz. Hearing ye jhall hear ^ and jhaU not tmderftand) dec, Hence^ (75) Hence, fpeaking to and ly the Prophets feem to be promifcuoufly put for one ano- ther, when either Jehovah or the Spirit is mention'd as the Speaker. Thus, on one hand, the Holy Spirit is faid to fpeak to the Prophets as well as by them. The Spirit ^^ek. ^. (fays Ez^ekiei) fpake with me, and faid UNTO 24. me^ Go, JJjut thy Jelf within thy Houfe But v. z7- when I fpeak with thee I will open thy Mouthy and thou jhalt fay to them, thm faith the Lord, &c. And the Spirit of the Lord fell upon me, cii. if. and faid UNTO ■ me, fpeak, thm faith the Lord, ^' &c. And on the other hand, God is fre- quently faid to fpeak by the Prophets as well ^ as to them. He fpake B T the Hand of his i Kings Servant yioksy and He fpake BT Samuel, ^'g^^' But what need I recite particular Inftances, ^3 i-j fince, when the Prophets in general are men^ tion d, 'tis faid God fpoke by them ? The z Kings Lord fpake BT his Servants nhe Prophets faying, z^* 10, — Thm faith the Lord God of Ifrael, 3cc. And J/- God at fundry times and in divers manners fpake ^ ^ • ^^ in times pafl unto the Fathers B T the Prophets, AndGodJhewd BT the Mouth of all his Prophets, that Chrifi fiould fuffer whom the Heaven hd:s 5, mufi receive until the Times of Reflitution of all 18, 21. Things, which God hath fpoken BT the Mouth of all his holy Prophets fince the World began. Hence, its being faid, that the Holy Ghoft fpoke by the Prophet Ifaiah, is no more an Objection againft his being the God that fpoke to him, than its being faid, that God fpoke by the Prophets, is an Objedion againft his having fpoke therein to them. Accor- dingly the very fame Form of ExprefHon is ufed when a Text is quoted as God's fpeak- ing, or as the Holy Ghoft s fpeaking by the (76) Acls I. the Prophets. This Scnfture mujl needs have *^* been fulfilled (fays Peter) which the Holy Ghofl BY T'HE MOUTH of David ffake before chap. 4. concerning Juda^, And Lord (faid the Dif^ H» ^^* ciples) thou art God, which haft made Heaveni and Earthy and the Sea, and all that in them isy •who BT The mouth of thy Servant David haft faid, why do the Heathen rage, &c. Thus, the Objedioii being remov^ed, it appears with a good deal of Evidence, that fhe Words fpoken by Jehovah himfelf in his Own Name to and by Ifaiah, are the Words which the Holy Ghoft then fpoke to and by him : And fince the only Speaker of them was the only true God, the Holy Ghoft muft needs be that God, not exclufive of the Fa- ther and Son, but inclufive of them, as the one God with them, -^rg. 2. Secondly, The fame diflinguiflnng NAMES and Titles cu- are proper and peculiar to the only Sovereign and Almighty Gody do in a proper Senfe belong to the Holy Ghoft. 'Tis generally allowed that God is a Spirit. But I don't find that he is exprefsly calfd fo more than once in Scripture, where Chrift Jch. 4. fays, God is a Spirity and they that worjhip himy *4* muft worjhip him in Spirit and in Truth. One; Reafon why this is no oftner mentioned, may be fuppofed to be, becaufe 'tis eafily proved that God is a Spirit by clear deduction from natural Principles, and from what is faid concerning him in Scripture. But this Rea- fon would equally lye againft the Scripture'^ infifting on many other things concerning God, particularly his Almighty Power, which is neverthelefs very often allerted. May we not therefore rather fuppofe, that God is fa fparingly call'd a Spirit, becaufe the Spiritual (77) lity of his Being is fufficiently exprefs'd by the Name of the third Perfon in the God- head, who is ufually call'd the Spirit abfokite- ]y, and the Spirit of God. And i^y for this Reafon, God fpoken of abfolutely is but once call'd a Spirit^ the Spi- rit, for a like Reafon, may be but feldom exprefsly call'd God, For the very Name of the Spirit^ fo emphatically put, as it is in Scripture, when apply'd to the Holy Ghofl, muft needs import that He is God, becaufe there is but one eminently Spiritual Being, and that is frequently call'd God. And who Ibould be call'd the Spirit of God, as the Soul of Man is call'd the Spirit of. Many but He who is himfelf God ? Tho Angels are SpiritSy who derive their Beings from God, and are employ'd in honourable Offices, and fent forth from God as minillring Spirits too ; yet they, not partaking of the one Divine^ Nature, are, I think, never call'd the Spirits of God, but ufualJy the Angels or MefTengers. Minifters, and Servants of God. . And if the Holy Ghoft was a created Spirit, or was but a miniftring Spirit, or was a Servant of God, 'tis ftrange that He fhould never be once call'd by any of thefe Names -, but fhould on the other hand be commonly QdiWd withftrong and peculiar Emphafis, the Spirit, and the Spirit of God, efpecially confidering that there is infinitely more danger of miftaking Him for God by reafon of thofe Names, if He really was not God, than there would be of miftaking the Angels for Gods, ii they were call'd the Spirits of God. God is frequently call'd the God of all Creatures, yea, and of Chrift himfelf con- fider'd C 78 ) Matth. fider*d in his human Nature. Mj Gody my Gen^^* ^^^^ ^^^^ Chrift, -why haft thou forfaken me ? ^^ * '^' And He is filled the Lordy the God of Heaven y Luke 2. and zhe God of the Earth. And frequently the Jf ?• Lord and God of Hofts ; a principal Pare of f^^ • ^^* which isy that Heavenly Ho ft ^\\o praifed Gody iSu.n. frying? G^o>7 to God in the Hghefty 3cc, He i6. 2z, is f/?^' Father of Sprits y and ^/?e God of the Spi- rits of all Flejh, But He is never faid to be the God of the Spirity or the Spirit s God. Tho God, confider'd in fome other Perfon of the Godhead, fometimes fpeaking of the Holy Ghoft, calls him my Spirit; as a Man fpeak- ing of his Soul, fays my Soul ; and as God, fpeaking of himfelh after the manner of Men, often fays 7ny Soul ; yet the Holy Ghoft, fpeaking of the Father, or Son, or oi God under any Confideration of him, never fays my God, This fhews that whatever Diftin- dion there is between the Father, and Son, and Him, they are not a God to Him, nor are they as God diftinguifh'd from Him, and confequently that his being call'd the Spirit abfolutely, and the Spirit of God by way of Eminence, is fully confident with his being God, and that thofe Denominations of him do indeed denote his Godhead, in oppofiti- on to all Creatures, which are excluded from bearing rhefe Names. Tho' rhefe Names cLVCperfonal Appellations of the Holy Ghoft, to diftinguifh him from the Perjons of the Father and Son ; y^t they don't diflinguifh his Naturey Being, or Ef- fence from theirs, as they do from all Crea- tures ; but they are to be confider'd as Names which are agreeable to and have a Founda- tion in his Nature ,* and fo He is that God, who, together with the Father and Son from whom (79) whom He proceeds, is in the higheft Emi- nence a Spirit. Accordingly there are feveral Texts of Scripture that fpeak of him under fuch Names, as are pecuh'ar to the one only great and foverei^n God. The Names Lord, God, and ^ehovah^ are the moft proper Appellations of the fupreme Being ; and the two laft of thefe efpecially, when ufed in an abfolute and proper Senfe, are certainly peculiar to the infinite Majefty ,- of Heaven and Earth. Vox He is God, ^nd^l'^^^' there is none elf q. Before hi?n there was no God at,, lo^ formed, neither fhall be after him. And His Pf'^l. 85, Name alone is Jehovah, And yet thefe Names '^* are us'd in an abfolute and proper Senfe, as Denominations of the Holy Ghofb. I. The Name Lord doth in an abfolute and proper Senfe belong to the Holy Ghoft. 'Tis of Him that the Apodle feems to fpeak, when after a long Difcourfe about the Spirit, he fays, f Novi the Lord is that i Ccr. |, Sprit ', and at the clofe of the next Verfe, ^7> i3, which is rendered the Spirit of the Lord, the moft grammatical Conftrudion is * the Lord"^ Kvfa the Spirit. This Spirit feems likewife to be^^5u\<«&' meant by the Lord, in diil:in(5tion from the'*^* Father and Son, when the Apoftle fays. The ^ xhef. Lord dire^y our Hearts into the Love of God, and ). s- into the patient waiting for Chrifl, Here is a diftindion of the Lord from God, viz.. the Father, and from Chrift. And the Work here afcrib'd to this Lord is the fpecial Work -\ See an elaborate Comment on this Text and Con- text, to prove that the Holy Giiol]: is the Lord here mention'd, by Mr. Nelfon's Friend in his Scripture^ Dodrine of the Trinity, p. i^z, and continued, p. 270. of (8o) Cfal. 5. of the Holy Ghoft> iince not only Loiie^ but 2'^>2'S. jikewife F^/>/j, Long-fuffering^ and Meeknefsy which make up this Patience, are fpoken of as the Fruits of the Spirit. Or, ii by direEi- ing cur Hearts into the Love of God^ we un- derftand an acquainting and afFeding our Hearts with a fweet and affuring Senfe of his Love to us, this is likewife the Work of Rom. $. the Holy Ghoft, who Jheds abroad the Love of 5« God in our Hearts. But ftill more plainly the Holy Ghoft is ftifd the Lord, in the Apoftle's iThef.j.Prayer for the 7^^^/o;2f^72x, iVbiu God him- ' '» I i| felf and (or even) our Father, and our Lord ^* y^f^ Chrifl direB our way to you. And the Lord make you to increafe and abound in Love me towards another, and towards all Men, even as we do toward you , To the End He may eflah- lijh your Hearts unblameable in Holinefs before Cod, even our Father, at the coming of our Lord Jefm Chrifl with all his Saints. Here the Fa- ther and Son are diftindly fpoken of under perfonal Charaders, God our Father, and our Lord Jefm Chrifl -, and thereupon another Per- fon is mentioned after them, in diftindioR from them, And the Lord make you to increafe and abound in Love : And who can we fo na- turally fuppofe this Lord to be, as the Holy Ghoft, whofe fpecial Work it is to make m increafe and abound in Love one towards another j Col. I, hence 'tis call'd our Love in the Spirit, And then in the next Words, He is again diftin- guifh'd from the Father and Son, where the Apoftle prays that He might eflabUjh their Hearts unblameable in Holinefs. This He plain- ly refers to one of the three laft mentioned Perfons : But not to the Father ; for he was to eftablifh their Hearts before God, even the Father ; nor to the Son i for he was to eftab- lifh 8. ( $1 ) Hfli their Hearts at the coming of our Lofd Jefm ChrJfl ; and (o the Father and Son are ftiU diilingiiifli'd from this Perfon, who was to eflablijh them ; And therefore He moll: evi- dently refers to the next preceding Antece^ dent, who was call'd the Lord, and perfo- nally diflingui/h'd by that Tide from the Father and Son. And if this Lord was nei- ther the Father nor Son, he can be no other than the Holy Ghoft^ whofe peculiar Work it is, as the Holy Spirit, to eflablijh cur Hearts unblameahle in, Holinefs. Thus underftanding the Words, all appears natural, eafy, and genuine ; whereas any other Conftru(5^ion puts a Force upon them, and-flings the Mind into Confufion about the determinate mean- ing of the words. Lord, and He, 2. The Name God is likewife apply'd in art abfolute and proper Senfe to the Holy Ghoft. According to one Explication that was given of our Context, he is there exprefsly calfd the fame Lord, and thQ fame God, whd i Cof. is call'd the fame Spirit ; which I have fhewn rz. 5^6^ is the Holy Ghoft. His being call'd God 7- might be argued from thofe Places, which caft a Light upon one another, by affirming fuch things to be of the Spirit^ which are in other Places faid to be of God. Thus what is call'd a being bom of God, is afterwards Job. r, call'd a being bom of the Spirit, which fhewsi^ that this Spirit is the God, who is the Au-^^*^-^» thor of the New Birth. And thofe whom i Cor. 3, the Apoftle calls the Temple of God at one 16, 17. time, he calls the Temple of the Holy Ghofi at ^ Q^'"- ^^ another ; which fhews, that he is the God ^^* tvho dwells in Believers as his Temple. And who but God can be faid to dwell in us as G his (80 his Temple, fince a 'Temple \s always relative to God} and he that by way of Eminence dwells therein, is the fupreme God? As Mat.23.Chrifl: intimates when he fays, iVhofoeverJhall 21. fwear by the Temple^ fweareth by ity and by Him (meaning the only true God) that dwelleth therein. And when the Apoftle tells us his 1 Cox^i, pYeaching wa^ not ivith enticing Words of Mans ^» ^' Wifdom ; but in Demonfiration of the Spirit and of Power ; he adds in the next Words, that your Faith Jhould not fland in the Wifdom of Men y but in the Power of God, Which fhews that this Spirit is that God, in or by whofe Pow- er the Apoftle preach'd, and they believed. But we fhall have occafion to confider thefe Things farther, under fome following Heads of Argument. The Holy Ghoft is ftill more direftly fil- led Godi when he is fpoken of as that God A£ls s. to whom Ananias lyed. Peter faidy Ananias y 5> 4» iiohy hath Satan filled thy Heart to lye to the Holy Ghofl ? "Thou haft not lyed to Meny but to God, That which is calfd hy\v\^ to the Holy Ghofl is call'd a Lying to God, to fhew the Dignity of the Holy Ghoft, and to aggravate Ananias's Sin in lying unto him ; inafmuch as the Objed againft whom that Sin was moft diredly committed was God : And this ^' 9» is afterward calfd a tempting the Spirit of the Lordy agreeable to a like Phrafe of this A- ch. 15. poftle's, who on another occafion cautions a- '°* gainft tempting God, The Holy GhoRy and Gody are indeed dif- ferent Expreflions, and yet may well denote one and the fame Perfon ; for the Holy Ghoft, - and the Spirit of the Lord, ufed in the fame Difcourfe arc difi'erent Terms too, and yet there is no room to doubt but the fame Per- fon C 83 ) fon is meant by both : That Holy Ghoft to whom Ananias lyed, is that Spirit of the Lord whom he tempted. His lying to him was his tempting him, as it was an unbe- lieving wicked Experiment whether he could difcover and would refent the facrilegious Hypocrify of that Lye: And therefore it feems very abfurd to fiippofe that the Hc^y Ghoft was tempted, and yet is not the God to whom Ananias lyed, when by that Lye he tempted him. If it is faid, that lying to the Holy Ghoft Obj. was lying to God, becaufe the Holy Ghoft afted thro the Apoftles in the Name and by the Authority of God. It may be anfwer'd, Anfw, that this Reafon will make the Lye o^ Ana- nias to be againft the Apoftles themfelves, as well as againft the Holy Ghoft : and the Sin of that Lye would have been as proper- ly aggravated by faying it was committed againft them as againft him ,* for they like- wife fpoke and aded in the Nams, and by the Authority of God; and this Authority (if it is proper fo to fpeak) was lyed unto and affronted in them, as really, and more vifibly than in him. Hence it would have b^en as true, in the fame Senfe of the Phrafe, that Ananias lyed not to the Holy Ghoft, as that he lyed not to Men ; and *twould have been no more true that he lyed to the Holy Ghoft, than that he lyed to Men. But the Apoftle affirms that he did lye to the Holy Ghoft i and explaining the Senfe of that Expreflion, calls it his lyingmtto Men^ but to God, If the Holy Ghoft is not God, 'twould have been more natural and agreeable to the Apoftle's defign to have faid, He bed not to Men, nor to the Holy Ghofly but to Cod; or ra- G 2 ther C 84 ) ther It feems to me, that there was no Oc- eafion to have mentioned Mett at all in the Explication of his meaning. For nothing had been faid about lying to Men ; and therefore it feem'd to be an improper Expli- cation and Aggravation of that Sin to fay, 'fhou haft not lyed to Men, unlefs the Apoftle defign'd thereby tofhew that the Holy Ghoft, to whom it had been faid Ananias lyed, was infinitely greater than Men, even God himfelf. But admitting that the Holy Ghofl is God, nothing could be more apt and forcible to flrike Ananias's Confcience with Horror at the daring Guilt of that Lye to the Holy Ghofl, than to remind him plainly that 'twas not a common Lying to Men, but diredly to God himfelf. On the other hand, it having been faid that Ananias lyed to the Holy Ghofl, if the Holy Ghofl is not God, (and yet the Apoflle, to exaggerate the Crime committed againft Hhn, would call it a Lying to God) it feem'd very heceffary, both to anfwer the Defign of aggravating the Sin, and to prevent Miflakes, that he fhould havcSt faid, Thou haft not lyed to the Holy Ghoft ^ hut to God. This way of fpeaking is the conilant Ufage of Scripture on like Occafions, when 'twould diflinguifh God from Perfons, who are affronted or injur'd, as ading in his Name, and by his Authority. Thus Mofes and Aaron, having fpoken of IfraeVs Mur- muring againfl the Lord and them, explained themfeives, and aggravated that People's lixod. Sin, by faying, Tour Murmurings are not againft \6,'j,^.m, but againft the Lord, When Ifrael rejeded Samuel and his Sons, whom he had made 1 Sam.B. Juciges over them. The Lord faid to Samuel— '*'~^* They have not rejeBed tlee^ lut they have re- jeHed (8s) jeBed me. And the Apoftle fpeaklng of thofe that defpifed his Miniflrations, faid. He that i "^^^^^ defpifethy defpifeth not Men^ kit God, Ac- /i' ^' cordingly, it the Holy Ghoft is not God, but only aded in i^c Name and Authority of God, the Place he bears with refped to Ananias's Lye required that it fhould have been faid to Ananias, Thou lyed'ji not to the Holy Ghoft, but to God. But inftead of this, the Apoftle firft alferts that he lyedto the Holy Ghofty and then in the Explication and Ag- gravation of that Sin, he makes no diftin- dion between the Holy Ghoft and God, but only between Men and God, as the Objed: of it. The Holy Ghoft therefore muft be one of thefe ; and as it can't be pretended that he is meant by Meuy he muft needs be meant by God, who is fpoken of as lyed uii-» to, in oppofition to Men. 3. The Name jfj'.^O'z^/z^ is likewife apply'd in an abfolute and proper Senfe to the Holy Ghoft. The word Lord in the Nev} Teftament, which I have fhewn is fometimes apply'd to him, anfwers to Jehovah in the Old, and is the fame Word in the Greek by which the Seventy ufually cranflated Jehovah in the Hebrevj. And the Inftances I have given of Scripture-Interpretation, by which the Holy Ghoft is fhewn to be the Jehovah, and Jeho- vah or Lord of Hofts who fpoke in the Pfalms, and to the Prophet Ifaiah, are good Proofs of his bearing thofe Names. But befides all this, he in other Places, fpeaking in ihis own Name, calls what he faith, the fayings of Jehovah, and fo gives himfelf that Pengmination. The Spirit (faith the Pro- G 3 phet; (86 ) Ezck. ^ phet Ez>ekiel) enter d into tney and fet me on i4i 2.^, jfiy Fcety and /pake with me, andfaidto me. Go ^^* fii-ut thyfelf within thine Houfe,-^'- and I will make thy 'Tongue cleave to the Roof of thy Mouth. "—^But when I [peak with thee, 1 will open thy Mouth, and thou Jh ah fay unto them, thm faith the Lord God, he that heareth, let hi?n hear ; and he that forkareth, let him forbear. And the Spirit of the Lord fell upon 7ne, and f aid unto me, fpeakj thm faith the Lord, thm have ye f aid O Houfe of Ifrael, Te jh all fall hy the Sword, I imll judge you in the Border of Ifrael, and ye [ball know that I am the Lord, The Holy Ghoft is the only Speaker in all thefe and the inter- mediate Verfes ; and there is no Appearance but that he fptaks in his own Name, and calls himfelf the Jehovah, whofe WOrds the Prophet was to fpeak to the People. The Phrafe, thm faith the Lord, as 'tis ufed in thefe Places, don't, I conceive, intimate as if the Spirit fpoke in the Name of the Lord to the Prophet, as the Prophets ufed to do to the People ; for it appears very plain to me, that in thefe Difcourfes, thm faith the Lord, is not to be underftood as the Words of the Spirit fpeaking in the Nt.me of God, and fhewing his Commiflion to the Prophet,' but as the Words which He, afftrting Him- felf to be the Lord, put into the Prophet's Mouth to fpeak to the People. Hereby He (as God ufually did) gave due Weight to his Meflage as coming from the Lord or Je- hovah himfelf, who fpoke thefe Words to the Prophet, and gave him a Charge to fpeak them to the People. For in one of thefe Vlzcts the Spirit faid to the Prophet, l^hou fhalt fay unto them, thm faith the Lord Cod; &nd in the other, fjeaky thm faith the Lord, And And the Place which the Spirit bears herein, may receive Light from a like Speech of God to the Prophet Ifaiah. I'hen faid the Ifa. 7. Lord unto If at ah y go forth now to meet Ahazy-^ 5> 4> 7' and fay unto him take heed, and be quiet , fear not, neither be faint-hearted. "Thit^ faith the JLord God it fiaH not ftand, neither fijall it come to pafs. If the Lord, who here fpeaks, is the Spirit (as feems very likely, becaufe fuch fpeaking is often afcribed unto him) thea \is undeniable that he is called Jehovah, be- caufe 'tis exprefsly faid the Lord, or Jehovah fpoke to Ifaiah, Or, if the Lord, 01 Jeho- vah, is here confidered as the Denomina- tion of God abfolutely, or, of any other Perfon in the Godhead, then this Jehovah'^ faying to the Prophet, fay unto Ahazy—^thm faith the Lord, anfwers the Objedion taken from the like Form of Speech, ufed by the Holy Ghoft in his fpeaking to the Prophet Ez,ekiely and /hews that he fpoke of himfelf, as the Jehovah whofe Words the Prophet fhould deliver with a thm faith the Lord. But this and feme of the foregoing Texts have been farther illuftrated and vindicated by a better Hand f, and therefore I have the lefs infifted on feveral of them. Thus the Holy Ghoft is reprefented under thofe Names, that are proper and peculiar to the only Great and Sovereign God, fome of which Names are expreffive of the Nature pf God. And therefore i^ Names fignify any thing, as they certainly dp, they being t See the Scripture-DoHrine of the Trinity by Mfo Nelfon's Frieud, ^, 115, &c. and continued, /. 226, G ^ ^n^ C 88 ) Intended to be the Signs of Things, He whofe Name is emphatically the Spirity the Lovdy Gody and Jehovahy can t but be the infinitely Great and Almighty God. APPLICAT'ION. Ufe I. We may hereby fee the great Advan- tage of cornparing one Scripture with another. This, under the Guidance of the divine Spirit, is the likelieft way of coming at the Knowledge of the Truth as it is in JefuSo We can't realonably exped that every Branch of facred Truth fhould be always deliver- ed in plain and irrefiflably evident Propo- fitions, diredly afferting it in fo many Words. This would leave no room for Di- ligence in our Inquiries, or for Dependence on the Spirit of Truth to guide us in our Searches after Truth. And yet all things of Importance are fo clearly reveal'd, that what feems obfcure in fome Places^ is made very evident by comparing them with others. Many Inftances of this kind may be eafily obferv'd by comparing fome Places in the Old and New Teftament refpedtively, and in a very remarkable manner by comparing fome in the Old with others in the Ni^vj. Some Old'T'ejiament Texts confider'd by themfelves are very obfcure, but become very plain by^ confidenng them in the Light of New-fefia-^ went Explications, which can't but be infal- libly true^ becaufe they are God V own Com- jHenrs upon his own Words. ' The moral Law it fclf is better underflood by Chrifl's Explanation of it in the New feftament, than ever it was before. Many typical Tranfadions and Infiitutioiis of Wor- ^ ' ftip (89) fiiip under the Old Teflament Difpenfatioiv were hard to be underftood in their Refe- rence to the DoBrinesy Duties^ and Privileges^ which were to be brought in, or to befet in a fuller Light by the Goipel-Difpenfation, till by this Difpenfation they were explain d i And yet they had the fame meaning then as they have now, as the Apoftle remarks with refpe(^ to fome of them, when he tells us what they fignified during the Ti^ie of their Inftitution and Oblervance. 'The Holy Ghoft ^^^' 9» this SIGNIFY I NGy that the laay into the^^ Holieft of all ivas not yet made manifefiy WHILE CIS the firfl Tabernacle was yet /landing. The Incarnationy Sufferings y and Mediatorial Glory of Chrift, tho' very plainly fpoken of i\\ fome Places of the Old Teftament, were ne- verthelefs fo obfcurely hinted in others, that 'twas difficult to know whether fome of them had any reference to Chrift or no, till the New Teftament interpreted them of him. This is very obfervable with refpect to many Texts in the Pfalms and Prophets, But tho' they were not then fo well underdood in their Reference to Chrift as now, yet their real Meaning was the fame then as now. For the Prophets frophefying of the Grace that ^^^^' *• Jhould come to Hiy fearch'divhaty or what manner ' ' of time the Spirit of Chrifl which was in the7n DID SIGNIFTy WHEN tt teflfyd BEFOREHAND the Suffer ings of Chrifl, and the Glory that Jhculd follow. So in like manner, tho' there are feveral Oid Tefta- raent Texts, which fpeak very plainly of all the divine Perfons in the Godhead, yet there are others, which appear lefs clear and de- terminate, till they are underftood in the tight of the New Tefta^le^tJ and then ' ' ' ''' "■ ^' they (90) they fpeak with convincing Evidence. Bu| the explain'd Senfe of thofe Texts was air ways really the fame as now, and was capable of being known then, tho 'twas not equally pbviousj nor fo well underftood as now. As the fame Spirit is the Author both of the Old and New Teftament, which are together our perfed Rule of Faith and Pra- dicc;; the common Juftice due to other Au- thors, of determining their Meaning in more doubtful or lefs evident Places, by what they more plainly fay on the fame Subjeds in o- thers, is more abundantly due to the Holy Ghoft ; becaufe he is infallible in all that he fays, and is always of one Mind. A com- ^ paring therefore Scripture with Scripture jnuft be a profitable, fafe, and unexceptionable ^ule of Interpretation ; a Rule which the' Holy Ghoft himfelf has recommended to us, by his direding and influencing the infpir'd Penmen themfelves to fpeak and argue about I Cor. 2. divine Things, not in the Words which Mans ^3- Wtfdom teacheth, but which the Holy Ghoft te^ich^ ethy CO ikf P A RING ffiritual Things with fpirituaL ' ' Vfell. We may he^reby fee the GRACE of the Gofpel Difpenfatigny and the DJJi'T it lays upon m. His Grace appears, as in many other In- Hances, fome of which may be confider'd hereafter, fo in God's condefcendingto make a more clear familiar and inlarged Revelation of Himfelf to us Gentiles^ as well as to the 'Jewsy than He did to the Old Teftament Church. We once had nothing to do with the Sacred Oracles, but now have their laft and beft Edition, with fuch Additions as Ijiake up the fulleft Dxfcovery of God's Min4 an4 ( 91 ) and Will, that ever was defign*d for the In- flru(5iion of his Church in this lower World. How highly are we favoured of the Lord, who fpoke in times fafl to the Fathers by the Pro-- Heb. u fhetsy but hath in thefe laft Days fyoken to m i» 2* hy his Son, And that which at the firfl hegan to * V ^! be fpoken hy the Lordy was confirm d to m hy them that heard him; God alfo bearing them witnefsy both with Signs and Wonders^ and with divers Miracles y and Gifts of the Holy G ho fly according to his own JVilh The Veil which formerly covered the deep Things of God> is now taken off, that we may behold them with open Face in the Glafs of the Gofpel. And that which in other Ages was not plainly made ^ Cor. 3. known to the Sons of Meriy is now more iiiily 4?* reveal'd to his holy Apofiles and ProphetSy andr^^^ thro their means to us, by the Spirit, The great and glorious Things thus made known, are worthy of the Study of Angels, Things which they dejtre to look, into. And the Re- ^ ^^^' '• velation which God has made of them to * the Church is fo clear and abundant, that it improves the Knowledge even of the heavenly Hoft : He revealing them to this Intenty a- mong others, that now unto the Principalities -^^ih^ -^ and Powers in heavenly Places, might be known ic, by the Church the manifold JVifdom of God. O what an infinitely great and gracious Stoop is this in God to us, that He fhould g\vQ us Angels Fot)d, and teach us the Myfteries of his Will more full and plainly than he had ever taught, even thofe Attendants of his Throne, before ! The Light and Grace of this Difpenfatioti increafe our Obligations to Duty. The: clearer this Light isy the more ftrongly are we bound to believe in the mo/l lledfaft and ( 92 ) explicite Manner what God hath therein reveal'd of himfelf ; and the more abundant this Grace is, which appears in giving us this increafed Light, the higher ^re our Obliga- tions to bring forth the Fruits of Holinefs and Obedience unto God. How thankful Pfal, i6.fiiould we be, that our Line^ are fallen in plea^ <5- fant Places^ that we live in Gofpel-days, and in a Proteftant Gofpel-Land ! And how ajhamd, that we live no more according to Gofpel-Light ; that it has no better Effeds upon us ; but that our Faith is fo weak, and Qwi Obedience fo defedive ^s they are ! mr* i>yy< Titfiii SERMON (93) SERMON IV. I COR. xii. II, But all thefe worketh that one and the felf^fame Spiritj dividing to every Man fever ally as he will. WE have gone thro two Heads of Argument to prove that the Holy Ghofl is the Sovereign and AU mighty God^ and now proceed to a third. Thirdly, T^he divine Nature^ and ejfential Kig. ?« incommunicable Properties of the Great and So^ vereign God^ are fpoken of in Scripturey as the Nature and Properties of the Holy Ghoft, Tho the Names appropriated in Scripture to the only true God, are a fufficient Evi- dence that He to whom the Scripture applies them is indeed that God ,• and this being the Cafe (as has been fhewn) with refpeft to the Holy Ghofl, we are thereby afTured that He is that God : Yet 'twill tend ftill farther to fettle and fatisfy us, i( we find according to Scripture Evidence, that He likewife hath the true Nature and effential Properties of that infinitely blelled God, who is fet out to us (94) by thofe Names. Yea, this alione, one would think, might be fufficient to determine the Point, even tho He had not been call'd by thofe Names ; for this would effectually in- title Him to them ; and who would fcruple to call Him what He really is ? I ihall therefore proceed to confider fuch an Account of God in his Nature and ejfen^ t'tal Properties as the Scripture defcribes him by, to diftinguifh Him from all other Be- ings ; and jQiall fhew that the fame infallible Scripture defcribes the Holy Ghoft by them in its Application of them to Him. In pur- fuitof this Dciign, I /hall go thro the fame plain familiar Defcription of God, which was confider'd in my Difcourfe on Chrift's Deity, as 'tis gathered out of the Scriptures by the Ajjemhly of Divines in their Catechifm ; and Ihall endeavour to Ihew, that all its Parts agree to the Holy Ghoft; or that He is that Gody who i^ a Spirit y infinite, eternal^ and unchangeable^ in his Being, Wifdom, Power ^ Holinefs, Juf^ice, Goodnefs, and Truth, That this is a Jcriptural Defcription of God, and fuch a Defcription of Him in his Nature and ejfential Properties y as is fufficient to diftinguifh the one only true God from all other Beings, is fo evident of it felf, that 'twould be fuper- fluous to fay much upon it. The three iirft Properties, mentlon'd in this Account of God, are incommunicable , or fuch as, according to all our Notions of God or Creatures, taken from Scripture or Reafon, can't in a proper Senfe be convey 'd to a Creature; it being a Contradidion m Terms to fpeak of a Creature, who is pro* perly infinite, eternal, or unchangeable, that iSi in other Words, an infinitely perfect and ne- ( 95 ) neceflarily exiftent Creature without any Be-- ginning, poffibility of Change, or End, Who ever dreamt of fuch a Creature as this ! And tho there are fome Shadows of Refemblance in fome Creatures of the reft of the Proper- ties or Perfedions contained in this Defcrip- tion of God, yet confidering Thofe as clothed with infinite^ eternal^ and unchangeable y in that Confideration of 'em, they are equally in- communicable too. For 'tis impoffible that any but the infinite God fhould have them in that infinite, eternal, and unchangeable Manner ; fince infinity^ eternity^ and unchanged ablenefs join'd with thofe Perfedions, make up the mofl exalted and diftinguifhing Idea we can have of the only true God. If the Holy Ghoft is proved to be infinite, eternal, and unchangeable in his Beings that alone is fufficient to prove that He is fo in all the ejfential Attributes of his Being. For his Beingy and ejfential Attributes are, as far as we know, the fame Thing differently con- ceived of by us ; Or at leaft, it muft be al- low'd that the Being which is infinite, eter- nal, and unchangeable, muft be fo in all the ejfential Attributes that fhali be proved to be- long to it ; For 'twould be a Contradidion to talk of an infinite, eternal, unchangeable Being, and of finite, temporal, and change- able ejfential Attributes of that Being. And on the other hand, if it is proved that the Holy Ghoft is infinite, eternal, and unchan- geable in but one Attribute, that is a fuffici- ent Proof that He is fo in all his eflential Attributes, and in his Being too ; becaufe 'tis likewife a manifeftContradidion to talk of an infinite Attribute in a finite Being of finite ( 90 finite Attributes. Once more, if it is pt6^ ved that the Holy Ghoft is pofTefs^d of God's cflcntial Perfedions, that is a Proof that his Nature is the divine Nature, and that He is the only true God ; becaufe fuch Perfedions can't be fuppos'd to exift without their pro- per Nature ; and becaufe 'tis by thejH that God is what He is, in diflindion from all other Beings. So that a Proof that any one Part of this Defcription of God belongs properly to the Holy Ghoft, is in efFed a Proof of the whole ; and confequently a Proof of each Part, is of it k\f a diftind Ar- gument for the Reality of his Godhead; and a Proof of all its Parts, is a complicated? and to me unanfwerable , Proof oi the fame. Having premifed thefe things, I am now to fhew that this fcriptural Defcription of God in his divine Nature and effenrial Pro- perties, or Attributes, is the Defcription which the Scripture gives of the Holy Ghoft. 'Tis altogether needlefs to infift on Proofs that He is a Spirit^ or that He is a Spiritual Being, becaufe all the Names by vvhich He is known, aloud proclaim it. His common Titles are the Spirit^ the Spirit of God, and the HolyGhofi, and the like, as every one knows that has ever heard any thing ot Him. And tho thefe are apply'd to Him as perfonal Charaders, they neverthelefs allure us, that He is fuch a Perfon as is a Spirit ; and ac^ cordingly none that I know of, who own Him to be a Perfon, deny Him to be pro- perly a Spirit. This therefore being an a- greed and evidently determin'd Point, I fhall confider his divine Properties in order. I. the (57) 1. rhe Holy, GhoR is INFINITE in hi$ Being, or He is an infinite Spirit, He is not confin'd to any Place, or limi- ted within any Bounds j but like the infinite God is in all Places at once. 'Tis by Him that our afcended Redeemer fills all Things ; fph. a. All Ordinances, Officers, and Members ofio- Chrift are fill'd with Energy, Gitts, arid Gra- ces by the Holy Ghofl, according to Chrift's many Promifes of lending Him to thofc Purpofes. Hence the moft remarkable////w^ we ever read of in purfuance of Chriil's Af- cenfion, is declar'd to be by the Holy Ghoft. '' ';: 'Twas He that on the Day of Pentecoft fill'd the Difciples, and the Houfe where they were fitting, to the Amazement of all the Audience that crouded thither on that Oc- cafion ; and He fill'd the Apollles preaching with Efficacy, and a great Multitude of the Hearers Hearts with Grace. An Account of which you have at large Acis 2. Chapter throughout, He ftill fills the Officers of the Church with ordinary Giks, and their holy Adminiftrations with all the Power and Suc- cefs that attend them in all the Aflemblies of his People, (as may be hereafter fhewn) and therefore He mnft be every where prefent at once, to fill them all according as he willi wherever they are widely fcatter*d Abroad on the Face of the Earth. He is in Heaven, being one of the Three, who bear Record ihtv^ ; 1 Joh. 5= and yet the Heaven of Heavens cannot contain 7* him ; as is raid of Ifrael's Jehovah ; for He ^^^'^f is likewife upon Earth filling all Things y and having his Dwelling-Place in his Church and People as his Temple here. Tour Eodyy fays the Apoftle, is the Teniple of the Holy Ghoft,^ Cor. 6* vjhich is IN you. And iince there can be no*9» H im- ( 98 ) immediate Operation without the Prefencc of that which Operates, every Impreffion that He himfelf makes upon any Heart, in a way of common or fpecial Influence, is a Proof of his Omniprefence. That He is at once prefent in Heaven and Earth, appears to me with fatisfying Evi- dence. For I fuppofe none will fay that Chrifl: was totally deftitute of the Spirit when he went to be baptized, and yet the Spirit is. fpoken of as coming down from Heaven in a vifible Appearance at his Baptifm. . I'he Mat, 5. HE AVEN S ivere open to him, and he faw 16. * the Spirit of God D E SC EN D I NG Uke a Joii. I, Y)Qfue^ and lighting upon him. And John hare ^^- record faying, I faw the Spirit DESCENDING FROM HEAVEN like a Dove, and it abode upon him. This muft neceifarily fup- pofe that the Spirit was in Heaven at the fame time that he was by fome lower Mea- fures of Operation in Chriil's human Nature on Earth, antecedent to and at the Time of that moft remarkable Defcent from. Heaven upon Him. And after Chrift was fiird with the Spirit above Meafuret frill that Spirit was ch. 16. ^^ Heaven : For when Chrifl was with his T.'&is'. Difciples he told them, that unlefs he de- i6. parted, the Spirit would not come • but he would go to Heaven, and fend him from the Father to them, as one that was prefent with him ; which fhews that this Spirit ilill abode with the Father in Heaven after he was given without Meafure to Chrifl confi- der'd in his human Nature on Earth. Ac- cordingly after Chrifl's Afcenfion, this Spi- Acls2.2.rit came like a Sound jrom Heaven upon the Difciples on the Day of Pentecofl ; and yet this Spirit was with tliem, in fome low De- grees r 99) grees of Influence, with refped to the Gifts and Grace they had before this plentiful Undion. Hence faid Chrift to his Difciples before this Effufion, He (the Spirit of Truth) dwelleth in you, as well as fiallle in you, Thejoh. I4» giving of this Spirit according to an 2gr^^<^/fa' ,, Difpenfation is call'd a pouring him upon ^15,* from on HIGH ; and yet, notwithftanding he is pour'd from on High upon us, He is fpoken of asftill continuing in Heaven, be- ing reprefented with refped to his manifold Operations, as the [even Spirits luhich are before^^^* '^ God'sy viz, the FathQv's Throne ; which may'*' hereafter be fhewn to be meant of this Spirit, who is but one Spirit, tho his Gifts and O- perations are many. All this makes up a convincing Evidence, that the Spirit's moft eminent Refidence is in Heaven, as God's is ufually reprefented to be ; and yet that, he hath a conftant Being and Operation on Earth, diverfifying that Operation according to his PJeafure on the Hearts of thofe in whom He dwells. With refped to thefe O- perations. He is faid to come unto us as often as He renews them upon us : But this (as "has been obferv'd) is no more a Proof of any Removal of his eflenrial Prefencc, as if he left Heaven when he comes to us, than it was of fuch Removal of God's effential Prefence when he was faid to l^ozo the Hea-^^^^» 10. vens and coine doivn, and to go and return to his^ ^ Place, or when Jehovah, 3.t the Building of^/ Bahel, was faid to come down to fee the City andOtn. li, Toiver, which the Children of Men builded, and^y 7« to go deivn and there confound their Language. i^Ior is the Spirit's b^ing fent fl'om Heaven any more a Proof that he leaves Heaven when he €omes to us, than 'tis that God's Mercy and H 3 hi^ ( ICO ) his Truth leave Heaven, when he is faid to rtal. $7 'fend them from Heaven to fave m. ^^ It has been urged by fome, that Satan may be faid to be Omniprefent as well as the Holy Ghoft, becaiife he operates in many Places at once, as appears from his being call'd the Spirit that Worketh in the Children of Difobedience, at one and the fame time wherever they are ; and the Devil who leads them Captive at his Will. But this Obj'edion will have little force, if we confider that as there are innumerable Devils, fo wdien we read of Satany the Devily and the unclean Spirit, we may underftand thefe Terms as Names of Multitude y including more evil Spi- rits than one. Many Devils are fometimes fpoken of coiledively in the fingular Num- ber, as i^ they were all but one Devil, be- caufe they make all but one Kingdom, are united like a Body Politick, and agree in one Intereft and Defign. Or if we fuppofe the Chief or Prince of Devils, to be fometimes meant by thefe Names, yet his Adlings may be underilood as including the Adings of lefler Devils, that are under his Dominion, and obferve his Orders. Thus by Satan Chrift means more Devils than one, when he fays. If Sar.n cafi out Satan, that is, if one or Matth. T^oxQ. Devils call out others, he is divided a- 12. 7.6, gainfl himfelfy that is, the Kingdom or Body Politick of Devils is divided againft it {qK, as the next Words explain it. How jhall then his Kingdom ft and} And in the following Verfes this caflin'g oat of Satan is call'd a V. 27,28. cafting out of Devils. In like manner the M.rk 5. Demoniack that met Chrift out of the Tombs, 2. is calfd a Man ivith an unclean Spirit ; and Chrift fpoke to this Spirit as to one fingle Pcrfon, ( lOI ) Perfon, Come out of the Man, thou unclean Spi- v. 8. rit. And yet this Spirit fays of himfelf, A4y Name is Legion ; for we are many. Now 'tis^ 9» obvious that the Devil, coniider'd as inclu- five of many EviJ Spirits, may be in many . Places at once ,• and yet no one of thofe Spi- rits can be fo. But the Holy Ghoft is ex- prefsly faid in our Text and Context, to be but one and the fame fingle Spirit^ tho his Gihs and Operations in different Perfons and Places at once are many. This neceffarily fuppofes that this one Spirit is at once in all thofc Places where he Works by his own im- mediate Agtncyy and confequently that He is Omnipreftnt. Hence the Pfalmifly fpeaki-ng of the Om- niprefence of God, reprefents that of the Spirit as equal to it, and even the fame with it. Whither Poall I go from thy Spirit .^*Pfi-i?9. or whither jhaU I fly from thy Prefence ? If /J' ^»^» afcend up into Heaven, 'Thou art there i if I ^ make my Bed in HeU, behold, Thou art there ; if I take the M^tngs of the Morning, and dwell in the uttermofl Parts of the Sea ; even there Jhall thy Hand lead me, and thy right Hand /hall hold me. Some by God's Prefence underftand the Son, who is call'd the Angel of his Prefence ',i^^^ ^ and fo this Text is a. Teftimony to the Om-p. ' niprefence of all the Perfons of the Trinity, with refpeft to Being and Opcrati/Dn. How- ever, the Spirit is exprefsly mention'd, by his proper diiHnguifhing Title, under the Cha- racter of fuch Omniprefence, that 'tis im- polTible to fly froni it : Whither fiaU I go from thy Spirit'^ And to Ihew that the Omnipre- fence of the Spirit is the Omniprefence of God himfelf, the Pfalmifi in the next Verfe H 3 argues ( IC2 ) armies from that to thuy exprelTing his Ap- prehenfions on that account of the ImpoiTi- bility of finding any Place in Heaven, Earth, or Hell, where God is not. If I afcend up into Heaven^ T'hou an there^ dec. To fuppofe that this Name, thy Spirit, is a Poetical Flight, fignifying, not the Holy Ghoft, but fome Property of God, is a very bold and dangerous Straining of proper and diftin- guilhing ExprefHons into loofe and indeter- minate Metaphors, and is a Violation of all juft Laws of Interpretation, when the Nature of the Things fpoken of admits of a pro- per Senfe, as we have fecn it doth in this Cafe, by what has been faid concerning the Omniprefence of the Holy Ghofl, who ufu- ally bears the Title of the Spirit of God. 2. He is a Spirit who is ETERNAL in his Being. He is exprefsly call'd the eternal Spint, in diftindion from the Father and Son, when Chriil: is (aid thro the eternal Spirit to have Heb. 9. offer d himfelf without Spot to God. He was be- *4» fore all Things, becaufe the Maker of them, as may be fhewn hereafter. He always was the Spirit of God, there behig no account of any Beginning he ever ha fearching, when fpoken of as God's Ad, de- notes the mod: intimate and perfed Know- ledge of Things that lie beyond the Percep- tion of others, as is plain when he fays, / the Lord SEARCH the Heart, in oppofiti- on to itsUnfearchablenefs by others. And jhall not God SEARCH this out ^ For he]^r. ij. knowetb the Secrets of the Heart. Hence faid ^' David, 0 Lord thou haft SEARCHED ??^^^^ "^^^ and known me ; 'Thou knoweft my down-fitting pf»i. and mine upriftngy thou tmderftandeji my 'Thoughts i^p* i» afar off, &c. Such Knowledge is too wonderful^* ^^^» for me. Now the Spirit's thus fearching a//^' l*bings, is a very full Expreilion of Omnifci- ence. But left we fhould confine it to created Things, 'tis farther added, jy^-^, the deep Things of God, To know the deep Things of God can be nothing fhort of infinite Knowledge; For he that knows the infinite Depths of God's Being, Counfels, and Operations, muft have an infinitely knowing Capacity, or be as infinitely knowing as the God he knows. And the Spirit has not this by Infpiration or Revelation from God,- but by Nature as the Spirit of God, who of himfelf is fuffici- ent for it, as appears from the Illuftration of it in the next Words, by the Spirit of a Man's knowing the Things of a Man, which it is acquainted with by its own eflential Power of Intuition and Principle of Reafon inhe-^ rent in itfelf For 'what Man [G^r. * who of i Cor, 2. Men] knoweth the Things of a Man fave the n. Spirit of a Man zvhich is in him ? Even fo the Ttitlv- Things of God knoweth no Man C^^'- 1 none] 7^};j^; to the Spirit of God. Others know fome- thing of 'em by Revelation, but none but the Spirit, together with the Father and Son, know^ ( ic8 ) knows 'em originally of himfelf. The Fa- ther and Son can't be excluded from this Knowledge, becaufe they, tho different Per- fons, are the fame God with the Spirit ; but ail that are not God, are excluded from it. This Account of the Spirit's Knowledge ex- aftly anfwers Chrifl's Expreilions about his own and his Father's original perfect Know- ledge of each other ; which is likewife to be underftood inclurfive of this Spirit to the ex- Mat.ii.clufion of all that are not God. No Man i^: ft , [Gr. I none] knows the Son but the Father, net- ^' ther knoweth any Man the Father fave the Son^ and he to ivho?nfoever the Son will reveal him. And yet the Father and Son certainly know themfelves, and the Text we are upon fhews that the Spirit knows them too. Thefe Texts caft fuch a Light upon one another, as fliews that the Knowledge of the Spirit is the fame with that of the Father and Son, to the ut- ter exclufion of all others from fuch fort of Job II. Knowledge. For Canfi thou by feanhing find 7. out God ? Canfl thou find out the Almighty td PerfeBion ? If the Spirit's knowing the deep 'Things of God ffiould be underftood as relating only to the Secrets of God's Counfels and TViH, and that the Spirit of God, and none but He, is ac- quainted with them, as the Spirit of a Man is with the Secrets of his own Bofom, to the exclufion of all others ; this ftill maintains the Argument for his infiniteGod-likeKnowledge, fince none but the great God himfelf can by his own natural AbiHty know thcCc.For who R.oin.ii. hath known the Mind of the Lord, or who hath been 3'4 his Counfeller ? This Interrogation excludes all others, but the Lord himfelf, from knowing the Secrets of his Mind ; and yet we ar^ told thq ( IC9 ) the Spirit fe an bet h or knows thefe, and there- fore He muft be excepted from the Rank of all Creaturesy and be included in that God himfelf, who knows his own Mind and his own deep Things. Hence the Knowledge of the Spirit is defcrib'd in likeCharadcrsof Self-fufficiency as the Knowledge of God isy fVI)0 hath direBedthe Spirit of the Lord^ or le-^^^^'^^' ing his Connfella hath taught him ? With whom * ^' took he Counfely and ujho JnfiruEied hint, and taught him in the Path of Judgment , and taught him Knowledge, andjhewed to him the way of Underflanding ? Accordingly, when. Chrift fpoke of the Day of Judgment, Alark 15. 32. and excluded a/l Men, and the Angels in Heaven, and himfelf AS Man, he did not ex- clude the Holy Ghofi from the Knowledge of it. And tho the Evangelift Matthew repre- fents Chrift as faying, Of that Day and Hour Mzt.i^, knoweth no Man, no not the Angels of Heaven, ^ • but my Father only ; that is to be underflood of his Father inclufive of the Spirit, as well as of himfelf confider'd in his original Na- ture, to the excluHon of all Creatures (and particularly of Chrift's human Nature^ and of Men and Angels) as appears from the foregoing Inftances of like neceffary Inter- pretation, which we have juft now taken Notice of Since Chrift mentions the high- eft Intelligences next to the only true God, and excludes 'em all from this Knowledge, we can't reafonably fuppofe but he would havemention'd the Holy Ghoft, and excluded him from it, in cafe he really is not God, and did not know the Day o^ Judgment. . And as his Knowledge reacheth to the Se- crets of God's Heart, io it doth to the Se- crets of ours. How elfe could he reveal God's Clio) God's Secrets to them by inward and im- preiTive Illumination, and that in the mofi: feafonable Times and Circumftances, when our Confciences tell us, and he knows, they are moft critically fuited to our inmoft Exi- Eph. I. gencies ? Hence he is call'd the Spr/t of 17,18. Ij/ifdom and Revelation in the Knowledge of .. ; Chrifi) the Eyes of our Under/landings being in^ Ifa. II. lightened by him. And again, 77?^ Spirit of *• IVifdom and Counfel to guide us in the moft in- tricate Paths of Life. And how could He Rom. 8. /y^ip Q^y Souls Infirmities^ and dired and aflift * * us how to pray, and what to pray for per- tinently, unlefs he knew our Hearts, and was fully acquainted with all the Principles, Defires, Hopes and Fears, Straits and Con- ^idiSy that fecretly work in them } If he dwells in all Believers at once, he can't but be acquainted with his own Habitation ,• he can't be a Stranger to his own Home, or be ignorant of what is tranfaded there. Yea, the Apoftle appeals to him, as to the Sear- Rom. 9. cherandKnowerofhisHeart, I fay the T'nitb '• in Chrift:, I lye not) my Confcience alfo bearing meWitnefsin the Holy Ghoft. This Know- ledge which the Holy Ghoft has of our Hearts, can be no other than the infinite Knowledge of God ; fince he claims it as Jer. 17. his Peculiar, I the Lord fearch the Heart. And 10' I'hou, (zys Solomon y even Thou ONLTknovjeft ^ ^^"S' the Hearts of all the Children of Men. ' ' To conclude, The Omniprefence of the Holy Ghoft bears into our Minds an unan- fwerable Proof of his Omnifcience ; for he can't but know every thing if he is every where prefent, as an infinite intelligent Spirit. Accordingly he is reprefented, as if he was ^^^' 5* all Eye, when he is calfd the Eyesfeven of the Lambx ( III ) Lamb, which are the f even Spirits of God, fent forth into all the Earth, A Defcription that bears fome Analogy with that which is gitren of the Omnifcience ef God. T'he Lord's Pfal. ii. Throne is in the Heavens ^ his Eyes be hold ^ his A* Eye-lids try the Children of Men, 5. He is infinite in POWER. He is call'd the Spirit of Mighty to denote ifa. n^ the All-powerful Energy of his Operations.!.' And the mighty Signs and Wonders, which were wrought in Confirmation of the Gof- pel, and carry 'd the moft unqueftionable Charaders of Divinity upon them, were per- form'd by the Power (f the Spirit of God, Hence Rom.rj« he is fpoken of as the Finger of God. /, ^^' faysChrift, by the Finger of God cafi out D^-^^'^^"* vils ; and this is interpreted by another Evan- Mat, 12, gelift, as his cafting out Devils by the Spirit ofzS, God, At other times he is call'd the Hand o£ the Lord. T'he Hand of the Lord, fays Ez.e-^ Ezek, 8. kiely fell upon me, And he put forth the Foi-mii 5, of an Hand, and took me by a Lock of mine Head, and the SP I RiT lifted me up betzveen the Earth and the Heaven, The Finger and Hand of the Lordj fpeaking after the manner of Men, are Reprefenrations of God as exert- ing his Almighty Pozuer in his various Ope- rations. And becaufe this is done by the Holy Ghofl; as the moft immediate ading Perfon in the Godhead, therefore he is fpo- ken of under thefe Metaphors. But how the Holy Ghoftfhould put forth the Almighty Power of God, unlefs he himfelf is Almighty^ furpaffes all my Conceptions. Nor do thefe Metaphors import that he is fomething diffe- rent from God, or that the Power he puts forth is not his own: For as the Finger or Hand of a Man is a part of the Man him- felf, fcir, fo, tho God has no Parts, but is one undivided Being, yet the Holy Ghoft's being caird the Finger of God, and the Hand of the Lord, may intimate to us, that he is f6 his ..Finger and Hand, as to be one in Na- ture wuii him, and to put forth the infinite Power oi-' the Deity as his own Power in all his Operations. Hence as the Fir^ger and Hand of the Lord are fometimes ufed as Denominations of the Ho'y Ghoft, fo at other times they are made the Denominations of God's Almighty Pow- er put forth in divine Operation, which fliews that the Power of this Spirit is the infinite Power of God himfelf. Thus when he wrought Miracles by Mofes beyond the Imitation of the JE^>^^/^;:^-Magicians, they acknowledging the Power of Gad therein, Zxod.S.f^-^ to Phara^hy^ T'hu n the FINGER 0 F '^* GOD, And at another time 'tis call'd his Exod. J.Hand, /, faid God, . will firetch out MT ^^* HANDy and fmite Egypt ivith aH mj Won- ders, Accordingly the Prophet fpeaking of If'a. $9. God's Omnipotence fays. Behold the Lord's Handy or Power, is not Jljortened, that it can- not fave.- And the fame fort of Language is ufed of the Spirit to fhew his inexhauftibJe Mic. 2. Omnipotence, O thott that art named the Houfe 7* of Jacob, is the Spirit of the Lord ftraitend ^ When the Men of Cypm and Cyrene — fpake to the Grecians, preaching the Lord Jefm, we are A£ls II. told, the Hand of the Lord wm with them^ **• and a great Number believed, a^nd turned to the Lord, This Hand of the Lord, I conceive^ may be here underftood either of God's ex- ceeding great Power, or of the Holy Spi-^ rit, who put forth that Power. And tho it feems that the Power of tie Holy Ghojl is not ufed ufed as aperfcml Chara(5ler of the Holy Ghoft, yet to iliew that the Power he puts forth is the infinite Power of God, His coming upon the Virgin to form Chrift's Body of her Sub- fl;ance,is call'd the Pow^r of the Highe/fs coming ^^j^g ^^ upon her for that Purpofe. This Divine 55. Power is the Principle of his Operation, and what can that be lefs than Infinite ? But the Omnipotence of the Spirit will farther ap- pear when we come to fpeak of his diving JVorks, 6. He is Infinite in HOLINESS. His moil ufual Titles are the Holy Ghofl^ and the Holy Spirit^ as all know who know . any thing of him. T'ake not thy HO LT ^'^ ' '^^* Spirit from me, fays David. And the Co'm- iCouj"^, munion of the HOLT Ghojl he loith yen allyi^. fays the Apofile. But *tis needlefs to repeat any more of the numerous well-known Tefti- monies of this fort. And tho Holy^ when made an Epithet of the Spirit, may have a fpecial Relation to his peculiar Work in the OEconomy of Salvation, as he is the Author of all the Holinefs of the Church; yet this is fo far from being an Objedtion againil the infinite Holinefs of his Ndture^ that it carries great Evidence of it. For the Nature of a Caufe is beft known by its moft conllant genuine and remarkable Effeds. Voluntary Agents ad fuitable to their own Naiure ; and the higheft Evidence of their moral Principles lies in their uniform Ads with re- fped to Things of a morai Confideradon. We therefore can'c fuppofe that the blefled Spirit fhouid be the free and continual Worker of all Holinefs in numberlefs Num- bers of others, and not be altogether Holy himfelf. How could he fill the human Na- I ture ("4) ture of Chrift with all the Holinefs 'twas inrich'd with beyond Meafurey and fpread Holinefs far and wide among all the Mem- bers of his myflical Body, unkfs he had in- finite Capacities of doing it, and an infinite Pleafurc in doing it ? He can't but be Him- felf perfectly Holy, fince 'tis hischofen Work and Delight to promote and diffufe Holi- nefs. God's infinite Holinefs is fpoken of as the Ground of his Sandifying his People, and demanding that they ihould be Holy. Lev. 21. Hence he was ufually call'd the Holy One of 8. Jfrael, and faid to them, / the Lord ivhich ^.^^*^* ^' SanBify yoih cim Holy ; and Be ye Holy^ for I ^ * am Holy. If thefe Things are Proofs of his infinite Holinefs, as they are generally thought to be, why fhould we not think the fame with refped to the Holy Ghofi, fince all the Holinefs that is found in every true Ifraelite, z Thef. 1^ j.j_j^ SanBification of the Spirit ; and he, Eph!*4. fptaking after the manner of Men, is grievdy 29, \q\ when his holy Work is counter- acted by us. ?!• This is fufficient to afTure us, that he is not a Pfa-1. 4. Qq^ ^Ij^^ fj^.fj Pleafure in iVakednef, but is Hab. I. of purer Eyes than to behold Iniquity without the 15. utmoft Adhorrence of it, as is faid of the only true God. Accordingly we find him equally concern'd with the Father and Son, Ifi. ^. ^^ ^^^^ triple foiemn Acclamation, Holy, Holy^ 3» * ' Holyy Lord God of Hofts ! which has been fhewn by feveral Circumflances of the Con- text to relate to the Holy Ghoft, who is thereby proclaimed and acknowledg'd to be originally, effentially, and equally Holy with the Father and Son, he being in Nature or Efience the fame infinitely holy God with iJiem. 7. He r 115) 7. He is Infinite in JUSTICE, This Spirit will not ahmys firive iv:th Man. Gen. 5, Tho in a way of commcm Operation he bears >* in Light and C.onvitftions to Sinners Confci- ences, to awaken within them lively Appre- henfions of their Sin and Danger, to check the Madnefs of their Hearts againft God, to fhew them the way of Recovery by Jefns Chnft, and to make them fenfible of the Ne- cellity and Advantage of a Return to God thro him : And tho he bears long with them, and renews good Imprcil^ons after many Re- pulfes from them ; yet if they continue wil- fully to lliuc their Eyes againfi the Light/ to ftifle Convictions, to harden their Hearts a- gainft them, and to go on obftinately in their old Ways of Sin, he will not -always wreftle with them, but in his righteous Judgment give them up to their own Blindne's and Hardnefs of Heart, till they fhali be pad all Hope of ever being reclaim'd ; according to thofe awful Words of the Apoflle to the gain-faying Jews: Well fpake the HO LTAds iS, G HOST by Ijaiah the Prophet unto our Fa-^S,i6^ thers, faying, Go unto this People and fay, hear-^"^' ing ye [ball hear, and jhall not underfland, and feeing ye Jhall fee^ and not perceive : For the Heart of this People is waxed grof, and their Ears are dull of hearing, and thetr Eyes have they clofed ; le[l they jhould fee with their Eyev, and hear with their Ears, and underfland with their Heart, and jhould he converted, and \jhonld heal them. What a tremendous Indance is this of the infinite Juftice of the Holy Ghoft in this difmal righteous Judgment on har- den'dand refolute Sinners. He likewife difplays his Rig'iteoufnefs in convincing Sinners of the exceeding Stridtnefs I 2 of of divine Juflice, of its high Demands upon them, and of their Obnoxioufnefs to its vin- dictive Refentments ; and in leading them to truft in the perfed Righteoufnefs of Chrift, and in nothing fhort of that, to anAver for them. He furthermore afferts his Juflice in appearing for his People to refcoe them from cruel Opprcflbis, and in executing righteous Judgments on his and their Enemies. Hence ITa. 59. f^y^ j.|^g Prophet, H^?en the Enemy jlmll come '^^ m like a Fkod, the SPIRIT of the LordJJmll lift Tip a Standard againft him. And when God's People of old were unjuftly opprefs'd by their Enemies. 'The Spirit vf tie Lord a- nointed Rulers with Wifdcm, Strength, and Courage to avenge them on their infulting Foes. Several Accounts of which v.re have at Judg. 3. large in the Book of ^iidgesy particularly in '^•^' the Cafes of Othnid zxiA Jsphtha, * * • ^^* 8. He IS infinite in GO'ODNES S. Matt.ip. There is none good, fays Chrift, hut One, that *7* is God. But thy Spirit is good, fays the Pfalmift, I/^' juft in the fame manner as he on a like Oc« 2,/ 8. cafion faid, Good, and Upright ts the Lord. He is Neh.9. caird by way of Eminence the good Spirit, and 20. at other times the Spirit of Grace. He is the ^^\^^' Author of all Grace and Goodnefs in us, and Heb. 10 ^^^ therein with infinite Love and Kindnefs fcp, ' " to us. And as this is an Argument to prove God's infinite Goodnefs, fo 'tis of confide- rable weight to prove the infinite Good- nefs of the Spirit, to whom we may fay> Yfa.iip. -figp^ art God and dofi good. But this Property "^* of the Holy Ghoft will appear more at Length, when we come tp (peak of his gra" ciom Operatiqns. p. He (117) p. He is Infinite inTRVTH. He is often call'd the Sfirit of Truth -^ and Job. r^j. is faid to be Truth it felf, 'T/'j- f^.- Spirit that '7- beareth fVanefs, becatifs the Spirit is T'rutb ^ and ^^ \'^^* hereupon he is join VI in the next Verfe with^ ^* the Father and Son, as an authentick Wit- nefs, of original Veracity, equal to them. For there are three that hear Record in Heaven^ the Father, the IVordy and th^ Huly Ghoft, and thefe three are one. As *tis faid of God, that He cant ly^^ and abides faithful^ and cant -deny ji^ j ^ himjelf : fo it may be faid of this Spirit of i Tim.'i! T'rutb ; his being /o, aflures us he cant lye, or 45. fay any thing but Truth ; for that would be to deny himfelf, as he is Truth, and the Spirit of Truth. Accordingly the Apoftle John^ fpeaking of the Anointing which Believers receive from Chrift by his Spirit, fays, 'tis Truth, and is no Lye. We may depend on all i Joli.z. that he fays in his Word, and on all that he ^7- fpeaks to our Hearts, which is always ac- cording to his Word. He is infallible in his fpeaking, and all that he fpeaks muft have an infallible Accomplifhment according to his Intent therein. Hence faid the Apofde Ads r> Peter, Men and Brethren, this Scripture MUST^^* NEEDS have been fulfilled, ivhicb the HOLT G HOST by the Mouth of David fpake before concerning Judas, And the Neceffity of many- Things being doing with refpect to Chrift> is often laid on what the Holy Chofi had faid in the Scripture of him. Ail the Infallibility of the Prophets and Apoilks was deriv'S fi-om this Spirit. We never read of his bet- ing infpir'd to make him infallible; but his own Infallibility and Authority, whenever he fpoke in and by the Prophets, was fuSi- Qent tp feciire the Truth of all that thcv I 3 faid (ii8) . faid under hislnfpiration ; and therefore 'tis often repeated^ He that hath an Ear, let him hear what the Sf hit faith to the Churches. Rev. Chapters 2d and 3d. And what is this but to refer us to the fupreme Authority and abfolute Infallibility of the Spirit, for the Truth and Obligation of what is fpoken ? Thus we fee that all the Parts of this De- scription of God in his Nature and ellential Properties belong by Scripture- Application to the Holy Ghoji ; which fufficiently fhews that He is indeed the Almighty True and Sovereign Go4. And in what refpeds 6V/f- origination, Indepndmcy, and ahfokite Supre- macy are contain'd in this Defcription, was t See condder'd in my Sermons on Chrift's God- P-90- head, t A P P L I C A 7' I 0 N. life I. This fhews us the Honour ^ Safety, and Bleffedmfs of thofe in whom the Holy Ghofl dwells by fpecial Relation and graciom Opera- tion. The higher the Dignity or Excellence of any Perfon is-, the greater is the Honour of having his Company. How do Perfons of low Degree think themfelves honoured, i£ they are admitted into the Prefence of Nobles, Princes, and Kings of the Earth ; and how much more if thofe grand Perfo- nages condefcend to come to them, to dwell and converfe familiarly with them, and to ' employ their Wifdom, Power, and Treafure for their Comfort and Safety ? But what is this to the Holy Ghojfs coming to us, cout verling with us, and dwelling in us as his Temples and fettled Refidence, and employ* ing (119) Ing his AU-fufEciency for our Safety and Blcifednefs, fince He is the great Jehovah who has all divine Perfedions in Himfelf, yea, and fince with Him, the Father, and Son come likewife to us, and take up their A- bode with us. And yet this Honour have all the Saints. If when Araunah fa ^v King David come to him, he cry'd out with W^onder, Wherefore is my Lord the King come unto his z Sam. Servant ? How much more may we wonder 2'4« 2-1- that the Lord the Spirit fhould come to us, ihould fearch and find us out, and come to make his Abode with us ; with L7j-, who are nothing Abjeds, and were before the Habi- tation of Devils, and of every \ale AfFedion ! If Solomon was ftruck with Amazement, that he a great King fhould be employed in build- ing an Houfe for the Lord, faying, Who am 2. Chron. /, that IJhouId build him an Houje ? How afto- ^- ^• nifhing muft it be to us, that we our felves fhould be his Houfe, and fhould be filfd with that Glory by him,which the vifible Glory that appear'd in Solomons Temple was but an Emblem of? What are we wretched Diiil and Afhes, that this great and blefled Spirit fhould appropriate us to himfelf, for a Ha- bitation where he will dwell, and difplay a divine Glory 1 We may well fay to him, as the Difciples did to Chrift, Lord, hoiu is ^'^ joj,, ^, that 'thou wilt manifefl thy f elf to m, and not 2,1, unto the iVorld ? And where this divine Perfon dwells, there can't but be the utmoft Sjfety, and the bed Kind cf Blejjednefs ; Blelfednefs in its fure Beginnings here, and Bkflednefs to be en/oy'd without Defed or Allay in the hea- venly Manfions for ever hereafter. He is Infinite in Wifdgm to guide us in all our ■'•14 »ark^ ( 120 ) Parknefs, and to Co mfel us in all our Diffi- culties. Infinite in Power to defeat Satan in his Attempts upon as ; to fubdue our Ini- quities in us> and to captivate our Hearts to the Obedience ot Faith ; to ilrengthen us for all Duties to which we may be cail'd in doing or fufFering the Will of God ; and to work all our V*/orks in us and for us. Infi- nite in Holinefs to change us into the Image of God, to fandify os throughout in Body, Soul, and Spirit, and to prelervT us blame- lefs to the coming of Chrifl. Infinite in yuflke to take away the Captives of the Mighty, and to deliver the Prey of the Ter- rible, to refcue the Redeemed from the U- furpations and Tyranny cf Satan, and to confound the Rage of his and their Enemies, and over-rule it to his Glory and their Good. Infinite in Goodnejs to help our Infirmities, to be our Comforter in all Tribulations, to Hied God's Love abroad in our Hearts, and to enable us to cry Abba Fathe-^ . Infinite m I'ruth to apply the great and precious Promi- fes to us, and to deal with us according to them. And He is Eternal and Unchangeable in all thefe Perfcdions, and in his Love and Care to exert them for the Safety and B.'ef- fedncfs of the Heirs of Glory. O with what Majcfty and Sweetnefs iriuft the Spirit's Applications of his Word come unto our Hearts, fince He therein ads as God, who has all Sufficiency in himfelf to make entry into theie Hearts, and then to fecure his Habitation from Ruin, and to furnifii it wirh all the Beauties and Delights \i$ ca- pable of receiving ! ( "I > XJfe 11. Let m take heed bozo we treat the Holy Gh'ifti cr behave it toward Hm. His Name is ^jehouuhy and He is by Na- ture what He is call'd, Jehovah^ Lord, and God. With what awful Reverence then flioukl we ^^.Iways think and fpeak of hisPerfon and Operations, never daring to pour C ontempt on one, or to difregard or refift the other ? Some of his Operations are with all-con- quering Efficacy to mader the Scubbornnefs and Diibbcdience of our Hearts, and to difpoliefs the Prince of Darknefs from them. And O how fhould we long for thefe, if we have not yet been favour'd with them ! And how thankful fhould we be, if we have felt any thing of them ! But there are others which thro inobfervance on one hand, or thro rebellious Oppoficion againft them on the other, may, and alas ! too often do pafs off ^vithout any faving Effeft. 'Twas God's Co.xiplaint of his profefTmg People of old, that they Ysbell'd and vex d his hAy Spirit-, ^^^^Ifa. 65. therefore- he wa^ turnd to be their Enemy ^ and ic. fought againfi them. They in Defiance of all his great and kind Appearances for them, wickedly rebell'd and turn d againft him, till he righteoufly turn'd his Difpcnfations, and fought againft them in their Spiritual as well as Civil Concerns j for, among other Judg- ments, He fent Leannefs into their Souls. I /*^."^ pray God the like Complaint may not lie ^ againfi any of you, and that the like tremen- dous Judgments may not befall you. Suffer me to expoflulate the Cafe a little both with unrenewed and renew'd Perfons about their Behaviour toward the Holy Ghoft, as it C 122 ) may aSed their Spiritual Interefls refpec- tively. I . Let unregenerate Sinners take heed how they behave it toward him. Has not this good Spirit fometimes touch'd your Hearts by fome flidden Impreflions be- fore you were aware ; Has he not drawn near to your Spirits in the hearing or read- ing of his Word, or in Meditation, or Pray- er ? And yet you have not ferioufly regarded it. Has he not fometimes awaken'd your Confciences, and rouzed them out of their carnal Security, gall'd and wounded them as a Spirit of Bondage, bringing your Sins to your Remembrance, and making you a- fraid to perlift in your former finful Doings? And yet you have fought againft thofe Mo- tions by Stubbornnefs and Rebellion of Heart, or diverted and ftifled them by Com- pany, Bufinefs, or Pleafure, till they have worn off as i^ they had never been. Has he not at fome feafons, when you have been a- lone by Day or by Night in your Retire- ments or on your Beds, in the Watches of the Night or Dawnings of the Morning, rea- fon'd with your Hearts to leave your old in- fnaring Companions, Practices, Profits, or Pleafures, to ceafe to do evil, and learn to do well, to abandon your Courfe of Sin, and particularly fome firft Rate. Sins, fpr which your Confciences more efpecially witnefs'd againft you, and to feek out after God and Chrift and eternal Life ? Yea, has not the Power of thefe ImprefTions been fo ftrong on fome of you, that you have been even forced to refolve to fet about believing and turn- ing to God without Delay ? And yet youj, like FeltXy have put it off to another Seafon, hav9 ( J23 ) have fallen in with the next Temptation to Vanity, and fo have loft all again, and no- thing has been effedually done. I appeal to your Confciences, whether fomething of this fort has not at one Time or other paft within your Bofoms ; and it may be fome farther Inlightings have been fhed in fome of your Minds : And yet you have fhut your Eyes againft 'em, and now either dare nOc look back upon them^ or dare to live contentedly without them ; or, which is worft of all, dare to think and fpeak of them with a profane Gallantry, as if you are Wifer and better without them than you were with them. All this is rebelling a- gainft and refifting the Holy Ghoft. And 'tis exceeding dangerous to treat him in this bafe and unworthy manner ; He is not to be trifled with and affronted at this rate. He will not always ftrive with the Soul, that always maintains its Contempt of him and Oppofition againft him. He is God, and can giv€ thee up as foon as he pleafes ; and if once he takes the Provocation wholly to abandon thee, thou art inevitably loft, and paft all Hope of ever being brought to fa- vin^ Repentance. O then, if thou valueft thy immortal Soul, reverence him in every Impreflion he makes upon thee ; be glad of every Hint and Mo- tion from him ; don't be afraid of it, but thankfully accept it as aKindnefs,and efteem it thy Duty and Advantage to embrace and improve it. Dread the thoughts of lofing it : Take Heed of doing any thing to ftifle it, and labour to yield up thy felf to it, and to follow its guidance, with an Eye to him to ( 124) to overcome all the Stupidity, Carelefnefe Vanity, Hardnefs, and Enmity of thy Hearts by fuch vidorioLis Operations, as fhall make an efFedual Change upon it, that thou mayft pj. J feel and be fully reconcil'd to the Day ^^ * ' 0/ his Power J, and fo be one of his vjilling People, 2. Let the Believer, tuho is favour d with the Indivellings of this Spirity take Care how he car- ries it to him. Don't thou griere this bJefled Spirit by thy Carelefnefs or Negle.5i: on one hand, or by any unholy Pradices on the other, left he withdraw his quickning, ftrengthning, and ^ph. 4. comforting Influences from thee. Grieve not 50* the holy Spirit of Gody whereby ye are fealed to ' the Day of Redemption, But obferve the way he takes with thee, watch for his Gales upon thy Heart, and when thou perceivcft the Wind ferves, take that Opportunity to haften as far as thoa canft Heaven-ward. ' O how much Lofs doft thou daily fufter for want of this Obfervance ! Confider who it is that dwells in that Heart of thine, and what becomes thee to do in his Prefence, and under his Eye. Lament thy unrighteous Offences againft him, and his righteous Withdrawings from thee, as one that ha^ been ungratefully grieved by thee ; and let it grieve thee to thy Heart, that thou fhouldft grieve fuch a Great and Good and Holy One as he is. Lament after him for his Returns, and when he gracioufiy appears tO and for thee again, labour to entertain him . d3 G"o^, with 'all the Hopour, • Reverence^ • Af- ( 125 ) Affe<5lion, and Obedience that is due to him as fuch. And be very Cautious that you don't give him frefh Provocations ; yea, beg of him, and truft in him, to keep your Heart right with him, that you may be en-^^^ abled to walk in the Spirit^ and never again i6 fullfil the Lufls of the Fiefi, SERMON (I2«) S E R M O N V. I COR. xii. II. But all theje worketh that one and the ftlf^fame Spirit^ dividing to every Man fever ally ojs he will. WE are confidering fome Heads of Evidence that the Holy Ghoft is the Sovereign Almighty God. There- fore, Arg. 4. Fourthly, Thofe divine WORKS, which the Scripture, and fometimes Reafon it [elf, af- fares m are peculiar to the one Sovereign and Al- mighty God, are in a proper Senje afcrihed in Scripture to the Holy Ghoft. His divine Names are not pompous empty Titles ; his divine Nature is not a ufelefs un- adive Principle ; but according to his glo- rious Names and Nature, he afts in a God- like manner, -as the proper Efficient of Things peculiar to God, which none but the only true God can do. Thefe may be reduced to two general Heads, (i.) T'he Works of Nature. (2.) 'The Works of fpecial OEconomy in our Salvation. All ( 127 ) All the Operations of the Spirit both in the Works of Nature and fpecial O Economy, are according; to the Order of his Subfiflence. He being that Perfon in the Trinity, who neceffarily and eternally proceeds from the Father and Son, the moft natural Order of Operation is, that they fhould work by him, as well as together with him : or, that the Deity fhould put forth its Power in pro- ducing its EffetSis by the Holy Ghofl as the moft immediate Worker. And therefore, tho what the Spirit doth in the Operations I am going to 'confider, God is fometimes faid to do by him ; yet that is no Objedion againll: his being one God with the Father and Son, or againft his doing thofe things as God together with them. -For the Term God in thofe Paflages is to be underftood ei- ther as a Denomination of the Father, or o£ the Son, or o^ both • or q\(c as a Denomina- tion of the divine Nature, according as the Circumftances of their feveral Contexts guide us. And fo God's ading by the Holy Ghoft, is not to beunderftooa as if he was an Agent of an inferior Nature to God ; but as deno- ting the Order of the divine Perfons Work- ing, or as denoting the Perfcn by whom the divine Nature moft immediately puts forth its Almighty Energy. Yea, to fay that the Spirit is not God, or that his Operation as fuch is not the Ope- ration of God, becaufe God works ^^ him ,* is indeed to fay that God himfcif don*c im- mediately do any Works, but only commjili- ons and Influences fome inferior Being , to do them, and on that Account only is laid himfelf to do them. And according to this way of (peaking, thofe Things which are done by the C 128 ) the Spirit are no more done by God himfelf, than every good EfFed that is wrought by an Angel, a Magiftrate, a Minifter, or a good Man, is God's own doing it, bccaufe they do thofe Things by Commijiion and Inflaence from him. But tho God is cer- tainly the firft and principal Caufe of all the good EfFeds that are produced by any of his Creatures, yet that Perfon mufi furely have a very odd Turn of Mind, who can read the Scripture-account of what God is faid to do by his Spirit, and think that the Ads of his Spirit therein, are not more properly God's own Ads, than the Ads of Angels or Men are : Or, that God don't more imme- diately ad by hiwy than he doth by them. And that which puts this Matter out of doubt v/ith me is, that the SVorks I am go- ing to in/ift on, are fucb as in their proper Efficiercy are peculiar to God only ; and fome of them fuch as God is faid to do by himfelf, and yet they are wrought by the proper EjEciency of the Spirit. 'Tis not pretended that the Spirit doth thefe Things exclufive of the Father and Son, but *tis infided on that they don't do 'em exclufive of Him ; or, that they ail ad by one Energy and joint Concurrence in pro- ducing them. Accordingly, the following Arguments taken from the Spirit's Works, fuppofe the Order of his Operations ; and the Force of thofe Arguments lies in the Nature of the Works themfelves, which the Holy Ghoft is the proper Efficient of by his own Power, and which are fuch as both the Scripture, and the Reafon of Things afliire ixsy can be done by none but the One Great and Sovereign God> or by no PovvtT ihort of ( 129 ) of his ; which Power the Holy Ghoft could rot put forth unkfs he Himfeif is God. Therefore, I, T'pe Holy Spirit performs thofe Works ^f NATURE, zuhich are peculiar to the only true and Almighty God, Creation and Provi- dence take in all the Works oF this fort, and both thefe are afcrib'd to the Hoty Ghoft. (i .) The Work of CREATION is afcriFd to him. This is 2L Work which the great Jehovah is faid to do alone, to the Exclufion of_^all that are not God ; and i>y hiinfelf, to the Ex- clufion of all fecond Caufes or inf<^rior A- gents. / am the Lord that ?naketh all Thmgs,^^^' 44- that ftretcheth forth 4be Heavens alone\ that^^" fpreadeth abroad the Earth by my filf. There was no Partner with him, or fubordinate Agent ufed by him, in framing the Heavens and the Earth. And yet the Holy Ghoft is exprefsly fpoken of as an acting Perfon in the Oreation of the World. Which ftiews that he is not excluded from, but included in that God, who created It alone and by^ himfeif. Thus in the Mo fuck Account of the Creation, we are told, tha|^ the Spirit of Gem i^ God moved with a formative Power on the'^' Face of the Waters. That this Spirit of God was not the Air or Wind moving upon the Face o the Wa- ters is^ plain, becaufe this Spirit is not recko- ned among the created Things^ and is men- tion'd before there was any Separation of any Parts of the Chaos into their proper Forms. The firft diftindion of Things fol- low'd the Spirit's moving ; and the Creation of the Air is generally referr'd to the Work K of ( 130 ) of the Second Day.'^ Nor is there any Rea- fon to fuppofe that any immaterial intelli- gent Agent different from the Holy Ghoft is meant, becaufe he isofteuy and none but he is ever call'd the Spirit of God in the Scrip- ture. The ABion of this Spirit was fuch a mov- ing on the indigefled Matter, as became an effedual Influence to fhape it into its divers defigned Forms, as they are afterwards re- lated thro the refl of the Chapter. For the Word here tranflated moved |, denotes a Motion like that of Birds, when they fit on their NePtS with vital or cherifhing Heat over their Eggs or Young; and accordingly 'tis Deut.32.yfeJ fQ exprefs an Eagles fluttering over her ^^' Toung ; and fo it iignilies the moft powerful Energy and Adion of the Holy Spirit, com- municating Being, Life, and Motion to all Things. Kow this effe^ual formative Work of the Gen. I. Spirit of God, upon that which wad without *• Form and void, is in all the following Ac- counts of the Creation as f^^^rdsly call'd God's own immediate Work, as the firft Forming of the Chaos it felf. It was God that all along faid. Let it kfo, and it was foy V. 3, ^i and God mUde and created all the different *«» H» Creatures there fpecify'd. And confidering 2/ &c the unaptnefs of the firft confufed Mafs to ' "" yield this excellent Variety of feveral Ranks of Creatures, this has been ufually look'd upon as an Ad of equal Power wieh that of creating the firfl Mafs it felf. 'Tis parti- *■ ViL Ainfworth and '^WXtVs Hix.iphi in Loc, t ^rr\ ^^^^^ Q\ii^'i%^iQ}ainmat. iacr.i, p. 5i4> 11 §. cularly r/3i ) cularly with refped to this part tf the Work of Creation, that God fpcaks fo mag- nificently of it, as the mofl grand and un- anfwerabie Proof of his infinite M.j'elly and Greatnefs. The Stretching forth the Hea^vens^^r^ and Spreading abroad the Earthy which God,.^ fpeaks of as done alone and by hi7rifelfy be- longs to this part of his Work. And when he aggrandizes his creating Power in the moll exalted Strains, to flrike the Mind with a folemn Awe at the Thoughts of his infinite Being, he principally infills on the fitiijud Works of his Hands, and recites, among many other particulars, his beautifying the Heavens with the luminous Bodies he has placed in them, 3^0^ chap. 38. throughout. This is a Work God claims to himfelf, and is too great for any but himfelf to do ; and yet "This is exprefsly declar'd to be done by his Spirit as the immediate Agent therein. By his Spirit he hath garnijhed the Hea'uenSy ; r^s ,5^ his Hand hath formed the crooked Serpent; b) !?• which fome underftand the Cehfiial Spheres^ and others the Via LaEl?a, What is faid to be done by his Spirit in the former part o£ the Verfe, is in the latter call'd the Work of his Hand; which fhews that the Spirit's A- gency herein was the A6ling of God's in- finite Power in and by him. And may not this help us to underftand the Pfalmifl:, when he fays. By the Word of the Lord were the Hea- vens made, and all the Hoft of them by the Breathy y'^^' ^ ^* or Spirit of his Mouth : q. d. The Word of" the Lord commanded, and the Spirit put forth the Power by which that Word com- manded them into Being. Hence the Ope- ration of the Spirit in this Work is repre- fenced not in the manner of a dependent or K 2 Tub- ( 132 ) fubord^nate Agent, but of the fupreme and Ifa. ^o. Almighty God. For, Who hath meafured the ii> '3' Waters in the Hollow of his Hand ? And meted out the Heaven ivith the Sfan, &c ? iVho hath direEied the Spirit of the Lord, or being his Coun- feller ha^ taught him ? Yea, the Creation of Man, who has an immaterial Scul as well as an earthy Body, Job 33. is afcrib'd to the Holy Ghoft. I'he Sfirit of 4* God hath made me^ fays Rlihu^ and the Breath of the Almighty has given me Life. He is here fpoken of not as an Inftrument by which God works, but as the principal efficient Caufe j He himfelf by his own Ad made Elihu, and by confequence all others. The Spirit of God, and the Breath of God, may be confider'd as meaning the fame thing i the Breath of God, as the Metaphorical, and the Spirit of God, as the proper Denomina- tion of the third Perfon in the Godhead. And perhaps he is caird the Breath of the Almighty in allufion to the manner of his Zee, ^'^'fgymingthe Spirit of Man zvithin him, which is Gen. 2. teprefented by breathing into him the Breath 7. of Life. And this Expreifion, ^r^rtf/?/??^, when apply'd to God, is commonly ufed with a regard to the Operation of the Spirit -, and fo the Spirit was the immediate Creator of the Soul as well as of the Body of Man, Heb. 12. ^^^ may very properly be call'd the Father 9. of Spirits, and the God of the Spirits of all 'N^m.iC.Flefi ; which are the diftinguifhing Chara- ^^- ^ ders of the only true God. And fince 'tis ^■^^ ^ ' the fpecial Work of the Holy Spirit to re- new the Image of God in fallen Man, 'tis moll natural to fuppofe that He at firft made the Soul, with all its concreated Holinefs, and ( 133 ) andnfo was the Author of Man's original ReElitudey as well as of his reafonable Na- ture. Now how could the Spirit be thus con- cern'd, and ad together with the Father and Son in Creation Work, unlefs he is the only true God together with them ; fince we are exprefsly told that God alone is that Creator? Or how could God make all things by his Spirit, unlefs his Spirit was Himfelf c{{<:nti2i\\y confider'd ; fince we are told he made them alone by himfelfy which excludes all Inftru- ments or inferior Cau fes from any Efficien- cy therein ? The Holy Ghoft therefore can*t be an inferior inftrumental Agent in this Work^ but mud be, inclufive of the Father and Son, the God himfelf that perform'd it. And thus confidering the Spirit as the one true God, together with the Father and Son, God's making all Things by Him, is a ma- king them alone and by himfelf xo the Exclu- fion of all that are not God. The Creation of the World is an irrciiftable Evidence of the Being of a God. The Variety, Order, and Magnificence of this Work, has been always rcckon'dan unanfwerable Demonftra- tion that none but God could be the Au- thor of it. Atheifm could never hold up its head againft this fingle Argument. Now, fince feveral Scriptures declare that the Holy Ghofl: is the efHcient Caufe of that Work, thofe Scriptures turn the whole Force of that Argument into a Demonflration that He is God. The Heathens could have no Notions of a God fuperior to the Creator of the World ; and the ApoRle fpeaks of the Creation, as the higheft Demonftration to them, and tp K3 al! 2.0 ( 134 ) all Men, of the fupreme Deity of Him that Rom. 1. made it. For the hivifible 'Things of him from the Cr tat ion of the World are ckarly feen^ being underftood ly the T'hings that are made, even hts eternal Poiver and Godhead. And therefore, fince Revelation affiiresus that the Holy Spi- rit was the immediate Agent therein. He really mull be included as a divine Perfon in that fupreme Godhead, and muft be that God vvhofe Being is demonftrated by the Creation. Accordingly k hath been a com- mon Obfervation of the Learned, that God fpoke of himfelf as more than one Perfony when he faid. Let US make Man. And very often when God is fpoken of as our Maker or Creator, the Word in the Hebrew is put in the plural Number. Thus for Example, None faith ivhere is God my Maker ? [_Heb, Makers.] Remember now thy Creator, \_Heb. Creators. J And. 'Thy Maker \_Heb. Makers] is thine Husband. The Perfons ading in our Creation according to the Order of their Subfiftence are more than one, and there- fore fpoken of in the Pliival ; but the Nature or Godhead is but one, and therefore 'tis not more Gods than one, but the one only living and true God, Father, Son, and Spirit, that made us all. /2.) The fVhrk of PROVIDENCE is afcrib^d to the Holy GhofL The Pfalmifl:, fpeaking of the Continuance Fral.ro4 o^' God's manifold Works, fays, Thoa fendefi 3o. forth thy Spirit, they are created. The continu- al fupport of the Creature in Being is ex- prefs'd by creating, becaufe a conftant EfRux of the fame Almighty Power and Goodnefs that made the World, maintains a dependent World in Being ; And the Spirit of God is here Gen . I z6. Job >5 Ir. Eccl . I I. Ifa. 54 s. C'35) here averted to be the Author of this con- ftant Recruit. God's fending forth his Spi- rit for this Purpofe, don't denote that his Spirit is a diltind Being, of an inferior Na- ture to himfelf, or is employed as an under- Agent to him ; but only imports, that God applies his effential Power and Goodnefs to this Operation, by that Perfon in the God- head who is cali'd his Spirit. For the Spi- rit's afting herein is not God's putting the Operation into another's Hand, and influ- encing him to it; but is God's own Ope- rating, as 'tis explain'd in the next Words, T^hou remzvefi the Face of the Earth. Accor- dingly this holy Pcnmau fpeaks of God's fending forth his Mercy ^ Truth y and Pozver. He P) all fend from Heaven and fave me. God^h\, 57, fhall fend forth his MERC T and his TRUT'HJ- & And fend T HT HAND from above, &c/^^*7. But furely thefe ExprelTions don't imply that thefe Perfedions of God's Nature hereby in- timated are fomething different from him- ftlf, but only that he exerts them in fuitable Operations, which is cali'd his fending them forth. Accordingly the Spirit being the moft immediate ading Perfon in the Godhead, the exerting divine Perfedions by him in recruiting Operations, is cali'd God's fend- ing him forth for them, in fuch a manner that he himfelf is faid to do them. On the other hand, the Decay of Nature is reprefented as the Etfed of God's Spirit's blowing upon it, in allu/ion to the withering Effcd of a blading Wind. All Flefh is Grafs, I^^- 4^^* and all the Goodlinefs thereof as the Flower of * "^^ the Field : 'The Grafs withereth, the Flower fadethy becaufe the Spirit of the Lord hloweth fipon it. And this anfwers to that Work, K 4 which which is appropriated to God, where 'tis Pfa. lo^.faid, Thou hideji thy Face^ they are troubled: 2-9- "thou takeft away their Breath, they dye, and return to their Duft.' And as the whole Frame of Nature de- pends on the Agency of the Spirit as the God of Nature, fo the Government of the World is manag'd by him, particularly as its Affairs are intermingled with, and relate to the Interefts of the Church. He is never faid to be ruled, or governed, or fubjed to God's Dominion, as ail Creatures are, and can't but be ; but on the other hand, he is fpoken of as ading the Governing Part in the OEconomy of the World. 'Tishethat over-ruled things by his Providence, to give Ifrael Reft in the Wildernefs, while they were furrounded with formidable Enerr.ies. The Ifa.63. ^jjiyjf; of the Lord caufed him to reji, fo didfl ^* thou lead thy Feofle to make thy felf a ghncm Name. 'Tis he that guarded them arainft their envious Foes, and crufh*d the Powers I*a. 59. ^.j^^j. ^Q{;igxi(^ to deftroy them. iVhen tie Ener- my fh all come in like a Flood, the Sprit of the Lordlhall lift up a Standard againfl him. 'Tis J d.g.ioHe that influenced Judges and Kings to ad- &^- M- minifter Juftice, and manage the Affairs of & n!z5.*^^^'^l Government, as is recorded with re- & iSam. fped to Othniel, Gideon, Jefhthah, Sumfon, I • 13, Saul, 'And David. '^' This Work of God's Spirit, fitting Kings for Government, and flirring them up to righteous Adminiftrations, was fignify'd by Anointing them for their Office. With refped: thereto, God wis faid to anoint and gtr4 ITa. /|5, Cjrm, or to incline his Heart, and enable him to overthrow the Bahylonifh Tyranny, and to open a way iotlfrael's Return to their own I. 5 C'37) own Land, and for their Rebuilding the Temple which Nehuchadnez.z,ar had deflroy'd. On this Account God faid of Cyrmy He is jf^^ .. my Shepherd y and jhall perform all my PkafareyzS, even faymg to yerufalemy Thou jh alt be built y and to the 'Temple y thy Foundation Jh all be laid. And we are told, "Ihe Lord fJirred up the Spirit of^^"^^^' Cyrm Ktng of Perjta, that he made a Pvodama- ^ J ' tion — faying The Lord God of Heaven — hath chargd me to butld him an Houfe in 'Jerujalem which is in Judah, Who is there among you of all his People} His God be with him, and let hijn go up to Jerufalem, which is in ^udahy and build the Houfe of the Lord God of Ifrael, &c. Hereupon allthofe whofe Spirit God had raifed to go upy to build the Houfe of the Lord, ga- thei'd together from the feveral Parts of Balylon, and return'd under their principal Leader Zerubbabely whofe Bahylonijh Kame was Shethbazzary as may be feen by compa- ring Ezrai. 8, ii. with Chap. 2. i, 2. Now all the great Things that God did by Cyrm's means in order to the Rebuilding of the Temple, are declar d to be done by the Spirit of the Lord, who by his fecret In- fluence ftirr'd up Cyrmy and all otht rs con- cerned, and made all Oppolition fail before them. For, with refpect to this great Event, This wa5 the Word of the Lord to Zeurbbabely ^^^* 4* fayingy not by Might nor by Power y that is, not ' by any Counfels or Arrays of Ifaely but by my Spirit y faith the Lord of Hofis, Who art thouy O great Mountain ? before Zeruhhahel thou fbalt become a Plain. Who can reflect on this ftu- pendious Turn of Providence, which is de- clared to be brought about by the Spirit of the Lord, who over-ruled the Tempers, Counfels, and A<5tions of Men to accom- plift C »=t8 ) Pfal. $8. plifii It, and not be forced' to fay. What hath !*• God wrought ? and, ^venly he is a God, inclu- iive of his Spirit, that judgeth in the Earth, Once more. The Spirit is reprefented as guiding all the Motions of Providence, in EzeLefs Vifion of the Living Creatures and Ezek. I. the Wheels. I'hey (the living Creatures) went li, 19, every one jlreight forward; whither the Spirit ^°* wa5 to go they went, and they turned not when they went. And when the living Creatures wenty the Wheels went by them ; and when the living Creatures were lift up from the Earthy the Wheels were lift up. Whitherfoever the Spirit was to go, they wenty thither was their Spirit to go, and the Wheels were lifted up over againft them ; For the Spirit of the living Creature \^Heb. f Spirit of Life] wen in the Wheels. This is gene- rally ailow'd to be an emblematical Repre- fentation of the Providence of God, which over-rules and orders all Affairs for his Glory and his Church's good. The living Creatures^ who are afterwards calfd the Cherubims, are cK 10. ufually fuppofed to mean the Angels, who *5' are Minifters of God's Will ; and the Wheels to mean iHU more inferior Caufes. But there was a higher Spirit, different from the Spi- rit of the living Creatures, who order'd them ', and this can be no other than the Spirit of God, who, as the firftfupreme Caufe, quickened, over-ruled and guided all their Motions ; fo that they became fteddy and harmonious to anfwer his Ends , how- ever many of them might feem to run coun- ter to thofe Ends. Surely then He muft be t n^nnnn ( 139 ) the great and fovereign God, fince hk King- dom ruleth over ail. 2. The Holy Spirit performs many Works- in the OEconomy of Salvation^ which are peculiar to the only Sovereign and Almighty God. The Works of the Holy Ghofl, which in this OEconomy are by fpecial voluntary Dif- penfation committed to him, may be reduced to three Heads, (i.) Thofe which refped Chrift himfelfy confiderd in his human Nature^ and Qfjce-Capaclty. (2.) Thofe which refped the Church in general. And, (3.) Thofe which refped each Member of Chrifi's my fti cat Body in particular. And all the Works 01 the Spirit, which are peculiarly afcrib'd to Him with regard to thefe feverally, are fuch as are pe- culiar to the only true God, and which none but he can do. (i ) He perform d thofe Works 'with refpeB to CHRIS Ts HUMAN NATURE " AND OFFICE-CAP AC Il'Yy which are peculiar to the great and only true God. What I am about to offer with refpcd to the Holy Ghoft's Operations towards and by Chrift's human Nature, is not to be un- derflood as if Chrill, confidcr'd in his di- vine Nature, was infufficient for, or was really unadive in, any of thefe Works. For as the Spirit is the Spirit of the Son^ as well as of the Father, fo both he and the Father put forth thofe Operations jointly with and by the Spirit. The human Nature of- Chrift is it felf a Creature, tho in perfonal Union with the divine ; and therefore the Adingsof the Spirit on and by that Nature, are like- wife the Adings of the Father and Son to- gether with him, as all his Operations to- ward the Creature are. Hence fome of thofe Works ( 140 ) Works are exprefsly afcrib'd fometimes to the Father, fometimes to the Son himfeJfj and at other times to the Holy Ghoft, as may hereafter appear with refpedt to Chrift's RefurreBion. The perfonal Union of the Logos with the human Nature, gave an infinite Dignity to Chrift's Ad:s, they being thereby the Ads of a divine Perfon; and by virtue of this Union, there is a conftant neceffary Influx of one Kind or other, from the Logos by the Spirit on the human Nature, tho the Kinds and Degrees of that Influx are variable ac- cording to Difpenfarion. Conlidcring the Man Chrift Jefm as one Per/on with the etet-r nal IVord, all divine Flowings into him are peculiarly his own Ads in one Nature, upon himfelf in his other Nature. And confider- ing him 2lS fenti and put into Office by the Father, they are peculiarly the Father's Ads towards him. But ftill the Holy Ghoft is that Perfon in the Godhead, by whom I conceive the Father and Son put Ibrth their Power, and who moft immediately applies the one Energy of the Godhead in its Oper rations on and by Chrift's human Nature. Hence the Adings of the Holy Ghoft widi refped to thofe things that are done towards and by Chrift, as confider'd in his human Nature, are no more a Proof of the Quief- cence of the Logos therein, than they are of the Qjuefcence of the Father himfelf; becaufe He as wd\ as the Son ads by his Spirit in all thefe Things. The God-like Ads which Chrift performed in his human Nature, were managed in fuch a grand and fovereign Man- ner, as /hew'd himfelf to be the ading God that wrought them by his own Power : and yet ( HI ) yet I humbly think that he, as the /-cot^^ Per- fon in the Godh ad, put forth this Power thro his human Nature together with and by the Holy Spirit. And there is no incon- (iftence in this, fince his original Nature is likewife the Nature of the Holy Ghoft, and is the one undivided Principle of his own and of the Spirit's Operations in their pro- sper Order, and according to agreed OEc- onomy. Upon this foot, whatever one doth in things of this fort, the other can't but concur in, and do jikewife. As Chrifl laid with refped to the Father and himfelf, con- fider'd as the Son, My Father vjorketh hitherto, Tq|^^ and I worky not as di&rent Caufes, one fub- 17. ordinate or inferior to the other, but as co- equal Workers in their proper Order, and ejjentially one Caufe ; For ivhat things foevery, 19. he doth, thefe alfo doth the Son L IKEM^ISF. So it may be faid in like manner with refped to the Holy Ghoft, and the Father, and Son, the Reafon of the Thing being the fame ; and Afcriptions of the fame Works being in many Places of Scripture made in the fame Sovereign Manner to him, as is in o- thers to them. Having premifed thefe Con- fiderations to prevent Mi^akes, 1 now pro- ceed to confider fome Ads of the Holy Ghoft with refped: to Chrift's human Nature and Office-Capacity therein, which are peculiar to God only. (i.) He formed the human Nature of Chrifl in a miractclcm God-like Aianner. This was a Vv^'ork for the Manner of iu wholly aDove the Power of Nature, and is prophefy'd of as a creating Ad, which is peculiar to God only. Thus, in prophetick Stile, which fometimes fpeaks of things fu- ture Ci40 tare as if they were alrerdy part, \i^ faid, -, Jer. 51. ^he Lord hath C RE A "TE D a new Thing in ^i* the Earthy viz. A Woman [hall compafs a Man. This very well harmonizes with the Account of that ft upend iouSxS'/^/^ of God's Covenant- Faithfuhiefs, which he aflur'd his People he himfelf would giv^e them. Behold a Virgin Ifa. 7. jImU conceive f and bear a Sony and call hk Name M- IMMANVEL, This feems plainly to be the New 'things of miraculous Birth, that God would C RE AT' E in the Earth, or Jer. 51. Land of Canaan: For in the former Part of 4, $,&c. the Chapter, God comforted Ifrae I with Promifes of a Reftoration to their own Land, and thereupon ufed Arguments with them to ftir them up to return to it. Nov what could moreeft'edually fweeten thefe Promifes, and incline their Hearts to this Return, than an Affurance that in that Land God would create this New I'hingy viz,. That a Virgin jhould conceive their Mefftah ? And then in the following Parts' of the Chapter, he adds many more exceeding great and precious Promifes of fpiritual Bleflings that fhould be brought to them in the MeiTiah's Days : And what was fo proper to introduce the Profpeds of that Scate, as a Prophefy of the Birch of that Meffiah? Yea, ftill farther to intimate that the New 'Thing here mentioned relates to him, the Murder of the Infants at Chrift's Birth is join'd with this Prophefy of him. ▼' ^ 5- Thm faith the Lord, a Voice was heard in Ra- mah, Lamentation and bitter Weepingy Rachel weeping for her Children, refufed to be comforted for her Children, becaufe they were not. And Herod's flayi?ig all the Children that were in Bethlehem, and in all the Coafts thereof (which took in Ramab) is cxprefsly call'd d> fulfilling that ( 143) that which was here fphn by the Prophet Jere- Matth. myy faying^ In Ramah wui there a Voice heard y ^' ^^^ &c. ^ '' Now this forming of Chrifl's human Na- ture in the Womb^of the Virgin, is call'd God's creating a new Thing, which is the very fame f \\^ord that is ufed to exprefs his creating the World. In the Beginning God CREATED the Heavens and the Earth. And this is at another time call'd a Formingi[^, ^p, him. from the IVemb to be his Servant. And tlie 5. ^ Word here ufed is thac by which the Crea- tion of Man is exprefs'd : The Lord God^tn. 2. FORME D Man of the Duft of the Ground. 7- As God form'd Man of the Dull: of the Ground (which, as has been fhewn> is to be underftood of God inclufive of the Spirit) fo the Holy Ghoft by a creating Power form'd Chnft's Body of the Subftance of the Vir- gin, he being made of a Woman, Gal.^, This great and god- like Work is exprefsly 4- afcrib'd to the Holy Gholl: as the immediate proper Efficient of it. When the Virgin Mary was firft faluted by the Angel, and was^^^'l^^'* aifured from God that fhe fhould conceive ^"*^^^' and bring forth Jefpuy fhe knew that m her then prefentCircumflances there was a natural Impoffibility of it, and therefore doubted concerning it. But the Angel anfwerd and faid unto her. The Holy Ghoft [ball come upon^- ^5« theey and the Power of the Highefl Jlall over- Jhadow thee. The Holy Ghoft's acting herein was a putting forth the Power of the Higheft : which fhews 'twas a Work peculiar to God, and wrought by his immediate Power, and yet ( u+ ) yet the Holy Ghoft himfelf was the Doer of it ; 'twas he that apply'd this Power, or put it forth to produce this grand Effed, fo as to be himfelf the immediate proper Author of it. Hence we are told the Virgin -luas which wa6 conceived in her^ -was of the Holy Chofi, (2.) He furnifl^ed Chriffs human Nature with all Grace and Gifts to qualfy him for, and to enable him to go thrOj his Office-work upon Earth. That human Nature which was fo extra- ordinarily form'd by the divine Power of the Holy Ghoft, was form'd with all itscongenite Principles of Grace and Holinefs ; and there- fore in its very Conception and Birth 'tis Luke i.call'd that holy Thing that Jhould he born of the 35. Virgin. And as Chrift in his human Nature advanced in Years, the Holy Ghoft was with him, making him to increafe as Man in Wif- dom as well as Stature. "The Child grew^ and waxed ftrong in Spirit ; or, as it might be render'd, by the Spirit, filfd with Wfdom^ and the Grace of God was with him, [Gr. upon him J fo that zvhen he was twelve Years old^" all that heard him were aflonijhed at his Underfianding and Anfwers, And Jefm increafed in IVifdom^ Ai^'i^^^^^ 6'r^/?«?'f5 and in Favour with God and Man. 5i' ^ ' He by the Spirit had a gradual Increafe of Illuminations, Gihs, and Graces, according to his human Capacity of receiving them, as he grew up toManhood. And when he was to enter on his publick Miniftry, the Holy Ghoft came upon him in much greater A- bundance of Operations, Gifts, and Graces* to inrich him with a thorough-Furniture for the Office-work th^t lay before him. He was C U5 > was baptized In the moft remarkable Man- ner with the Holy Ghoil: ; "The Spirit then Luke ?. defending like a Dove upon him. Hereupon ^?- he IS rcprefented, as full of the Holy Ghofi ;^^-4-i> and as ading in the Power of the Spirit ; and as having an unmearurable EfFufion of him upon his human Nature! for God gave not]o\\.x. the Spirit by meafure to him, 'Twas by thisM* Spirit that he was mofl immediately qualify'd as God's Servant lo }i:.e"jj Judgment to the Gen-Miit.ij, tihi. And 'twas thro the Holy Chvfl that he "^^r gave commandments to the Jpujiles, Thus was Chrift. as Man, anointed with the Holy GhofI:, according to his own Ap- plication of an old Teftament Text relatnig to himfelf. The Spirit of the Lord U upon me^ Luke 4, becaufe he hath anointed me to preach the Go [pel 18, — 21. to the Poor, — ^And he began to fay to them, this Day is this Scripture fulfilled in your Ears. The Father \s indeed reprefented as anointing him with the Spirit for the Work to which he had call'd him ; and as Chrift came on his Father's Bulinefs (the Father being ufually fpoken of as the fender of Chrill, and as the •firft Mover and Ordererof 2^ Things rela- ting to our Salvation) 'twas very tit that, according to this OEconomy, he fhould hir- nifh Chrift's human Nature with all Endow- ments neceffary for his Work. But ftill the Father's qualifying him was by the Holy Ghoft. And he, as well as the Father, aded the Power of God in the Collation of all Gifts, Graces, and Abilities on the Man Chrift Jefus, according to that Prophefy of him, The Spirit of the Lord jhall reji upon him,\^^> il. the Spirit ofWijdom aud Under/landing. the Spirit ^ • of Counjel and Might, the Spirit cf Kno-iuledge and of the Fear of the Lord. 'Twas he tb^at L hi I'd ■ (, 146 ) fiird him with the Power whereby he went A^ls ic. about doing good. For God anointed ^efm of 38. Dlaz-areth with the Holy Ghoft and with Powevy IV ho went about doing good, and healing all that were opprejfed of the Devil ; for God wa^ with him. ChrilFs being fill'd with Povjer for thefe Vv^orks, was by his being fill'd with the Holy Ghoft ; and the Power which the Holy Ghoft put forth upon and by him, was the Toiver of God 5 for 'tis added on the Account of what the Holy Ghoft did therein, that Cod iva6 with him. And accordingly the Things here mentioned, which Chrill; did by the Power thvat the Holy Ghoft put forth by him, are at another time reprefented by the fame iVpoftle as Things which God himfeJf cb, i. did by Chrift : For, fays he, "Jefmof Nax^a-^ 22. rethw^s a Man approved of God among you, by MiyacieSy and iVonders, and Signs, which God did by him in the midft of you. But how this Power put forth by the Holy Ghoft can in ftridnefs of Speech be calfd Gods being \vith Chrift, and God's doing thofe Things which that Power did by Chrift, is, I con- (ek, very har^ for me to uoderftand, unlefs the Holy Ghoft is God, and put forth that Power as God. It is certain that the Man Jefus could not do ^''^' fuch Miracles as he did, except God wa5 with him 3 that is, except the Power of God, was put P^al. 72,. forth thro him ; for *tis the Godof Jfrael, who *^- ONLY doth fuch wondrom T'hings. And yet the Holy Ghoft is fpoken of as that Perlon in the Godhead, who moft immediately did put forth that Power ; the Father and Son, as God, ading therein by and together with Lukeii.him. Hence Chrift tells us. He caft out De- 20. vtli by the Finger^ or Pov/er^ of God ; and to fliew C H7 ) fhew us which Perfoii in the Godhead moft immediately aded that Power, he at anorher time tells us^ he did it l^y the Spirit of GW. ^^^^•'^» And becaufe the Power of the Spirit was^ the Power by which Chrift performed his mighty Works, therefore blafpheming thofe Works was calJ'd Blafphemy againft the Holy^'- 5t, Ghofi, and a /peaking againft him, ^^* Yea, it was thro the eternal Spirit (which I have fhewn is meant of the Holy Ghofl) that Chrift offered himfeH ivithout Spot to God, ^f '^' ^* His human Nature was not fufficient of it^''*' felf^ without fpecial Ailiilance from the di- njine, to bear jLip under the infinite V/eight that lay upon it, when he bare our Sms in i Pet. ?, his own Body on the "Tree ; and toexercife every z\, Grace in fuch an eminent manner as the Cir- cumflances of his Cafe then requir'd. And as Chriil in his original Nature ads by the Spirit toward every thing that is out of that Nature • fo I apprehend it was by his Spirit, that he communicated his divine Ini^uences to his human Nature, to fupport and carry it thro that laft and ^reateft of ail its DiiH- culties, with all that Faith, Love, Readinefs, Patience, and Submiflion that were neceflary to make his Sacrifice a jreey and fo an ac- ceptable Oifering. So that the Affiflance Chrift's human Nature found to carry it thro the Hour and Power of Darknefs, v/as an immediate and unmeafurable Flow from the Holy Ghoft, And furely this was Afiillance too great for any but God himfelf to %\\^ in the moft immediate manner to him, and 'tis accordingly fpoken of as God's own kdc. For the Lord God, fays Chrift with refpect to this Cafe, will help me, therefore [hall I not heY^, -q^ L 2 con- 7- C 148 ) con founded ; therefore have I fet my Face as a Flinty and I know that Ijhall not he ajhamed. [3.] T'he Holy Choft raijed Chrifi from the Bead. The Apoille Paul leads our Thoughts this way, when fpeaking of the Refurredion of Rom. 8. (^j^j.-(^ ^j^j q£ Believers, he fays, If the Sprit of him that raifed up 'Jefrnfrom the Dead dwell in yoUy he that raifed up Chrifl from the Dead [ball alfo quicken your mortal Bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you. The Refurredion of Chrift is here fpoken of as the Pattern of ours. The Quickening of the Head and Members, was and willbe by the fame Pow- er ; as he was quickened, fo alfo we fhall be ; and therefore as ours is to be . by the Spirit, His was fo too, or elfe we fhall not be quick- ened as He was. Accordingly He was faid T M. 3. to be put to death in the Flejh ; b7^t quickened by ^^' the Spirit. By the Spirit in this Place, fome underftand the divine Nature of Chrift, be- caufe 'tis oppofed to his human Nature, which is cali'd the Flefi ; and for that Rea- fon I formerly was inclined to take it in that Senfe. But 'tis more ufually underftood to mean the Holy Ghoft -, and I own that, upon s a clofer Review, it feems more immediately to refped Him, not only becaufe the Article is prefixed to Spirit, but principally becaufe V 1910.0^ what immediately follows^ ^j iuA'/c/; (Spi- rit) alfo he went and preached to the Spirits in Prifon, which fometime were difohedient in the Days of Noah. This mahifeftly referrs to the Holy Ghoft's Pleadings with the old World by the Preaching of Noah, and by in- ward Checks of Confcience, which they de- fpifed to their own Perdition ; with refped Gen,6.^to which God faid, My Spirit fhall not always firive ( H9 ) ftrive with Man- And yet thefe Adings of the Spirit toward the iinccdiiuvian World, were Chrift's own Adings in his pr^-exiftent divine Nature by Him: for He (Chnil) weijtj and preaclod by the Spirit to them that difobey'd his Preaching in the Days of Njah, and were, at the writing of this Epiftie, in the Prifon of Hell for th^t their Dilbbedience. So in like manner tho. Spirit's raifiiig Chnil's Body from the Dead, was Chrift's own Ad in his divine Nature, by his Spirit upon his human ' Nature. Hence Chrift fpoke of it as what he himfelf would do, / will raife it up, fpeak- ing of the T'emple of his Body. And, / lay joh. 2. down my Life that I might take it again : I have ?9, 2,1. Power to lay it down, and I have. Power to take it ^ '°* again. And at other times we are told, that ^ds i'^ Gody viz,, the Father, raifed him from the 30, Dead, Thus the Refurredion of Chrift is afcrib'd to all the three Perfons as ading in their pro- per Order i but ftill 'twas the Spirit that moft immediately put forth that divine E- nergy by which Chrift's Body was raifed from the Dead, the Father and Son putting it forth by him. This Energy could be no \c{s than the immediate Power of God^whofe fole Prerogative it is to raife the Doad, And A£Isi5» how the Spirit fhoiild immediately put forth ^* that Power to produce this grand EfFcd, is inconceivable to me, on any other Suppoft- tion than that of his being God., whofe Power and Energy are the fame with the Father's and Son's. Ia.'] the Holy Ghofl glorifies Chrifi. The Glory of Chrift's mediatorial Exalta- tion, whereby he was enabled in the moft -r ^^^ - ^eminent Manner to glorify the Father, con-{^ * L 3 ' ^ lifts ( 150 ) fifts in great Meafure in his receiving the Promife of the Father, Viz>. the Holy Ghofi, that lie might in his Office-Capacity Ihed hiiii forth abundantly to his own and his Fa-. ther's Glory. Thus the Apofde Peter repre- A^si. fents it^ laying, Jhtrcfore being by the right' 3^. Hand of God exahedy and having reteinjed oj the Father the Promife of the Holy Ghofty he hath [bed forth this y lijhichye now jee and hear, .And hereupon he adds, as a Dedudion from this, V. 56. "Therefore kt all the Houfe of Ifrael know affured- ly^ that God hath made the fame Jefm whom ye have cntcifiedy both Lord and Chyifl. *Tis in- deed, according to OEconomy, the Father's A61 principally to exa't the Mediator, and put a Glory upon ium ■; but he doth this by the Holy Gholl. who is the moft immediate Agent in filling him with that Glory in Hea- ven, and difplaying the Evidences of it here upon Earth. For, as one great Part of Chrid's mediatorial Glory in Heaven, con- iiils in his having the Spirit by Difpenfation in fuch a manner, that He, as Mediator, may convey all Bleffings to the Church by him ; fo his mediatorial Glory on Earth con- fiils in this Spirit's coining from him to deal out thofe Bleilings, and to give the mcfl glo- rious Teftimonics to Him. Hence fays Chrift, He foall glorify rne ,• for he jhall receive ^^^'^^' of mine y and f/^all jhew it timo' you. He difco- vers what is known of Chnft to us ; He bears Vv/itnefs to Plim as the Son of God, and only Saviour of Sinners ; and He opens our Hearts to know and receive Him as fuch 5- for no Man can fay in Faith that Jefm is the iCor Ai. lord, but by the Holy Ghoft. And yet this is Ma't.K^ fpoken of, as a Work which the Father him- 17. * ""feif is faid to do. BlefJ'sd art tlm^ faid Chrift "to C 151 ) to Peter y upon his believing Confeffion of him as the Son of y God and Meffiah, For Flefi and Blood bath not ' revealed it unto thee^ but my Father which is in Heaven, , Thus the Adings of the Ho^y Ghoft, with refpect to ChrilVs human Nature and Oifice-Capacity, aie fo exceeding great and many ; fo apparently divine in their own Nature, and fo appropriarcd to God in Scrip- ture, that I can't fee how the Evidence they give to his Divinity can be fairly evaded ; Since (as has been before obferv'd) his Act- ing herein from the Father and Son, and their Ading by him, is no juil: Objedion againft the Holy Ghoft's Ading therein by his own Power as Gody and by as proper and free Ef- ficiency as either the Father ot Son ad by, it feems to me that this Part of the Argument muft have confiderable Weight. Its remain- ing Parts fhall be deferr'd, to make way for a little ferious Refledion. APPLICATION. What has been fuggefted concerning the Holy Ghoft's Work in reference to Chnfl, naturally leads our Thoughts to the following pradical Remarks. Ufel. How ESSENTIAL is CH FUST to all our Religion and Happinefs. All the Agency of the Holy Ghoft with refped to Chrift, has been to qualify him for his Office-Work, and to glorify him in the Difcharge of it. And in all that this bleffed Spirit doth for the Propagation of true Re- ligion in the World to the Glory of God, and the Salvation of our Sou^s, his great Defign is to glorify Chrift, as the Foundati- L 4 01^ ( 152 ) on of that Religion, as the Perfon by whom the Glory of God is advanced, and Salva- tion is obtain'd for finful Men. What then is all our Religion wiriio'iir Chrift ? It is a Building without a Foundation, and rhere- I Cor, 3. fore will fink of it felf : For other Foundation II. cai2 no Alan lay, than that which is iaidy which is 'Ji'fm Chrijh God is not really glorify'd without the moft exalted Regards to Chrift : John. 5. por He that homureth not the Son, ho7JOureth not ^^' the Father which hath fent htm. He will ac- cept no Worfhip from us but in Chrift ; and we can have no comfortable Accefs to him, c ap. i^.^^^t; |-|-jj^Q Chrift: For I, fays Chrift, am the Way-i the T/ruthy and the Life ; no, Man cometh unto the Father but by me. And confequently all our Religion will deceive us, and leave us . n for ever miferable, without Chrift. Neither j^^ ^' is their Salvation in any other ; for there is none other Name under Heaven given among Men whereby we mufl be. faved. A Chrifllefs Reli- gion is but a yewijh or Pagan Religion^ a Re- ligion that the Spirit of God has no hand in, and will not breathe in. And what can fuch a Religion profit us ? Ufe II. How Jhculd zve endeavour to G LO* RIFT CHRIST' in all our Religion ? If 'tis the De/ign of the Holy Spirit to glo- rify him, it can't but be a noble Defign in us to endeavour under his Influence to do fo too. It is our Duty to fall in with the Holy Ghoft's Defign herein. -V/e fiiould keep up the moft honourable Thoughts of Chrift, ex- alt him in our 'ofneft Praifes, and fliew forth his Praife in all the Beauties of a holy Con- verfation. We fhould afcribe unto him the ■ Glory due to his Name ,• the Glory of his Deity ^ the Glory of his Oftice-Undcrta- kings ( 153) kings and Performances ; the Glory of his infinitely perfed Righteoufnefs which he has wroLignt out for iis, and the Glory of his Grace which he communicates to us. In all our Attempts to glorify the Father^ we fliould take Care to do it in fuch a manner, that he may be glorify 'd in the Son, and the Son together with him. And in all our Attempts to glorify the Spirit y we fnould labour to g!oriry Chrifl together with him, and thro his gracious Influences upon us. The Spirit ads like the Spirit of Chnjh fuitable to the near Relation he bears to him, in his glorifying him. And if we pretend to Relation to Chrift, we fhould make it our Bufiuvfs to glorify him too. Do we bear the Name of Chrift ? and are we'caU'd Chrifiians ^I°'^* 9- from Him? we fhould abide in the DoBrinecf ^}^ 5- Chrifi I He fhould dwell in our Hearts by Faith ; ^ Xim.i. and ev^yy one that nameth his Name jhotild de- 19. part from all Iniquity. Do we pretend to be^^'o^ti. Chnft's Members ? we fhould honour our Head. ^' /J* Do we pretend to be his Spoufe } we fhould ^f * bcfubjeti to bim. Do we pretend to be his i^.^- deemed ? we fhould give him the Claims of his Redemption, and glonfy him in our Bodies and \ Cor. 6. Spirits which are his. He diA not redeem us '^^' to live in Sin ; but gave him f elf for m^ that he ?night redeem m from all Iniquity^ and purify j. unto himfdf a peculiar People^ z.ealom of good Works. Do we pretend to be his SubjeHs ? ' we fliould chearfuUy pay all dutiful Obedience and religious Homage to him. He is thy pp^ Lord, and worfiip thou him. Do we pretend n." to be his Difciples .<" we iLould learn ail Me'^y^-^^att.ii. nefs and Lowlinefs of Heart of him, and call nol^'^'^^" Man Mafier^ but him. Do we pretend to be V*^' ( 154 ) partakers of the fame Spirit with him ? we G^l. $. fhould walk in the Spirit, and according to *^- the Genius of that Spirit, fludy to glorify Chrift, whom that Spirit comes to glorify in us and by us. Thus lliall we ad like thofe V, 25. ^^^^ ^^"^^ '^ if^^ Spirit ; thus fhall we bring in fome Tributes of Glory to Chrifl j and thus /hall we recommend him and his Religion to others, that they may not filfly aatfe our good \6,^i^ ^^^^"^^^f-^f^on in thrift ; but beholding our good ^/i2. IVorks, by the Efficacy of his Grace uponuSj t^ay glorify God in ths Day of Fifitation. SERMON (IS!) SERMON VI. 1 COR. xii. i I, But all thefe worketb that one and the ft If ^ fame Sprit ^ dividing to every Man fever ally oa he will. I Am infilling on a Kounh Head of Argu- ment to prove, that the Holy Ghofl is the Sovereign and ^hnighty God. This Ar-^ gument is drawn from the Divine Works, which are peculiar to the only true Gody and are afcribed in a proper Senfe to the Holy GhoJL I have already confider'd the Works of NATURE, in CREATION, and PRO- VIDENCE. And am confidering the Works that are peculiarly afcrib'd to the Holy Ghoji in the OECONOMT OF SAL- VATION. Thofe which refped Chrift's human Nature and Office-Capacity, have been fpoken to -, and we now proceed to a fecond Sort, which are comprehended under this Head : (2.} T'he Holy Ghoft performs thofe Works with refp^atothe CHURCH IN GBNERAU which- ( '50 vjh'jch are proper to the Sovereign and Almighty God, and which none hut he can do. Thefe are of tv:o Sorts, [2.] Such as re- late to the holy Scripture. And, [2.] Such as relate to the Mimftry. ^ [i.] Let us confider a little the PVork of the Hoh Ghoji with regard to the HOLT SCRIP- 'I'URE.' iTim.i. Ail Scrpittire is given by Injptration of God. iC>. It bears the Stamp of his Authority, and is 1 Ihef. call'd the Word of Gcdy becaufe he is the Au- ^ *^* thor of it. What the Prophets fpoke of old, was not from themfelves, as their Own pri- vate Thoughts, but from God himfelf, who is faid to fpeak not only^o chtm,' but alfo by them, as has been obferv'4 before. Hence 'tis often faid, T'he Word of the Lord came to ihem ; and they frequently prefaced what they delivered with, This is the M^ord of the Lord^ or "Thm faith the Lord ; which i$ 3. very dear Evidence that none but the true Jehovah is the Author of the Scripture. And yet we are abundantly affur'd, that He whofe Words they fpoke, and who fpoke in and by them, is the Holy Ghofl. 'Twas the Spirit of I Pet. I. Chrifi, who wa6 in the Prophets, that did *'* J^g^fy ^"^ f^Pfy ^y them the Sufferings of Chrifiy &c. And this fpeaking of the Spirit in and by them, is oppofed to the private Fancy or Judgment of the Prophets them- felves. K flowing this frfl, that no Prophcfy of 2 Pet. I. the Scripture is of any private Interpretation j 20, 21. p^^ ^j^g Prophefy came not in old time by the Will of Man ; but holy Men of God [pake as they were moved by the Holy Ghoft. Accordingly the Sence of Scripture is fpoken of as the Sence of the "Holy GhoU, or a"^ that which h^ ffgnifed by ki Heb. p, 11. The Holy Ghofl this C M7 ) this SIGNIFYING, And certainly He, whofe Meaning is fignified in Scripture, and is the Rule of our Underft:nding it aright, muft, in ftridnefs of Speech, be the proper Author of it. Hence the very fame Phrales are ufed to exprcfs the Agency or the Spirit, as are ufed to ey.prefs t'he Agency of the great and only true God with refped to the Scrip- ture. Sometimes God, and at other times the' Holy Ghoft, is faid to fpeak to and by the Pro- phets, as has been already fhewn in feveral Inftances And that which is call'd God's fpeaking by the Mouth of David in one Place, ^-'^^^ 4- is cali'd the Holy Gho/t's fpeaking by the Mouth^^^^ ^^* (?/ David in another. God and the Holy Ghoft ^^^ are mention'd in thefe Paflages as alike Pvin- cipaly and David as the Inftrumrdt in fuch fpeaking. And tho God 'may be faid to fpeak by the Spirit, as that Perfon in the Godhead w^ho moft immediately fpoke by David ; yet we can no more argue from thence that the Spirit therein aded as a fub- ordmate Inftrument to God, than that he aded as a fubordinate Inftrument to David. For David himfilf [aid BT the Holy Ghoft, theMivkiz, Lord I aid to my Lord, fit thou on my right Hand. ^^" Subordination, Equality, or Superfority are fully confiftent with this Form of Speech ; 2ir\d. fpeaking by the Holy Ghoft, in the Cafes be- fore us, feenis principally to denote, that the Spirit is, tho in different Refpeds, the moft immediate Principle both of God's fpeaking, and of David's fpeaking as an infpir'd Pro- phet. The Rank which the Spuit bears herein muft be gather'd from other Places ; and that (as we have ken) is juft the fame as is affign'd to God himfelf. Accordingly when fome Texts of Scripture are cited in Other Places, the Form of Qnptation is fomc* C 158 ) z;Cori<5.fometimes, As God hath [aid, and Godfpake; ^^- and at other times, As the Holy Ghofl faithy f '^' and the Holy Ghoftfpake. All this intimates to Heb. ;. US, that the Intereft of God and of the Spi- 7- rit in the Scripture is one and the fame; or, Adts 2,8. |.j^^|. |.[-,g Spirit is that God, who h the Author ^^' of it; or, that the A^ing of the Holy Gl oft in inditing it was the Ading of God him- ' felf. In like manner, whatever God reveal'd to, or fpoke by the Apoftles, and other holy Writers in the New Tei^ament, was reveafd and fpoken by the Holy Ghofl. They fpake tCoTA^^Myfteries in the Spirit^ or by his Suggeftion. ^' God himfelf is faid to reveal the Myfteries of the Gofpiil to them, and yet that is call'd a Revelation by the Spirit ; w^hich fhews that the Spirit's revealing, is God's own revealing them. Thus faith the Apoftle, If ye have ^pb, ?. heard of the Difpenfation of the Grace of G OD^ ^> 5, '^. which is given me to yon-ward ; How that by Revelation HE made known to me the Myftery of his Wilh—'^hkh in ether Ages was not made knovjn to the Sons of Men 06 'tis now reveaVd to his holy Apoflles and Prophets by the SPIRIT. This Revelation of Gofpel-Triiths, which were to be the Dodrine of the New Tefta- ment, is here afcrib'd as fully to the Holy Ghofi in one Pailage as 'tis to ^God in the o- ther. Accordingly the Revelations from God are calfd the Holy Ghoft's fpeaking t which fiicws that He is the God, who taught the holy Men of God, and fpoke by them. t Tim. T/?^ Spirit [peaks exprefsly -, which feems to re- ^. r. late to fome New Teftament Prophefies de- liver'd by the Apoftles concerning the latter Times, And God's fpeaking in the Scripture Hev. z is call'd the Spirit s fpeaking to the Churches. &5.ch. "^ "" Tis ( 159 ) 'Tis Ilkewife the Holy Ghcfty who has im- prefs'd on the Scripture all the Marks it bears o^ divine Author itjy and has given it all the Credentials by which it is certainly known to be from 6'o^ only. If we confider th^ Sub- limenejs and Purtty of its Dosflrincs ; they are the Dodrines which the Holy Ghoil: has re- ^ veal'd : For zvhat Man knoiuetb the things of a\^^'^* Man^ fave the Spirit of Man ivhich is in him ? Even fo the things of God knoweth no Many but the Spirit of God, which is in him, partaking of his Nature and Knowledge, and who^, as a diflind Perfonfrom the Father and Son^comes from them to reveal thefe Things to us ; for we have received the Spirit which is of Gvd,'^' '^ that we might know the 'Things that are freely given m of God, If we confider the Majefy of the Scripture's Stile ; it is the Stile of the HolyGhoft, being not the Words which MansJ^^^^"^ Wifdom teachethy but which the Holy Ghoft teach- eth. If we confider the exad Harmony of all its Parts ; 'tis the Wifdom of the Holy Ghofl that has fo fram'd them, that their full A- greement appears by comparing fpiritual Things with fpiritual. If we confider the certain Ac- complijhmmt of its Prophejies • that proceeds from the infallible Forefight and Veracity of the Holy Ghoft ; becaufe He fpoke them, they 7nufi needs be fulfilled. If we confider tlic Com- Acls u firmation of its Doclrines by Miracles ; 'tis the^' Holy Ghoil who gave them that Confirma- tion ; thofe mighty Signs and Wonders being wrought for that Purpofe by the Pozuer of the^^^'-^^* Spirit of God. If we confider the vafl and^'"^' fnrprifing Succefs of the Gofpel in the firPc Ages of its Promulgation, without human Arti Force, or Encouragement ; yea, againfl the Wifdom, Power, and rooted Prejudices of ( i6c ) cf the World, and againft the united Oppo- fition of ail the Powers of Darknefs, of all Secular Inrercfts, and of all the cornipc and natural Principles of all Men's Hearts : It is 2 Cor ^^^ ^^^y Ghod that gave it all that Succefs, 2^ it bcin^tbe Mini (Irat ion of the Spirit, And if we confider the fweet and powerful God^ hke Effects it has upon our own Souls ; it is becaufe it comes to us not in Word only^ but I Thef. alfo in Power ^ and in the Holy Ghofly and fo /"« I. 5. much Ajjurance. Thefe are ufually reckoned the moft grand convictive Proofs, that God has given us^, of the divine Authority of the Scripture, to af- fure us that He, and He only^, is the Author of it. Thefe are his unexceptionable Attei- tations that He is fo. And yet all thefe are wrought immediately by the Holy Ghoft, whofe own Wifdom, Power, and Grace have put thefe unqueftionable C.haraderifticks of divine Authority on his own Word, and given thefe higheft Teflimonials to it. 1 2.] We may confider the Holy Ghofl's Work with regard to the Mmiftry. The Miniflry is an Ordinance of God*s own Inftitution; he appoints Perfons to it, fits 'em for it, and claims their Service in it* I Cor. For God hath Jet fome in the Churchy firft A^ iL. 28, pofilesy fecondarily ProphetSythirdly Teachersyikc. Tit. I.I. Hence they are call'd Servants of God, and ^^^^*^' Minifters of Gcd, and are faid to Minifler as I* Pet. 4 ^/ t^^^ Ability y which Godgiveth. And yet all II. this Work is exprefsly afcrib'd to the Holy GhofJ, and is managed in his own Name like the felf-fufficient fovereign and indepen- dent God. He fends his Servants to their Work, and gives them Authority for it. Even Chrift him- ( 1«I ) himfelf, confider'd as a Man and a Minifter, was fent by Him. T'he Lord God, faith he, I^a» 48, and his Spirit^ hath fent me> The Context ^^* leads us tounderftandthefeas Chrid's Wordsj but ii any fhould take 'em for the Prophet's, the Spirit is reprefented as ading Supreme Authority equally and jointly with him, who is call'd T^he Lord God ; which Cn^ws that his Authority in fending, is the fame with any other Perfon's in the Godhead. According- ly at another time he takes the w^hole Mat- ter upon himfelf, and manages it in his own Name, with all the Marks of Divine Supre- . n macy. T'he Holy G ho (if aid, Separate me (Gr.^. ^^* * to me) Barnabas and Saul, for the IVork"^' elf^oet- whereunto I have called them. He afted in this <^75 fw^ Aifair not like a Servant, or- inferior fubor- dinate Agent, clothed with Minifterial Au- thority to feparate them to the Service of God, but like the Great and Sovereign God, who is both the Author and End of their Commiffion. He called them to the Mini- flry, and demanded their Service in it ; and accordingly they were fent forth by the Holy Ghcfl, as the Perfon from whom all their Au- thority was derived to them, thro' the mi- nifterial Adings of the Prophets and Teach- ers, according to his Appointment and Com- mand. IVhen they had fa fie d and pray d, and ^^^* hi' laid their Hands on them, they fent them aucay. So they (by this means) being fent forth by the Holy Ghost, departed. The Part that the Holy Ghoft a(5ted herein, was that of the Lord of the Harvefl, who fent forth thefe La- Mat. 9* bowers into his Harveft, Whatever Hand fome^^* Men may have in conveying OiEce-Power to others, 'tis not derived from them, but thro' them from the Holy Ghoit as the ?>/«- cipali by whom both the Ordainers and the M Ordained ( l62 ) OrdainedatQ authorrifed to admjandin purfu- ance of fuch Separation to the Miniltry.Hence faith the Apoftle to ordinary ftated Paftors, Ads 20. T^ake heed to your fehes^ and to all the Flock over z8. ivhich the HOLT GHOST hath made you Overfeers. As He puts his Servants into the Miniftry, fo He orders all their Stations or Places where they fhall exercife their Minillry, and difcharge the Triift they received from him. This remarkably appeared with regard to ex- traordinary Officers, who were not fixed in any particular Church, as their peculiar Charge. Where the Holy Ghoft bid them go, they went ; and where he forbid th-wm to go, they refrained going ; while He himfelf was under no fuch Orders or Refiraints ; but behaved himfelf like the abfolute Lord both of them and of all their Services. When the A(^s8. Eunuch was returning from Jerufalemy the ^9' SPIRIT faid to Philip, Go near y and join thy felf to this Chariot, And when Peter had a Vilion relating to his Preaching to Cornelia, Ch. 10. The SPIRIT faid tmto h:my (Peter) Behold 'P, 2.0, three Men feek thee; arife therefore^ and get thee down, and go with theiiiy doubting nothing ; foY I have fent them. The Spirit is faid to fend them, as he gave Orders to Cornelim to fend Men to ^oppa, and call for Simony whofe Sur- name is Peter y ver. 5. And therefore the Spirit muft be either the Angel of God that appeared to Cornelim^ ver. 3. or God who fent that Angel to him. But 'tis plain to me, that the Spirit was not the Angel that fent them, becaufe I cannot find that the Scrip- ture ever calls him an Angel, or that he ever appeared in human Shape as this Angel did ; A Man:, or an Angel in the Form of a Man, ver. 50. fays Cornelius y flood before me in bright Clothing, The r 163 ) The Spirit therefore, when he fays to Peter, I have fent tbemy evidently means, that he is the God who warned Cornelius by an holy An-ver.zz. gel to fend them for him. At other rimes he forbid the Apoftles, and wou'd not ftiffer'em to go to Places according to their own pri- vate Inclinations. T'hey were forbidden of the A(fls t5. Holy Ghoti to f reach the Word in Afia ; and^> 7» afterward, they effayed to go into Bithynia ; but the Spirit fufered them not. What a fovereign Difpofal was this of them and their Labours ! And what could God do more, or ho v could he ad with greater Demonftrations of his abfolute Authority and Dominion over them, in ordering all their Motions for the exercife of their Miniflry ? He likewife qualified them for the Work to which he call'd 'em, and gave them all the Affiflance in k^ which the mofl difficult Cir- cumllances of their Adminiftrations required. All their Minifterial Gifts and Abilities were from the Holy Ghoft, who divided them to r Cor. every one feverally as he willed, in themoft^^,. 7. ' Sovereign and Almighty Manner ; and the J^anifeflation of the Spirit was given to every^'^"^' ^°' one of them to profit withal He gave 'em divers kinds of 'Tongues, that they might be capable of Preaching the Gofpel in all Lan- guages, as there might be Occafion. Ac- cordingly they [poke with other Tongues, than thofe which they had by Education, as the Spirit gave them Utterance, AEls 2. 4. Who could givt *em thefe divers kinds of Tongues but he that made the firft Diverfities of them ? This is exprefsly faid to be Jehovah himfelf The Lord did confound the Language of all the Earth, Gen. 11. 9. And that the Spi- rit is included in this Jehovah, may be fairly M 2 ' gather'd gathered from his faying. Let VS go down ajfd conjound then Language^, ver 7. 'Tis beneath the Majefty of the great Jehovah to fpeak after this fort to any created Being ; for this is plainly the Language of an Equal to an Equal, and imports the fame kind of De- fcendingy and Operation to produce an Efied, which is above the Power of all Creatures, and is never afcrib'd fo much as inil:rumen- tally to any of them;, but wholly and immedi* ately (ver. 9.) to Jehovah himfelf Hence 'tis exceeding natural to underiland this after the manner of Men, as the fpeaking of one Perfon in the Godhead to others who are Jehovah equally with himfelf And the Spi- rit's fovereign Power over divers kinds of Tongues, in miraculoufly conveying 'em to the Apofllcs, fhews, that he is one of the a- dorable Perfons included in that Jehovah. As he enabled 'em to fpeak all Languages, fo he furnifhed 'em .with Minifterial Abilities to manage their Work in the feveral Lan- guages they might have occafion to ufe. He ^ -.. became unto them not the Spirit of Fear ; kit ^ ' 'of Power, and of Love, and of a found Mind, ~ induing them with Wildom to manage all their holy Miniftrations ; engaging their Hearts in their Work ; and fpiriting them up to a holy Bravery, and religious Greatnefs of Soul, in a faithful difcharge of their Truft, without Fear or Shame, in the Face of all Contradiction, Danger, and Derifton, from the moil polite and powerful Ranks of Men. Thus he animated the Prophets of old ; 7ru- Mic3.8. /y, fays one of 'em, lam full of Power hy the Spirit of the Lord, and of Judgment, and of Might, to declare tmto Jai^ob his T'ranfgreffwn, and ( 1^5 ) and to Jfrael his Sin, And Chrifl told his 'Difciplcs zhis Spirit would fill them with the like Magnanimity, and leach tnem how to behave, when they (hoiiid ftand in tlie moil diknayiiig Circumftances before the greaceft Names of Men. Te, fays he, jhall be ^^r ought ^^^^ ^^^ before Governors and Kings for my fake ^ j or ^*'i8, ip, TeihmO'dy againft them and the Gentiles : But^o, lu/jen they deliver you upy take no Thought how or luhat ye [hall [peak ; for it jhall be given you in that fame hoiit xuhat ye jJjall fpeak : For it is not ye that /peak, but the Spirit of your Father which fpeaketh rn you. Accordingly when the Apo- ftle Peter was in fuch Circumftances, with what a remarkable aflonifhing Courage did he comport himfelf, even to the filencing and co'ifo'indin^^ of his haughty Adverfaries ? When they hadfet Peter and John in the midfly they asked by what Pawer or by what Name have ve done this ? Then Peter, FILLED ^^^ . IVITH the holt ghost, faid unto them.-j^ 8, To, Te Rulers of the Peopky and Elders of Ifrael,ii, n. Be it known to you all, and to the People of Ifrael, that by the Name of Jefus Chrifl of 1<^3,' zareth, zvhom YE crucified, whom God hath raifed from the Dead^ even by him doth this Man Band before you zvhole : This is the Stone which was fet at nought of you Builder Sy which is be^ come the Head of the Corner : Neither is there Salvation in any other, &c. What a ^!o(e and cutting Speech was this to fuch an Audi- ence ? They marvelled 2Lt the Wifdom and^*'3)M« Boldnefs with which 'twas delivered, and could fay nothing againft it. And who can forbear pbferving the Difference between Peter filhi with the Holy Ghofl, and Feter left to himfelf? When left to himfelf y he meanly betray 'd all jhe Cowardice of the moll pufiilanimous Mat.i6.^ind, trembling at the ilighteft Accufations <^9.~~74' of having been with Chrift, and in the bafeft manner denying his Lord : But when filled ivith the Holy Ghofly he dared to confront the moft powerful and inveterate of Chrift's Adverfaries, and, at the Peril of his Life, and to bear an undaunted TefUmony to him, a- gainil them all. Yea, the whole Company of Difciples (meaning, I fuppofe, the 1 20 mentioned in A^s 4. ^^^ ^' ^5-) "^^^^^ ^^^ fi^^^ '^^^^ ^^^ ^^h Ghofli 51. * andfpaketheWordofGod-xithBoldnfs, The Servants of God were carried thro' all their Tryals, and obtained Salvation at the End Phil, I. of them, thro" the Supply of the Spirit of Je- ^9* fus Chrift. And when they came to make their laft Defence, and to lay down their Lives in the Caufe of Chrift, their Enemies ii^ere not able to refifl the Wtfdom and the Spirit by which they fpake ; as is obferved of Stephen juft be- fore his Martyrdom, JBs 6. 10. And that by the Spirit in this Place is meant the Holy Ghoft, appears from Verfes 2, 3, 5. where the Twelve Apoftles fpoke. to the Multitude of the Difciples y and faid, ■*■' *ig'-" Brethren, look ye out among youy [even Alen of honeft Report, ' full of the HOLT GHOST and Wifdom ; and they chofe, among others, Stephen, a Man full of Faith, and of the HOLT GHOST', And vtT.'S^.- He being full of the HOLT GHOST', *~-faw the Glory of God, and faid. Be- hold I fee the Heavens opend, &cc. Surely this blefied Spirit, who thus furni(hed his Servants for, and imboldened them in his Work, Li- ving and Dying, can be no Ms than the Al- mighty God ; and the Power they felt, they, doubtlefs, believed to be the Power of God himfelf Oiice C 1^7 ) Once more, 'Tis the Holy Ghofl that crowns all Goipel-Miniftrations with Succefs. He who ordered Peter to go, and preach the Gofpel to Cornelius^ accompanied that Preach- ing with his Power ; For while Peter yet [pake the Dodrine of Remifiion of Sins, thro' the Name of Chrift, to them that believe in him, the HOLT GHOST fell on aU them which ^^s lo. heard the IVord. And the Apoftle, /peaking 44' of the Succefs of tne Gofpel upon the TheJJa- loniansy tells them. Our Gofpel came not ««^oiTheCi» you in Word onlyy but alfo in Power ^ and in the 5> "• HOLT GHOST, and in much Affurance : And ye became Followers of the Lor d, having received the fi^ord with joy of the HOLTGHOST. Hence he tells the Corinthians, My Speech and my Preaching was not with enticing Words of i Cor.:j. Mans Wifdom, but in Demonftration of the ^^ 5» SPIRIT, and of Power, that your Faith Jhould not fland in the Wifdom of Men, but in the Power of GOD. This fairly intimates that the Power of the Spirit, whereby the Gof- pel became effedual to their Believing, was no other than the Power of God, For thefe Weapons of Warfare became mighty thro' God ; 2. Cor, and accordingly, the Gofpel i$ call'd the Power ^^^"J* ^^ of God to Salvation, to every one that believes, j^^ Thus the bleffed Spirit has a Supreme and God-like Concern in the Miniftry of the Gofpel. The Authority, Qualifications, Af- fiftance, and Succefs of Minifters, are from him, and all their Labours are at his Dif- pofe. All this fhews that he is, jointly with the Father and Son, the Author and Owner of their Miniftry, and confequently that he is the one true God, equal in Power and Au- thority wit;bthem. M 4 Thil (168) This leads us to confider a third fort of Works afcribed to the Holy Ghoit in the O Economy of Salvation, Therefore, (3.) He performs thofe Works ^ with refjpeSi to each Member of Chriji's Myflical Body in parti- culavy ivhich are proper to th^ only Great and SO' *vereign Gody and which none but he can do. [i.] The Work of REGENERATION is afcribed to the Holy Ghofl as the proper Efficient Caufe of it. This is a Work above the Power of Nature ; Job 14. For who can bring a clean Thing out of an Un- 4« clean} Not one. And Chrift himfelf has told John 6. ^^^' ^^^^^ ^^ Af^» can come to Him, except thQ ^4. Father draw him. The Work of renewing Grace, is fpoken of in fuch grand magnifi- cent Terms, as fhew that none but God can be the Author of it. It is call'd a begetting us again ^ and a being born again, in alJufion to our natural Birth ; and God is faid to be- get us, and we are faid to be born of God^ to the Exclufion of all other Efficient Cau- I Pet. I. fes, Bleffed be the God and Father of our Lord ^' Jefm Chrift, who according to his abundant Mercy Jam. I. has begotten us again to a lively Hope. And of J 8. his own vjill begat he us with the Word of Truth, ^ , And Believers are faid to be born not of Bloody \-^ ' nor of the WiU of tbe Flejh, nor of the Will of Mm, but OF GOD. At other times, to fhew the exceeding Greatnefs of Divine Power, which is neceffary to make this Change upon Epn. 2. j^jg^ Q^^ J5 ^2J^ J.Q qj^i(^f^Qyi flj^yyl ffj^f r^gyQ ^g^d * * in Trefpaffes and Sins ; and they^re his Work- manjliip created in Chrift Jefus unto good Works, Hence He claims it as his Prerogative, and graciouHy promifes it in his Covenant, as what ( 1^9 ) what he himfelf will do ; A new Heart w'lU I give ydii, fays God, and anew Spirit iu/^ /Ezek,56. fut within yotiy and I will take away the Bony ^^' Heart out of your Fle/h, and I will give you an Heart of Fie/b, And Chrift has aflur'd us, that none but God himfelf can eftedually turn Men's Hearts from this World, fo as to make them value a Ireafure in Heaven above it ; for with refped to this very Thing he faid to his Difciples, With Men this is impoffible^ i. e. Mat, 19, all moral Suafion and human Endeavours ^^* can never effed it ,• but with God all Things are plfthle : He alone can do it. Now this Work, that is with fuch Peculi- arity and Eminence afcrib'd to God alone, and call'd a being hrn of God, is in other Places afcrib'd peculiarly to the Holy Ghofty as the proper Efficient of it, and is call'd a being horn of the Spirit, Except a Man, fays Chrift, he horn of the Spirit , he cannot en* r^^^ ,^ ter into the Kingdom of God. '^ And that 5,5/* ivhich is horn of the Spirit, is Spirit. The pro- ducing Spirit is the Ho/y Ghoji, and the pre- duced Spirit is the New Creature, which con- fifts in a Change of Principles in the Heart, and of Actions in the Life. For if any Man ^ q^^ be in Chrifl, he is a New Creature ; old Things jy. are pafl away ; behold, all Things are become New, And to fliew that this New Creature is a Creature of the Holy Ghoft, the Apoftle calls it a being in the Spirit • which depends on the Spirit of God's dwelling in m ; Sind thereupon adds, If any Man have not the Spi- Rom. 8. rit of Chrrfi, he is none of his. The Spirit of 9- Chrift muit make a Man fpiritual, or muft give him a fpiritual Being in himfelf, or elfe he is none of Chrift's. He is call'd the ^/;/-Rom. 8, rit of Lifey as he is the Author of all fpiricual ^• Life C 170 ) Life to us ; Hence fays Chrift, The Words I John 6. [peak unto you, they are Spirit y and fo they are ^\\ Life I and fairh the Apoftie, the Spirit g-iveth 2 Cor. 3. r/. -p,, . e • -^ fL 1 ^ Life. Ihis Spirit mutt renew us unto the Life of God, i^ ever we are renewed at all, Tir.3. j.and tht^refore 'tis call'd the wajbing of Regene^ rat ion y and the renewing of the Holy Ghofi. 'Tis tn.e Holy Ghoft that etfc(5lually works true Fiitio in our Hearts. This is reckoned Gal. J. among his Fruits ^ I'he Fruit of the Spirit is--* ^^' Fath.On this account theApoftle calls him the Spirit of Faith both to Old and New Tefta- zCor. 4. "^^^'^t Saints .* IVe having the fame Spirit of 13. Faith, or Faith wrought both in them and us by one and the fame Spirit. According- A6ls II. ly Barnabas was faid to be a good Man, and H' full of the Holy Ghofi, and of Faith, to /hew that the Holy Ghoft was the Author of all the Faith that was in him. And we are ex- Jude 20. hortt;d to hu/lj up our fehes on our mofl holy Faith, praying in the Holy GhoB ^ which inti- mates that all the Succefs of fuch building depends on him. And yet all this Faith is Col. 1. called the Faith of the Operation of God him- z^Thef. f^^^' ^^^ ^^^ '^^^^ ^f P^i^^^ ^-^'^'^^^ Power ; which I, II.* (hews that the HoJy Ghoft*s Ads in this Work are the Ads of God himfelf, and that He puts forth the mighty Power of God in them. He is like wife the Worker of true Repentance in us. When ^ohn the Baptifl came to preach the Dodrine of Repentance, all the Efficacy of his Preaching to turn the Hearts of the Jews to the Lord their God, is laid upon his being filled with the HolyGhoR, and coming in the Spirit and Power of Elijah for that Purpofe. He^ fays the Angel Gabriel, fiall be Ci7i ) he filled with the Holy GhoB from his Mothers Womb ', and many of the Children of Ifrael foaU Luke i. he turn to the Lord their God ; and he Jhall go ' ^> '^> before htm (viz. Chrift> the Lord their God) in^'' the Spirit and Power of EliaSy to turn the Hearts of the Fathers to the Children, and the Difobedi" ent to the Wifdom of the JuR^ John the Bap- tiB did not come with the Power of work- ing Miracles, as Elijah did i for John did no John lo. Miracle: But he came in the Power of the'^^' Holy Gholl ,• and fo in the Spirit of Elijah^ to turn the Hearts of the People to the Lord their God, as Elijah did after their Revolt to Idolatry ix\ the Days of Ahab. That Ef- fect upon their Hearts was the work of the great Jehovahy as appears by Elijah's Prayer to him, faying, Hear me, O Lord, hear me, that , Kings this People may know that thou art the Lord God, iS, 37, and that thou haR turnd their Heart back again. And yet they were turn'd by the Power of the Holy Ghoft ; for John the Baptifl came to turn the Children by the Power of the fame Spirit that their Fathers were turn'd by in Elijah's Days. Accordingly when the Apo- ftle fpeaks of taking away the Vail from Ifrael's Heart, and of their turning to the Lord, he lays it upon the Efficacy of the Gofpel, as 'tis the MiniRration of the Spirit, who by means of that Gofpel, delivers the Mind from its natural Blindnefs, and the Heart from its na* tural Hardnefs ; fo that with regard to the Power that Sin had over them in rhofe Re- fpeds ; where the Spirit of the Lord is, there ii Liberty, 2 Cor. 3. 8, i 5, 1(5, 17. When Peter preach'd to Comelim and his Family, the Holy GhoR fell on them ,• and his Operation on their Hearts to turn them to God was fuch, that the believing Jews were forced to acknow- ledge. ( ^72 ) ledge, that God then granted the Gentiles Re^ ^^^ V'fentance tinto Life, And when the Gofpel came iTheV i. ^^ ^^^ ThefTalonians, not in fVord onljy but rJfo . S, <5, 9, ^ft Power, and in the Holy Ghofi, they became Followers of the Lord, and turned to God from Idols y to ferve the living and f/ue God, ^Thusthe whole V/ork of renewing Grace, all the Efficiency of which is fo clearly averr*d to be of God, is afcrib a to the Holy Ghost, who by. his own Almighty Power cife6lually works it in us. He coming according to an agreed voluntary Difpenfation, in purfuance of ChtilVs Exaltation, doth more of this Work than ever was done before. This is the Difpenfarion in which the Power of his Godhead is to be evinced, and therefore 'tis in a fpecial Manner left to him to convince John 16. ^^^ World of Sin, and of Right eoufriefsy and of 8, ' Judgment, which takes in the whole of con- verting Work, or of turning Sinners thro' Chriil to God. [2.] theWorkof SANCT^IFICATION is afcrtbed to the Holy GhoH. This confiilsin the Confirmation, Increafe, and Exercife of thofe Principles of Grace and Holinefs, which were begotten in us in our Regeneration. Hereby Sin is more and more fubdued, and holy Conformity to God in Heart and Life, is more and more efta- Phil. I. blilhed and increafed ; and he that has begun ^. the good work in any of us, will perform it un- til the Day of Jefm Chrifl. The Work of Sandification is appropriated unto God : He Lev. 20. claims it as his fole Prerogative, faying, I am 2^ the Lord which fanBfy you. This may refped an inward Work of Holinefs, as well as a fo- lemn Separation to holy Ufe and Service ; J C 173 ) take this to be do<5trinally fignificative of that. And furely God means internal real Holinefs, fignify^d by outwaid Rites, when he fays, / ^ 'U)iU ffrinkle clean Water upon you y and 'ye jhall^'^^^'l^- be clean ; from all your Filrhinefs, and from all^^' your Idols, will I cleanfe you. And there is no doubt but the Apofile means this, when he fays, 77;^ "jery God vf Peace (or f the God of t tfWj 5 Peace hmfelf, denoting his own proper Effi- ®«^^ cicncy, asthisPhrafe fignifies, and is ulually tranflated) fan El if y you wholly ; and I fray GodiT^^tU"). your whole Spirit t and Souk and Body^ be fre-'^U ^4* ferved blamelefs unto the coming of our Lord Je- fm Chnf? : Faithful is he that calieth youy who alfo will do it. Now this peculiar Work of God, which he himfelf doth as his own proper Ad, is afcrib'd to the Holy Ghost, as that Pvrfon in the Godhead, who moft immediately puts forth the divine Power on our Hearts to ac- complifh it in us. Hence he is fo frequently calfd the Holy Ghoft with fpecial Relation to his Work of making us holy. All our Holi- nefs is from Him as the proper Efficient of ir, and is therefore call'd the SanBification of the 2 Thef. Spirit y and the SanBification of the Spirit unt$^- I^ Obedience, ] ^''^' ^' 'Tis thro' the Spirit, thro' his fpecial etfcc- ^.^^^ ^^^ tual Influences upon our Hearts, in Excitati- ons of his own Work there, that we are ena- bled to purify our Souls in obeying the Truth, unto unfeigned Love of the Brethren. All our Attempts againft remaining Corruptions wou d be ineffcdual to fubdue and mortify them in us, without the fpecial Agency of the Spirit, to carry thofe Attempts unto Vic- tory. Hence the privative Caufe of Perfons being Ci74) being fenfualy is exprefs'd by having not the Jude 19. Spirit, All a Man's Senfuality is from him- fcif ; but 'tis fo deeply rooted in his deba- fed Nature, that where the Spirit is not in- fluentially prefent to expel it, there it reigns in one Form or another. But on the other hand, the Apoille fpeaking of thofe that have the Spirit oj Chrift^ tells them they muft Rom. Z,tbro the SPIRIT mortify the Deeds of the 9, IS. Body. 'Tis He likewife that forms us more and more after the Image of God, that we may be progreffive in our holy Refemblances of Him : For we all with open Face beholding (U in 2 Cor. 5. a Glafs the Glory of the Lordy are changed into 18. the famt Image ^ from Glory to Glory ^ even iis by the SP I RlT of the Lord, or, the Lord the Spirit. And 'tis He that enableth us to live in all holy Obedience unto God : For fays God, / wili put my Spirit within you, and caufe Ez^.k.l6.you to walk in my Statutes, and ye fiall keep my ^-J' • Judgments, and do the?n. It is the Spirit that iifioft immediately puts forth divine Energy to caufe us to walk in God's Statutes ,♦ and yet that Energy is put fordi by God himfelf ; for he caufeth us to walk in bis Statutes, as well as puts his Spirit within us ; which may intimate to us, that the Spirit exerts the E- ftergy of the Deity ,• and the other Divine Perfons exert the fame by him ; at leaft, there is nothing in this Text to prove the contra- ry ; and it fufficiently proves what I quoted it for J namely, that this Spirit puts forth that powerfel Influence upon us, whereby we are enabled to live to God. And hence the Apoftle tells us, the Sons of God are led by the llom. ^.Spirit of God; and, fpeaking of feveral Gra- '4* CCS, and Works of Holinefs, in Oppofition to ( 175 ) to the Works of the Fiefh, he calls them all the Fruits of the Spirit, and calls our living in ^^I. 5. the Exercife and Pradice oFthem, a living^^^ ^5» and walking in the Spirit, Thefe Expreflions ^' naturally uiggeii: to our Minds, that what the Apolile faid of God in another Cafe, may be faid of the Spirit in this, that in Hm lue A«^s 17, live, and move, and have our being. f3.J The Work of C 0 N SOLAT 10 N is nfcribed to the Holy Ghoft, The great Jehovah afferts it as his own Prerogative, to givQ Peace and Comfort to his People. /, even ly mn he that comprteth \[^^ ^j^ you. And, / create the Fruit of the Lips, Peace ; 12. Peace to him that is afar off^ and to him timt is ^ 57*i9« near, faith the Lord, Hence God in Chrift '\% called the Father of Mercies, and the God of aU^ Cor.i. Comfort, who comfort eth m in all our iLrihulati- ^' ^' on ; and God that comforteth thofe that are cafl 8c 7. 5, dozun. And yet this Work that lies in the Hand of God, by which He moft fweetly recommends his indearing Mercy and Kindnefs to us, is in a fpecial manner the Work of the Holy Ghost. He is the proper Efficient Caufe of all the true Peace and Confolation which at any time we are partakers of Hence He is frequently called the Comforter, who ac- cording to the OEconomy of Salvation,coines to fill us with all that Joy and Comfort which are prepared in the Counfels of the Father, and in the Purchafe of the Son for us. Tho' he comes from the Father and Son to give us all the Joys of Faith and Hope, yet he doth it by his own God-like Power. Hence fays the Apoltle, l^he God of Hope //^Roin.i$, you with all Joy and Peace in believing, that ye i^^, may ( t76 ) may abound in Hope thro\ or by, the POIVER OF THE HOLY GHOSf, 'Tis the Work of the God of Hope ; and yet it is the Work which He pcrtorms moft immediately by the Perfon of the Koly Ghoft : and not only by Him, but by ha Power , which fhews that He, as well as the Father and Son, is the God, who by his own Divine Power inrich- eth us with the unutterable Confoiations that attend the aboundings of Faith and Hope, which he begets within us. Accordingly our fpiritual Joys and Comforts are denominated from Him as the Author of them. They are the Comforty and Joy of the Holy GV;o/?, JlSis p. 2 1 . Rom. 1 4. 1 7. I jThef/l . 6. 'Tis the Holy Ghost, who relieves our Rom. 8. Groanings, and helps our Infirmities^ that we ^^* may pour out our Hearts in all fpiritual melt- ing AifeAions reward God. 'Tis He that Chap. s,Jheds abroad God's Love in ctir Hearts^ difcover- 5* ing the exceeding Riches and Greatnefs of it to us, and affeding our Souls with it, to the Confirmation of our Hopes. 'Tis He that gives us Freedom of Approach to God thro' Chrift, that we may have Communion with him here, and live in the joyful Expedati- ons of eternally dwelling with him hereaf- Eph. 2, ter. For thro' Him (Chrifl) v^e hoth (Jews *^- and Gentiles) have an Accefs by ONE SVI- Gal.5. ^.Rl't unto the Father, And we l^HRO' THE SPIRIT wait for the Hope of Right eonfnefs by Faith, 'Tis the Holy Ghofl that frees us from all that Bondage of Spirit we are fub- jed to on the account of Sin, and in the fear- ful Apprehenfion« of a condemning curfing Law, and of Death and Hell as Executions Rom, 8. c>f the Curfe. For ye have not received the Spi^ 1 5. rit of Bondage again to fear ^ but ye have received the C »77 ) the Spirit oj Adoption, luherehy xue cry, Ahha^ Father, Yea, 'tis this blefTed Spirit that gives Us all the AJfurance we have of Heaven, and all the abounding Confolation which fuch Aflurance raifes within iis. For the Spirit it^i^Q^^ 3^ felf beareth ivitnefs with our Spirit, that zue are 15^ i^. the Children of Cod. And if Children, then Heirs, Heirs of God, and Joint- Heirs zvith Chrifl. Ac- cordingly the Ephefians, after they believed, j.. were fealed with the holy Spirit of Promife, who j^^ j^^ ' is the Earneft of our Inheritance ; and the Apo- 18. file hereupon pray'd that they might have i^iW more of the Spirit of Wifdom and Revela- tion,-'--'-'^*^ that the Eyes of their UnderflandingS being inlightned, they might know what is the hope of his Calling, and what the Riches of the Glory of his Inheritance in the Saints. Thus all the Comforts that the Father and Son favour Be- lievers with, are the Comforts of the Holy Ghoft, which he beflows upon 'em as their proper and moft immediate Comforter. And furely thefe Confolations of God are not fo fmall, as to make us think that any but God himfelf deals *em Out unto us. [4.] rhe Work of STRENG'THNING and GUIDING m^ and making m per fever e in out Way to Heaven, is afcrihed to the Holy Ghoft. We are often at a Lofs by reafon of Dark- nefs, how to fleer our Courfe in a Way of Duty and Safety ; and are utterly unable, by reafon of Weaknefs and Diforder of Soul, to keep our felves in God's Way, and to hold on therein. And none but the great God himfelf is fufEcient to be our Strength and Counfellor in all our Dangers and Perplexi- ties. Hence the Pfalmift trufled in him for them. Thou, fays he, Jhalt guids me with thy N ' Counfdt ( 178 ) Counfel) and afterwards receive me to Glory. -'-"^ ITal. 11' My Flejf) and my Heart faileth ; but God is the ^^' ^ ' Strength of my Heart, and my Portion for ever. And God frequently fpeaks of it as his pecu- liar Work, to leady guide:, teach zndfirengthen his People, as appears in his many gracious Promifes fo to do. And yet 'tis very well known, that all thefe are ufually afcrib'd in Scripture to the blejfed Spirit, And He being Ifa.ii.i.the Spirit of Wifdom, Counfel and Might, can't but be every way fufEcient of Himfelf to di- ved: us in the beft Manner, and to carry us fafe thro' this World of Snrres and Trou- bles. Deut.32. 'Twas the Lcrd, or Jehovah, ALONE that 12. did lead Ifrael in the Wildernefs, and there uas no flrange God with him. But the Holy Ghoft is included in this Jehovah that, led Ifrael -, Ifa. 63. For the Spirit of the Lord caufed him to refi ; '4' fc, fays the Prophet, didfl thou lead thy People to make thy f elf a gloriom Name. 'Tis Jikewife God himfelf that leads his People in the way to ev^erlafling Bleflednefs. Hence fays Da- Pfa 1^9* vid. Search me, 0 God, and know my Heart ', ^ly ^^' , and lead me in the way everlafting. But the Spirit is included in this God , for He v/as fpoken of in the former part of the ver. 7. Pfalm as Omnifcient and Omniprefent^ and accordingly at another time David particu- larly regards this Spirit as his Leader. T'each Pfa. 145. me to do thy Will • thy Spirit is good ; lead me^ '°* or, as the Septuagint and Ainfworth render it,, thy good Spirit fhall, or will, lead me into the Land of Upright nefs. All our fpiritual Strength for walking before God in a way of Faith and Obedience, to the defeating of Satan, EpVi. 6. and all our Soul's Enemies, lies in the Power I"- of God's Mighty or in the Power by which he mightily / m ) mightily Works in us ; and we are keft by the Power of God thro Faith unto Salvation. But i Pet^ i, ftill 'tis God inclufiveof the Holy Ghofl, or 5- his Power put forth by the Spirit, that thus keeps and ftrengthens us ; Hence was the Apoftle's Prayer, 'that he would grant usy ac- Epb. j^ cording to the Riches of his Glory, to be ftrength- ^^* ned with Might, BY HIS SPIRIT in the inner Man ; which Ihews that the Spirit herein ex- erts God's Might ; and how he fhou d do fo, unlefs He is God, I am yet to learn. [5.] The Work of Raijlng the Bodies of Be- lievers to a bleffed Irnmortality, is afcrib^d to the Holy Ghofl, 'Tis in the Nature of the Thing incredible - n > that any but God jhouldraife the Dead. No- 3^ ^ ° thing lefs than a full Convidion of his infi- nite Power, to make good the Scripture -Do- drine of the Refurredion, can mafter our Prejudices againft it, as Chrift intimated when he laid the Error of the Sadduces in de- nying it, on their not knowing the Scriptures, ^^f* 22^ nor the POWER OF GOD. Accordingly the ^^• Confideration of God, as performing this Work, is often fpoken of as the firmeft Ground of Faith in his Omnipotence, and as its greateft Relief in Cafes of the utmoft un- likely hood and appearing Impoffibility. Thus Abraham believed God, who quicknetb the Dead, Rom. ^, that he (hould have a Son according to chc *7j 18^ Promife, notwithftanding the natural Impro- babilities of the Cafe were fuch, that 'twas a believing in Hope againft Hope. And when he had received this Son of the Pro- mife, and was r.fterwards calfd to offer him Gen. u, for a Burnt- offering, which had the nioft ^* fhocking Appearance of defeating the Pro- N a mife ( .80 ) miTe of what that Son ihoud be, he never-* thelefs readily attempted it at God's Com- mand ; and the only Ground his Faith refted on, with refped: to the Promife, was. That Heb* II. ^^^ "^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^^fi ^^^ ^^P^ ^'^^^ /yow/ the Dead. 19. And when the Apoftle Pauly and others with him, had the Sentence of Death in themfehesy and cou'd fee no way of efcape, they trufted in z Cor, I. God who raifeth the Deady as infinitely able to ^* deliver them. This was one of the mofl ex- alted Apprehenfions they had of his divine Power, and therefore their Faith improved this Confideration of him unto the fullefl Afluranee they cou'd have, that nothing was too hard for him to do. And yet this- Work, which is fuch a fatfs- fying Demonftration of the divine Omnifo^ tence of him that doth it, is reprefented in Scripture as done by the Koly Ghost, if Rom. 8. thrift be in youy fays the ApolHe, the Body k TO, II. dead becaitfe of Sin ; but the Spirit is Ltfe, he-^ caiife of Righteoiifn'efs, But if the Spirit of him that raifed Chrift from the deady dwell in you *y he that raifed up Chrift from the deady Jhall aifo quic^ ken your mortal Bodiesy by his Spirit that dweUeth in you. Some underiland the firfl of thefe Verfes thus : " If Chrift by his Spirit h in " youjyour Bodies are indeed Mortal becaufe . " of Sin ; but the Spirit of Chrift will give *^ them Life by raifing them unto eternal " Life, becaufe of the Righteoufnefs which *^ Chrift hath brought in for Juftification to '' Life." ^This feems to be a very juft Senfe of thofe VVords, and fo they are a ftrong Proof that the Refurre6tion of the Bodies of Be- lievers is the Work of theHolyGhoft. How- ever, the following Words undeniably fpeak of his Efficiency tlierein, as the Perfon by whom (ISO ^vhom the divine Power wiil be exerted to raife them, even hy his Spirit that dwelleth in you. This Spirit being God, eflentially one with the Father and Son, they ad: herein by Him, and He ads together with them, by as proper an Efficiency as they do. Hence the Apoftle tells us, that hethatfoweth to the Spi-Gzl/.S. rity Ihall of the Spirit ^ as the proper Author and Giver of it, reap Life euerlafling ; which muft include his raifing them up to that ever- lafting L'li^Q. Accordingly he is call'd the Spirit of Glory, as well as the Father is call'd i Pet. 4. the Father of Glory , and the Son the Lord of Glo- y{* ry : Which /hews, that Glory is originally ^P"* '• hisy and is at his D/fpofe as well as theirs. And , Cq^. 2. therefore, when Believers are faid to beholds, the Glory of the Lor d, and to be changed into the 2 Cor. 5. fame Image from Glory to Glory ; that is^ either J ; , from his Glory derived to us, that we may g. ^^ be like him, or from the Beginnings of Glory here, to the Perfedion of it in Heaven, we are told it is by the Spirit of the Lord, as the moO: immediate Agent herein. Now who can furvey thefe great and God- like Works, which the Holy Ghoft performs in a fovereign Manner by his own Power, and not believe him to be the Almighty and Sovereign God ? The Works themfelves, we have feen, are infinitely too great forany but God himfelf to do : We have likewife feen that his doing them by his Spirit, is of the fame import with his doing them by himfelf^ becaufe his Spirit is effentially himfelf And therefore, all thefe Texts thatfpeak of God's doing *em by his Spirit, are in juft Conftru- dion, by what is faid in other Places of the Spirit and his Working, as fair Proofs of his N 3 D.eity,^ ( i80 Deity, as if he was always (as he is often) fpoken of abfplutely as the Doer of them. APPLICATION. From what has been ofFer'd to prove the Godhead of the Holy Ghoft from his Works in the OEconomy of Salvation, we may in- fer both the Neceffity of his Operations up- on us, and the great Incouragement we have to feek and hope for 'em. Vit I. Use I. We may infer our ahfolute need of the gracious effeBnal Operations of -the Spirit unto our Salvation. The Work of Regeneration is often repre- fented in Scripture as indifpenfably Neceffary to Salvation. And this NeceiTity refpeds that Regeneration which is denominated from the John 3, Spirit as the Author of it. Verily y^vertlyy faid 5* Chrift, / fay unto thee. Except a Man be born * ' of the SPIRIT^, he cannot ^nter into the Kingdom of God. We muft be born of the Spi- rit, if ever we are born again, and if ever we partake of the Bleflings of God's Kingdom, t John And when we have paffed from Death to Life^ 3« '4- or are Partakers of fpiritual Life, by being ^y^^^^ l^ornof God, the Continuance, Support, Afti- Chap. 4. vity, and Comfort of that Life, depend 01^ 7. the Holy Ghoft, or on what he doth from the Father and Son in and upon us. The Ap- plication of all Salvation to us, is only by him. In vain we hope for Salvation from the Elec- tion of the Father, or from the Redemption of the Son, without the Application of the Holy Ghoft. We can no more be faved without his work;, than we can without theirs : ( «83 ) 'tis this that makes all efFedual to us; and what Intereft we have, or ever may have, in what the Father and Son have done about our Sal- vation, is all an Uncertainty, as to us, till 'tis applied and manifefted to us by the fpeci- al Work of the Spirit in us. Hereby, and hereby only, we may know that the Father meant us in his eternal Counfels of Grace, or that we were chofen from cverlafting by him ; and that Chriil meant us fof his peculi- ar People, when in the Fulnefs of Time /;^ Mat. 20. gave his Life a Ranfomfor many. Hereby, and^®* not otherwife, we may know that God is our Father in Chrift, that we are Heirs of Hea- ven, and that all the Riches of the Glory of that Inheritance are (dikly laid up in Chrift for us, and that when he [fjdll ^Tf/^^^zr again,Col.3.4. we alfo Jhall appear with him in Glory, The Work of the Holy Ghoft upon us, is neceifary to fit us for every Duty, to fupport us under every Trial of Life, and Agony of Death, and to prepare us for an Enjoyment of eternal BlelTednefs after it. This will make us live holily, and dye comfortably ; this will help us to improve both Ordinances and Providences unto fpiritual faving Purpofes, and will make us fafe and happy, whatever elfe may befall us. If any Man have not the Rom, 8, Spirit of Chrift, he is none of his. But if this9> io« Spirit dwells in us, tho* our Bodies will dye becaufe of Sin, yet he will raife us up to a blelled Immortality, becaufe of Chrift's per- fect Righteoufnefs wrought out for us, and imputed to us, thro' Faith of the Operation of this Spirit. N 4 Use Use II. Wc may infer that we have the greateft Incouragemem to feek and hofefor the ef- feBual Operations of this Spirit. While Perfons are at Eafe in the Ways of Sin, they have very flight Apprehenfions of theNeceflity of the HoFy Spirit's Operations upon their Hearts ; but when their Confci- ences are awaken'd to fee their Sin and Danger, they ufually feel, and are forced to own that NecefFxty. And very commonly at fuch Seafons their Apprehenfions of their own Unworthinefs, Guilt, and Provocations on one hand, make them afraid that this holy Spirit will never concern himfelf with them ; and their Apprehenfions of Hardnefs of Heart, and addidednefs to Sin,, are fome- times fo llrong on the other, that they are ready to think it impolTible they fhould evet be eftedually turn'd from Sin to God. v> ;; But what we have heard concerning the Spirit and his Work, may be bf ufe to re4 lieve fuch difcouraged Souls, and to raife their Hopes in feeking after his effedual 0-' perations. He is God that raifeth the Dead ; and nothing can be too hard for him to do. He can eafily remove the greatefl Mountains that lie in his way, and make 'em all a. Plain. He is the Sovereign God, who works when and where he lifteth ; and therefore tho' thou art mofl Unworthy, and it may be haft long fought for his gracious Influences without Any difcernable Succefs ; yet 'tis fit tmni fhould'il flill continue waiting upon him. for themt and for ought thou knov/efl his Time is jud at hand, and he may effedually reach tiiy Heart before thou art aware. H^ is ijidced the IL.'i)' Spirit^ and as fuch can't but ( i8s ) but abhor all Sin : But He is likewife that Holy Spirit, whofe fpecial Work it is to renew unholy Souls, and to purify them from their Sins ; and therefore his Hatred of thy Sins jfeou'd make thee hate 'em too, andftrengthen thy Pleas that He wou'd not fuffer fuch hate- ful Evils to abide with thee. He is the good Spirit of God ; Goodnefs is his Nature, and Goodnefs runs thro' all the Operations by which He is mofl eminently known. *Twas in his infinite Goodnefs to Sinners, that He form'd and furnifh'd Chrift's Human Nature, that Chrift in that Nature might redeem, them. 'Tjs in the fame Goodnefs that He indited the Scriptures, and maintains a Gof- pel-Miniftry, to make known that bleffed Redeemer to them ; and by thefe Means he loves to relieve diftreffed Souls, to raife fpi- ritual Breathings within them, and to help their Infirmities when they can but groan. Yea, He, confider'd with refped to his gra- cious Operations, is the great Promife of the Gofpel-Difpenfation, which is calfd the Mi- niflration of the Spirit ; and his great Defign is to glorify Chrift by revealing him to Sin- ners, and by bringing over their Hearts to him. And to fhew the Pleafure he has in this Work, he has already come upon Thou- fands with faving Efficacy, who were once (barring the Sin againft the Holy Ghoft) as unworthy and guilty, and as full of Fears and Difcouragements in themfelves, as thou can'ft be. Many fuch are flill Mwing upon Earth, and many more are already got fafe to Hea- ven ; and there are the fame Grounds of Hope for thee now, as there formerly were for them. Either Ct86) ' Either thou, O Sinner, art defirous of this Spirit's Operations on thy Heart, or thou art not. If thou art noty the greater is thy Sin and Danger, for defpifing fuch a great and holy one as He is ; and if He never works effedually on thee, thou haft no Rea- fon to complain ; for with what Juftice wilt thou complain that thou hadft not f^^f which thou didft not defire to have. I do not fay there is no Hope for fuch, becaufe this fove- reign Spirit begets Defires where there were none before, and ufuaily bleifeth the Means of Grace for that Purpofe ; but the Confide- rations I have fuggefted, are not defign'd to incourage fuch Perfons Hopes while they con- tinue in their prefent ftupid Circumftances ; For as this would be very <^/zw^^ro^,fo 'twould be really tricing in ferious Things, to talk of incouraging Perfons Hopes with refped to an Affair which they have no concern of Mind about. ^ But if thou haft any Defires after this Spi- rit's gracious Influences, what has been of- fer'd may help to animate thofe Defires with Hopes that in due Time they fiiall be fatis- fy'd. For He is ftill the fame in his Power and Grace as ever ; He has ftill the fame bleffed Defigns of faving Mercy to carry on as ever ; and the Gofpel-Difpenfation is ftill the Miniftration of the Sjpirity with refped to his gracious Operations, as much as ever ; Thou therefore oughteft not to fay or think, that he will not renew and fave thee : But go thou on in the good ways of God ; diligent- ly ufe all Means of Grace with watchful Ex- pedations of this Spirit's Movings on thy Heart ,* and if thou canft not be fatisfied with Duties and Ordinances without an Experi- ence (187) ence of his effedual Operations in and by them, thou needefl not fear a Mifcarriage ; for thou haft already the Tokens of this Spi- rit's Prefence with thee, and the moft hope- ful Intimations that he has begun the good Work, Hnd will carry it on to Vidory. And is there any among you under the Withdra wings of this Spirit, after you have had fome Experience of his renewing,ftrength- ning and comforting Influences ? Haft thou loft tiiefe again ? And is this the concern of thy Htart ? He has not utterly forfaken thee. There is ftili fomething left in that Heart of thine, to fhew that he defigns a fmiling Re- turn again unto thee. Thy very Fears that he will not return, fhew that thou haft a Va- lue for his Prefence, and that he ftill conti- nues to move upon thy Soul. And all the Conliderations that have been fuggefted con- cerning him, are fo many Arguments to raife thy Hopes above thy Fears, and to make thee plead the Promife with Faith, that thy ^/x-I-^k. u, •venly Father will give the holy Spirit to them that^^' ask him. Go thou therefore to God in Chrift, upon the Ground of thefe Incouragements, and fay unto him as David did ; Refiore unto^^al' Si« me the Joy of thy Salvation^ and uphold me ivitb *^* thy free Spirit. SERMON ( i88) SERMON VII. I COR. xii, II. But aU thefe worketh that one and the felf-fame Spirit^ dimding to everj Man fever ally ojs he will. I Have gone thro' fotir Heads of Argu-- ment, to prove that the Holy Ghofl is the Sovereign and Almighty God ; and now proceed to a fifth, Arg. 5. Fifthly, That DIVINE WORSHIP, which the Scripture appropriates to the only Sovereign and Almighty Gody is by Scripture-IVarr ant given to the Holy Ghofl. That the only true God is the alone Objed of divine Worfhip, or that it muft be paid to none but Him, is (o clearly the Dodrine of the Scripture, that he that runs may read it. We are fully affured of this by Multitude's of Teftimonies, and from the Mouth of Chrift himfelf, who aflertcd the Scripture- Mat. 9. Do(5trine in thefe Words ; Thcujhalt worJJjtp' to. the Lord thy Gody and him 0 N LT fialt thou prve. This fingle Text (peaks home to this Point ( i89 ) Point, and cuts off all Diftinftions of Su- preme and Inferior, or of Abfolute and Relatwe Worfhip y as if one of thefe Sorts might be paid to a Creature, and the other only to God.* The Worfiiip demanded by Satan, ^^^^ ^^ was that which is call'd the inferior and rela- compar'd tive fort; and yet that ySis well as all other, was with refufed him upon this eternal and unchange- ^^^^ 4' able Ground, that we muft IVorjhip the Lord * otir God, and him ONLT muft we ferve. The holy Angels are the moft likely of all Creatures to be worfhipp'd, becaufe of the Excellence of their Beings, and becaufe of * their conftant, tho' invifible, Afpoaches to perform the kindeft Offices to us. But the Angel that was vifibly prefent with the Apo-^^^* ^-* file John, and aded in an exalted Character ' ^* toward him, refufed to accept of any Wor- fhip from him. And all Worfhipping of An- gels is forbidden, whatever may be the Pre- tences of Humility or Advantage in it. Let no Man, fays the Apoftle, beguile you of your ^^^'^* Reward, in a voluntary Humility, and TVOR-^ * SHIPPING OF ANGELS. The infinite Being and PerfeBions of God, are the origi- nal Ground of all the Worfhip that is paid him ; and therefore to offer any divine Wor- fhip to one who has not that Being and thofe Perfedions, is to be gnilty of Idolatry : For otherwife, we might worfhip Angels with- out Idolatry, provided we confider them only as excellent and benificent Creatures, and don*t pretend to afcribe that Supreme Glory to them which belongs to God alone. But * See D/-. W^XttUnd^'s Vindication, p. ij6,&c. thefe C I90 ) thefe Things have been formerly dlfcufsM a^ fome Length, to which I refer for farther Sa-* ti^fadion about 'em. f If therefore the Scripture affures us, that any one Ad: of divine Worfhip is to be paid to the Holy Gholl? that is a convincing Proof that He is the only true God ; becaufe, as we have heard, no fuch A(5t muft be per- form'd to any Being whatever, but to that God only. The blefled Spirit is indeed moft ufually reprefented in theChriftianOEconomy as that John 14.^^^^^" ^^ ^^^ Godhead, who moft immedi- 17. ately dwells and works within us, and by gra- Rom. 8. eious Affiflance, excites and enables us to of* 5^' "*^'fer up all our Worlhip in a fpiritual a^nd ac-* 14. 'ceptable Manner. Hence He is call'd the Zee. iz. Spirit of Graccy and of Supplications ; and is 10. faid to help our Infirmities y when io^ know not Rom. 8. ^^1^^^ ^^ Jhould pray for as we ought. And we Jude 20. ^^ exhorted to pray in the Holy GJooft, and Eph. 6. "^"'^^ ^^^ Prayer and Supplication I N I'M E 18.* * SPIRIT, Accordingly we are faid to /7^i;^ Chap. z. accefs thro" Chrifi by ONE SPIRIT to the Fa- '8. ther. Now, confidering what part the Holy Gholl peculiarly bears in this Scheme of Worfliip, as *tis fuited to the OEconomy of Salvation, 'tis not to be expeded that he, in his perfonal Charader, fliou'd be fo often diftindly mention'd as the ObjeB of it, as the Father or Son is. Worfhip is an Addrefs to God ivithout us, and is generally direded ta Him coniider'd as dwelling in Heaven, rather than as dwelling in our Hearts : Thus Chrift Mat. 6. taught us in our Prayers to fay. Oar Father^ 9- t See Sermons on Chrifi 's Godhead* 'Whkh ( m ) xvhkh art IN HEAVEN. And tho' Chrifl was worfhipp'd when he was on Earth, yet even then he was confider'd as an Objed without the Worfhippers ; and now he is in his human as well as divine Nature in Hea- ven, He, on the account of his divine Na- ture, is more frequently reprefented as the Objed of Worfhip together with the Father, than the Holy Ghofl: is. Tho' the Father and Son are moft com- monly fpoken of as Objeds without us, and as fet before us, yet they likewife really dwell and work in us .' For, fays Chrift, If any Man love me, he will keep my IVords ; ^'^^Johm^. my Father will love himy and WE will comezi. unto himy and make OUR ABODE with him. And on the other hand, tho' the Holy Ghoft is moft commonly fpoken of as an Agent within us 'y yet he is likewife undoubtedly in Heaveny and has a real Exiftence without us, as appears hy what has been faid concerning the Infinity of his Being, Hence as the Fa- ther's and Son's dwelling in us, or abiding with us, is no Objection againft our Wor- (hipping them, fo the Spirit's dwelhng in us is none againft our Worfliipping him. But as neither the Father nor Son is propofed to us, as the Objed of Wor/hip, under the Coniideration of their dwelling in us ; fo 'tis not reafonable to fuppofe that the Holy Ghoft fliou'd be ufually, tho' he is fometimes, fpoken of as fuch an Objed, iince the Part he bears in the OEconomy of Salvation, re- quired that he fhou'd be commonly mention'd under indwelling Charaders. When we conlider the Holy Ghoft with regard to his fpecial Work, as he i^ fent by the Father and Son, to ad within us> we arc ( 1^2 ) to worfhip by Uis Afliftance ; but wheh Wt confider what he is in his ejfential Excellen- cies, which are the fame with the Father's and Son's, we may as fafely worfhip him as them, becaufe thefe Excellencies are the ori- ginal Ground of all Wdrfhip. The Worfhip we pay to the Father, thro' the Son, as Me- diator, by the AfTiflance of the Holy Spirit, is not, I conceive, paid to the Father merely as the Father, or on the Account of that his perfonal Character, as if that was the origi- nal Ground of our Worfhip ^ but 'tis paid to Him as God, or on the account of his divine Nature and effential Attributes : And fo by jufl Implication this Worfhip is paid to the other two Perfons together with him, be- caufe they all are one God, and partake of the fame undivided Nature and effential Pro- perties, which are the formal Reafon of that Worfhip. Hence, whichever divine Perfon is mofl diredly apply 'd to at any time in our Wor- Ihip;, the other Two are not excluded from being the Objed of it, becaufe we therein worfhip the one Deity of them all. And whenever our Worfhip is order'd to be paid, or is recorded as paid, not to any particular Perfon in the Godhead, but to God fpoken of abfolutely, or under fome eflential Cha- rader, (as it very often is) in fuch Cafes I conceive the Objed of Worfhip is to be un- derilood as meaning the Father, Son, and Holy Ghoft, if the Circumftancesof the Con- text don't determine otherwife. And when God is fpoken of as worfhipM under fuch Characters of his Workings, as are ufually afcrib'd in the mofl immediate manner to the Holy Ghoft, there we may reckon that He C 193 ) He is more efpecially to be regarded as the Objcd of that Worlhip. Bat that I may lead you to nearer and more direfl Proofs, that religious or divide lJA)rjhip is by Scripture-lVarrant to be given to the Holy Ghoft^ I fhall proceed by the follow- ing Steps, which may be look'd on as fo ma- ny Arguments for his God-Head. I . God has no inhere FORBID our IVorJIji^^ ing the Holy Ghofl. I find God is exceeding jealous of the Ho- nour of his Worfhip, frequently calling him- id^ 3. jeakpu God on that account. I find heEj^od. ftri6tly forbids our Worfhiping any but him- 34' ^^ felf, faying, Aly Glory will I not give to another. l^i*^2,,3, I find many exprefs Prohibitions againft Wor- fhiping any of the Gods of the Heathen^ and againft Worfhiping any Men or Angels : But I can no where find in all the Scripture, any thing that looks like fo much as a Caution againft Worfhiping the Holy Ghofl, No Checks or Difcouragements are put upon this ; The whole Tenour of the Scripture lies in Favour of it ^ and nothing that I can perceive is ever fuggefted againft it. But certainly ii the Holy Ghoft was not to be worfhip'd, we fhou'd have had fome Intimations of it, confidering how likely he is above all Creatures whatever to have di- vine Worfhip paid to him, on the account of his fupcrior Charaders of Greatnefs and Goodnefs, of Prefence with us, and gracious Benificence towards \\s^ under which he is commonly reprefented to us. The more ad- vanced his Excellencies and Lovelinefs are, the greater is the Danger of our making an Idol of him, in Cafe he really is not God O Hence, ( t94 ) Hence it is altogether improbable that God fhould fiiew no Jealoufy about giving his Glory to the Holy Ghoft, if it is not his due ; fince he has exprefs'd his Indignation wiih (o much Terror as he has, againft its beinc; given to any other. Can we fuppofe that God fhould (o flridly forbid our paying any divine Honours to thofe Idol-gods, which have no Pretences to Divinity, and not give us the leaft Caution againft doing the like to the blefled Spirit, who undeniably has the moil fpecious Appearances of Divir- nity, and to whom, to fay the leaft, God has given us very ftrong Intimations that we ihould pay them ? If a King fliould ftridly forbid his Subjeds paying Royal Honours to any but himfelf, and fhould particularly men- tion the moft dcfpicable Competitors of his Crown, and charge 'em not to pay fuch Ho- nours to them, he would certainly make the like Prohibitions againft doing it to one, if there was any fuch, that had higher and more likely Pretenfions to it, and bid fairer for it. In like manner, if the Holy Ghoft i^ not to be worfhipM, the great and jealous God would furely have forbid our paying any divine Honours to him, as he has to the Gods of the Heathen. 01/3. I can't think it fufficient to fay, that God difdains the Difgrace that is put upon him in VVorfhiping fuch contemptible Things as the Gods of Mens Invention are, and there- fore he fo ftridly forbids theWorfhiping them : Anfw ^^^ ^h^^ ^^ ^^ fuppofe that God can bear with 2. great but not with a Ihtk Idol ; whereas He indeed as much difdains to be taken for the highefli as for the meanefi of his Creatures, or that they fl:ould be taken for him ; be- caufe ( ^95 ) Ca.ufe He is infinitely, and fo equally above them all. Yea, fince many Idol-worfiiipers never took their Gods for proper Deities, much left for the only true God, and fince Chriflian-worfhipers take the Holy Ghoft to be the only true God, and worfhip him as flich ; if he is not indeed that God, the Difiionour done to God is fo much the great- er on that Account, becaufe on this Suppofi- tion the only true God is infinitely debafed in our Thoughts, and leveli'd with a Crea- ture. And therefore the VVorfhiping of the Spirit, with Apprehenfions of his being God, needed moft of all to be ftridly guarded a- gainft, if in Truth he is not God. If it is farther faid, that God forefaw how ^^- nddiBed Mankind would be to worfhip the Iti&iS ot the Heathen, and therefore he fo explicitly and feverely forbid it. It may be ahfwer a^ That he as certainly forefaw that Anfv/* the Chriftian Church would generally wor- fhip the Holy Ghoft j and yet has laid in no Prohibition againft their doing (o. And we can't fuppofe that God is lefs concerned a- bout his own Honour in the Worfhip of the Chriftian Church, than in any other Wor- fhip : And therefore, if religious Worfhip was not to be paid to the Holy Ghoft, he would furely have faid fomething to pre- vent it. 2 . T*he hlejfeci Spirit is never fpoken of or re^ frefented oi a JVO RS fJ IP ERy or as faying any divine Honours to God, Every Creature, I mean all intelligent Crea- ture^, are undoubtedly oblig'd to Worfhip God. Their Relation to him, and Depen- ds ilce on him, areconflant Obligations upon them to do Homaee to him. And the more "O a Noble Noble and Excellent their Beings and Endow" ments are, the higher their Obhgations rife, the more capable they are of Adoring him ; and if they are as good as they are great, the more prompt and active they will be in pay- ing that Homage to him. Accordingly the Scripture frequently reprefents the whole Creation by a Figure^ and Angels and Men in z proper Senfe as praiiing and adoring God. Pfa. T05. j5/^y} f/jg Lordy fays David, ye Ins Angels that 2-0.1 1, 2z ^^(^Qiiyi jiYi^yigi^jj^ — ^/^y} fjjQ i^ord all ye his Ho ft s^, ye Minijiers of his that do his Pleafure. Blefs the Lord all hii IVorks in all Places of his D (.mi- ni on ; Blefs the Lord, Q my Soul. The like Strain of fummoning all the Creation to praife the Lord runs thro Pfalm 148, And the A- Rev. $. poftle yohn, relating his Vifions, fays, / le- * '* ^^* heldy and I heard the Voice of many Angels round about the I'hrone, and the Beafls, and the El- dersy and every Creature which is in Heaven^ and on the Earthy and tinder the Earthy andfuch as are in the Sea, and all that are in themy heard 1 faying, Bleffingy and Honoury and Gloryy and Powery be unto Him that Jit teth upon the T'hroney and unto the Lamb for ever. But nei- ther in thefe, nor in any other Places, is there the lead Intimation that the Spirit of God join'd as a Worfliiper, or that he ever performed any Ad of Worfliip. He is in- John 16. deed faid to glorify Chrift : But every one 14. may eafily fee that the Senfe of that Ex- preffion, as there ufed, has no Relation to the Spirit''s worfhip'ing him. The Father Ch. 17. likcwik glorifies the Sony and glorifies his own I. 8c iz. ]^ame ; but I fuppofe none will fay that he ' worfliipeth the Son or himfelf. Obj, The only Places I can think of that look with any Appearance of the Spirit s wor- jQiiping ( 197 ) fiiiping are, where we are told at one time, the Spirit and the Bride fay, come ; and at anc- ^^v. 22* ther, T^he Spirit helpetb our Infivmitles ; for we [J* ^ knoiv not inuat we jboiild pray for as we ought ; ^^ ^.^ but the Spirit it felf maketh Imerceffion for m with Groanings which cant h utter d. And hs that fearcheth the Hearts^ knoweth v^hat is the Mind of the spirit, becaufe he maketh Inter cejji on for the Saint ^^ according to the Will of God. But I conceive nothing can be concluded to this Purpofe from the firfl of thefe Texts : For this come may be CQnfider'd not as 2l Prayer direded to thrift, but as an Invitation di-- reded to Men^ to whom the Spirit fpeaks in the Word and in their Hearts to cqme to Chrift: for Life, as the latter Part of the Verfe explains it. And whofoever willy let him take the Water of Life freely. But i^ it is fup- pos'd to relate to Chrijfs coming again, this ExpreiHon, come, may he taken in very diffe- rent Senfes according to the different Con- dition of the Perfon that fpeaks, and the different Manner of his fpeaking it. It may be an Injunction from a Superior,- a b2iVQlVifi, Advice.orCounfel, or Notification ofJVtlh froni an Equal ; and a Prayer as well as a Wifh from an Inferior. Now as the Spirit is by Nature equal toChn^i as God, and fuperior to. him as Man; fo, if he fays, comey it may beconfider'd as an ExprelTion after the manner of Men, fignifying his IViIl that Chrift fhould come to. Judgment, together with the Pleafure he has therein ; and may refpecl either his inward Purpofe and Delight, or what he has faid in Scripture, and particularly in this Book of the Revelations, concerning it. Or, if we underftand this Expreffion as a Prayer, the Spirit's faying, coine, may dgnlfy what he Q 3 ' %^ ( 198 ) fays in th2 Hearts of his People, as he dic- tates that Prayer to them, and as he raifes up their holy fervent Defires for Chrift's coming. According to the two Firfl of thefe Senfes, there is nothing like Worfhip paid by the Holy Ghoft to Chrift. And according to the laft^ the Worfhip is paid not by any Ad- drefs of the Spirit himfell, as an Inferior to Chrift ; but by the Church's Addrefs to Chriftj according to the Spirit's didates, and under the Spirit's fupcrior Influence. And this (as Parem obferves on the Place) is by a Metalepfis call'd the Spirit s fayingy co7ne^ becaufe he excites her Defires, iand enables her to pray with the ftrongeft Anhelations of Soul for it. And fo this Text may be ex- plained by a Confideration of the true Mean- ing of the other, which fpeaks of His makwg Interceffion for m imh GYoanings that cant b^ ~ utter d. This Work of the Spirit relates not to his Interceding for \is, as an Advocate or Me- diator to God ; for that is the peculiar Office of Chrift our great High Prieft, and is men- tion'd V. 34. It is Chnfl that died^^—who alfo maketh Inter cejJhyifoY m ; and we are affiir'd that there \s but one Mediator between God and I Ijim. j^j^^^^ ^j^^ j^^^^ Chrrft Jefpii, But the Inter- ceflion, which the Spirit makes for us, con- fifts in his Work ivithin us, helping our Infir- mities ^ aiFifting, exciting, and direQing us /70TU to pray, as to the Manner, with inward Groanings of fpiritual Defires beyond what we canexprefs ; and what to pray for, as to the Matter, agreeable or according to the IVill of Gody and fo doing that for us, to enable ps to pray Spiritually, which we could not 4o for our (elves. The Inten^effion here fpo- kca 2. 5 ken of is fafd to be with Groanings that cant be utter d. But 'tis wholly inconiident with the Felicity and Sufficiency of the Spirit to fuppofe that he himfelf fhould be theSub/ed of fiK^h uniitterabie Groanings ; and 'tis al- together unintelligible how any unknown In- terceilion of the Spirit apart from us, fhould awaken fuch patherick Emotions in our Hearts : And therefore his Interceding with Groanings for us, can only denote his rai- fing thofe Groanings or '\:iO\y Breakings of Soul ^^^-'^^9* within us, as Htdwelletb in m^ and is a ^P^'^^^^ 3 rit of Grace and Supplications to .us. . The^ n". Holy Ghoft's Agency in our Addreffes to God is call'd HIS making Iraercejjton, be- ^^^' ^^' caufe 'tis by his gracious Suggeftions to, and '°' Influences on our Hearts, that we are enabled to plead fo earneflly with him. Thus when the Apoftles fLould be call'd to plead the Caufe oF Chrift before Governours and KingSy Chrifl: told them, It ftjould he given them /»Mat.io. that fame Hour what theyjfjouJdfpeak; and be- 18, i9> caufe this was to be given them by the Sug-^^* geftion of the Holy Spirit, he adds. It is not ye that [peak, but the Spirit of your Father that fpeaketh in you. Or, as another -E^^^^- Luke 12. ^^-Z/y? explains it, The Hcly Ghcfi jhall TEACHiz. you in the fune Hour what ye ought to fay; which (hews that the Spirit's y/'^.'7^/>i'^ in them, and his teaching them what they (houldfpeak, .mean one and the fame thing. And with refped to our dealings with God, He is faid to fend forth the Spirit of his Son into our Hearts, ^ , crying Abba, Father, becaufe it is byhisSpi-^^ rit's working in us, as the Spirit of Adop- tion, that we are enabled to fpeak to God in Faiths and call him Father. Thus the Apoftle explains it when he fays, W^ha^js^^^^ 3^ O 4 ye-i'^. ( 200 ) yeceived the Spirit of Adopiony whereby WE cry Ahbay Father. Tho the Spirit of Grace and Supplication enables Believers to offer up all the accept- able Worfhipthey pay toGod; yet what he doth herein are not properly his Ads tovoard Gody as the Object of them ; but his Ads towards my whereby we become true Wor- fhipers of him. As Ads of Worfhip are didated to us, and excited in us, they are the Spirit's Ads ; but as they are put forth [?y us, and terminate on Gody they are our own Ads * As a Parent may be fuppofed not to pray himfelf, when he isdidating a Prayer to his Child to (ly it after him. And as a Magiflrate don't fwear himfelf, when he didates an Oath to others, who are to re- peat it after him : So the Holy Ghoft dic- tates our Prayers to us, when he fuggefts what we fhall pray for, without praying himfelf. The Agency of the Spirit in our Wor- Ihip, don't fet him in the Place of a Wor- fhiper, but in the Place of God, who teach- Jer. 52. eth us to pray, and puts Ins Fear into our ^^' HeartSy and arcumcifes them to love him, ^f""^'^^- Hence God may as w^ell be call'd a Wor-. fhiper of himfelf, becaufe by his Influences upon us, we are direded, excited, and af-^ lifted to worfhip him, as the Holy Ghoft may be call'd a VVorfliiper of him on thefe Accounts. Chriji having an /V/f^mr Nature, 'twas very iit that in his humbled State, He, as Many fnould pay religious Worfhip to God ; and accordingly we are told, that m the Days of Heb. 5.7, his Flejhy he offer d up Prayers and Supplications Mai. ii'with ftYong crying and T'earSy and that he gave *^* l^hanks unto his Father. But the Holy Ghufi having ( 201 ) having only his original divine Nature, for which he was under no Obligations to any Perfon in the Godhead, it is inconfiftenc with his infinite Dignity in every Confidera- tion of him, that he fhould pay any Worfhip at all; and accordingly he is never repre- fented as applying to God in a way o^ Prayer or Praifey for any Favour relating to hirafelf or others. But farely if this blefied Spirit owes any religious Worfhip to God, he is fo good and holy as to pay it ; and if he ever paid, or is to pay any, methinks we muft have had fome Hint of it in Scripture, lefl his infi- nitely exalted Charader fhould make us mif- take him for God, if he really is not fo. But if he doth not owe religious Worfhip to God, and never pays any, he mufl needs be the God to whom fuch Worfhip mufl be paid. For to fuppofe a Perfon to be neither a JVorj'hJpery nor an Objeci of Worfhip, is to fuppofe him to be neither a Dependent, nor an Independent Being ; one that is not obliged to Godi and yet one that is mt God; one that is too big to be a Worfhiper, and yet too little to bs worfhiped, which are all Suppofitions the moft fhocking that can well be imagin'd. Since therefore He is not a Worjhiper^ he mufl himfelf be the Object of Worfhip, and confequently inuft be by Nature that God, to whom alone all religious Worfhip is due. . 3 . 'tbe Holy Spirit is the OhjcB againfl vjhojn S I N IS committed. As Ifraers Sin againfl God was calfd their » fYOvokwgy rebelling, and ^r/>w;^ him, fo 'tis^^^'^ call'd their rebelling, and ^uexing his holy Spi-^L 1.2. ytt ; which llicws chat he is included in the&<5Mc. God, ( 202 ) God, whom they ought to have obey'cl. Their Difobedience to him was a relifting his Authority in his Word, and in the mira- culous Signs he wrought to confirm it, as Ste- Ads 7 P^^^ ^-^^^ ^^ ^^^ y^'^^ ' ^^ fiiff-necked and un- 51, 52 ' ciraimcifed m Heart and Ears, ye do alwap re^ 53. fifi the Holy Ghoji ; as your Fathers did, fo do ye. iVhich of the Prophets have not your Fathers per- fecuted /* and they havejlatn them, which fiewed before of the coming of the jufl One, of iv horn ye have been now the Betrayers and Murderers, who have received the Law by the Difpo/it?on of An- gels, and have not kept it. The Fore-fathers of thefe Jews rejifted the Holy Ghoft, as he fpoke to them by the Prophets, and fiewed before-hand of the coming of Chrifi, and as He was included in that God who gaye 'em the Law in the mid'/i of attending Angels. Their Difobedience to this Law, and their Perfecming and flaying the Prophets, and fo rejeding what the Spirit faid by them, was a refiling not of Men, but of the Holy Ghoft himfelf, as the God that fpoke by them. They refijled the Holy Ghoft juft in the fame manner as Ananias lye d to him, andfo finnVi ^ ^' againft Him, which was call'd a lying not to ' ^* Men, but to God, becaufe the Holy Ghoft was the God, who fpoke and aded in and by the Apoftles. Accordingly this was call'd a veT.9 tempting the Spirit of the Lord, juft in the i7%8* ^^"^^ manner as ifraeTs finning againfl God 41! * \v2is c^Wd a, tempting Him. Hence we likewife read of doing Defpiteto the Spirit of Grace, and of committing Blaf- phemy againft Him, which are reprefented as Sins of the deepeft Guilt and moft fatal Con- Heb ic f<^^uence. He that defpifed MofesV Law, dyed xp. * ' xvithotu mercy Of how much forer Punilhmem, C 203 ) fiippofe ysy JJjall he be thought zvorthy, who hath trodden under joot the Son vj God, and hath dene DESPITE rtO "THE SPIRIT OF GRACE, And all manmr of Sin and Mat, f 2, Blafphemjy lays Chrift, jhall Oe forgiven unto ^ly 32* Men, but the BLASPHEMY AGAINST THE HOLT GHOST fhall not be for- given unto Men; — whoever fpeaketh AGAINST The holy GHOST, it Jhall not be for- given him. Tho this Defpite done to the Spi- rit, and this BLifphcmy againft Him, may be fuppofed to relate to fome of his fpecial Works j yet the Holy Ghoft is plainly fpo- ken of as the divine Agent, that was the Author of thofe Works, in oppofition to Feelz^ebub the Prince of the Devils to whom they were maiicioufly imputed : -and fo the Perfon of the Holy .Ghoft was blafphem'd by the malicious Turn that was given to his Works. And the unparallel'd Guilt of this Blafphemy againft him intimates that He is God^ who ought to be attended to with Reverence, and not delpitefuliy treated in thofe Works ; for otherwiie it could not be fo highly Cri- minal to fin againft Him in them. Shall blafpheming the Works of a Creature be fiip- pofed to be more Criminal than blafpheming the Works of God himfelf? Or can we rea- fonably think that all other Sins againft God are pardonable, and this againft the Holy Ghoft is unpardonable, and yet that the Holy Ghoft is not God ? This feems to befpeak too high a Reverence for Him, and to de- mand a religious Regard to his Works, upon a Penalty too fev^re, whatever thofe Works may be, unlefs He really is God, and ads in them with the Majefty of God. But if we iii^ofe thefe Works to be Cod's own Works, which ( 204 ) which the Holy Ghoft, as God, performs with the fulleft Evidence of divine Energy, and as the laft and moft condefcending Means of Convidion, and that thefe are blafphem'd, reviled, and malicioufly oppo- fed, inftead of being entertain'd with Faith, Love, and Reverence, it is no wonder that fuch a Sin, fo defperate, refoliite, and ma- lignant, conimitted againft fnch an infinitely great and divine Agent, fhould of all others be irremiflible. Now the Objed of Sin and Dnty, of 0- hedience and Difohedience, of Blafpbemy and r^'- ligiom Regards, is the fame. As God only is the Objed of all religious Worfiiip, fo He only is the Objed againfi; whom Sin, as Sin, Oea»?9. is committed. Hence faid J.ofeph; How can 9. / do this great Wickednefs , and fin aga'm^ GOD? And Again ft T'hee, faid David to Vh.su God, thee ONLY have I finned. If there- 4- fore the Holy Ghoft is the Objed againft whom Sin is committed. He is likewife the Objed to whom Duty or Worfiiip ought to be performed. Religious Fear and Ohedi- encey which include all Worfhip, are the di- red Oppofites to Contempt of God and Dif- tbedience unto him, which are the Height of Atheifm and Impiety. Apd therefore as Defpite and Rebellion are committed againft the Spirit, fo a religious Fear of offending Him, and religious Worfhip of Him or O- bedience to Him are his Due. Hence is the Epb. 4. Apoftle's Charge, Grieve not the Holy Spirit ^^' of God, ivhereby ye are fealed unto the Day oj Redemption. And we are commanded to Rev. 2. ^^^^^ IV hat the Spirit faith to the Churches. Sure- 7. ' ly then the Spirit muft be the God who is the Objed of our Worfhip, fince He is the God^ who- ( 205 ) who in a proper Senfe is finn'd againft, as really as rhe Father and Son. 4. Believers are the I'EMP L E of the Holy Cboft. This the Apoftle ftrongly afferts when he fays, Know je noty that your Body is the Temple * Cor. 6, of the Holy Ghofi, ivhich is in you ? A Temple '^' in the very Notion Oi it relates to God. It is dedicated or devoted wholly to him, and to no other. The devoting it to God for his Honour and Service, is it felf an Ad of Religion j and all the Worfhip perform'd in it, is to be perform'd only to that God, whofe Temple it is, as the proper Object of it. This was undeniably the Cafe with re- fpeft to the Temple of old, which was built j j^j^^g to the Name of the Lord ; and was folemnly 5. 5. dedicated unto him, that he might be wor- Chap. 8. fhiped therein. That Temple was typical ^^^^ugh- of the Gofpel Church, as well as of the hu- ^^^* man Nature of Chrift. And that the A- poftle had his Eye on the facred Relation and Dedication of Believers to God, when he caird them the Temple of the Holy Ghoft, ap- pears from what he adds in the next Words, j^nd ye are not your own, for ye are bought with ^ Cor. 6. a Price ; therefore G LOR I FT God in your ^^' ^°* Body and in your Spirit, which are God's, They in all the Powers of their Souls, and Mem- bers of their Bodies, are to be devoted to him whofe Temple they are, that they may worfhip and glorify him, Cleanfing themfelves ^Cor. 6. from all Fthhinefs of FleJJ) and Spirit, per feEiing.^^' s/- Holinefs in the Fear of God -^ as ihe Apollle j. ' ^' fpoke at another time upon his mentioning God's dwelling in them, as in his Temple, And hence he expoftulates the Cafe with them, ur- C20O Ufgihg tfiem to the ftridePc Purity in Dodri'rfd t Cor.2. and Pradice on this Account. Enow ye nbt i<5, 17, that ye are the Temple of God, and that the Spi- rit of God dwelkth in you ? If any Man defile the Temple of Cody him jhall God defiroy ; for the Temple of God is Holy^ which Temple ye are. Now then it being faid that Beliei^ers are the Temple of the Holy Ghoft, and this Temple having fuch a Relation to God as intimates that all the divine Worfhip ofFer'd in it, mull: be refer*d to him, whofe Temple it is, as the proper Objed: of it; the Holy Ghoft, together with the Father and Son, muft needs be the Objed of all the Worfhip we are able to pay, in the utmoft Devotednefs of our felves to his Service, and in all our religious Adings purfuant thereunto. Or fuppofing that by the Temple of the Holy Ghofl is meant the Church of Chrift at Corinth, confider'd as a fpiritual Society form'd for religious Worfhip-; then that Church, and by confequence all other Gofpel-Churches, are thereby reprefented as conftituted for the Honour of the Holy Ghoft; and all their Worfhip i\\ their Aflemblings together is to be Worfhip paid to Him, as well as to the Father and Son. 5. MINISTERS are folemnly fet a- part, or SEP A RAT ED for their minifies rial Work, TO the Holy Ghoft. This is clear from the Inflances of Paul and Barnabas, with refped to whom the Holy Kd:s i-^,' Ghofl faid, feparate me (Gr. to me) Barnabas *• and Saul, for the Work whereunto I have called them. The Holy Ghoft is here re- ^ prefented as the Ol^jeB to whom they were fe- ( 307 ) feparated , as well as the Author of that Separation of them to his Service. The Se- parating them to him, in Obedience to his Authority, and at his Command, was it felf a very evident Adt of fupreme Honour paid to him ; and all the Hmploymtnt of Paul and BarnabciSi which lay in Ads of Worfhip confequent to that Separation mufl be refer'd to Him as the ObjeB of them, iince they were feparated for that Employment to Him. Yea, all the Worfhip of the Church perform'd by their Diredions and Miniftra- tions, was to be Worfhip paid to the Holy Ghoft, fince Paul and Bar nab a< w^vq feparated to him, that he might be ferv'd by and have the Honour of all their Miniftrations, and of all the Religion which fhould be promoted by them. And what is here faid of extra- ordinary Officers, holds equally true with refped to ordinary Paftors, who are likewife fet apart to their Work by the Authority and Influence of the Holy Ghoft, in the Methods which Heprelcribesii! the Scriptures. Hence the Apollle Paul fpeaking to fuch, fays, 'I^ike A5s 20. heed to your felves, and to all the Flock, over the ^^* Tjhich the HOLT G HOSt hath made you Cverfeers. He who by his own Authority gives hisServantsCommiffon for their Work, muft be the Objcci: to whom they are devo- ted in it, and to whofe Honour and Glory all their religious Performances muft be refer'd. That Authority intitles Him to that Ho- nour ; and therefore the Holy Gholt who exercifeth that Authority in the moll: fove- reign Manner, muft needs have a Claim to that Honour. But 'tis furely the higheil Aifront that can be ctfer'd to God, to lup- pofe C 208 ) pofe, that the whole Miniftry fhould be fe-* parated or devoted for religious Worfiiip to the Holy Ghoft, if he is not the great and fovereign God. 6. We are BAPTIZED in the Name of the Holy Gbofi EQJJALLT and together "With the Name of the Father and Son. Goy fays Chrift, and teach all Nations^ lap-- Mat. 28. ti%,ing them in the Name of the Father ^ and of '^- the Sony and of the Holy Ghofl. Here the Holy Ghoft is put in the fame Rank with the Father and Son ; we are as much and in the fame manner baptized by his Authority, and to his Honour, or in his Name, as in theirs. The Form of ExprefTion relating to Him and Them is one and the fame : there is no Appearance of its being taken in a different Senfe in its Application to them refpedively, and being baptized in the Namey and not iw, the Names of thefe three Perfons, may de- note that their Authority is one. All the Mmhers of the vifible Church are devoted for religious Worfhip to the Holy Ghoft, by their being baptiz,ed in his Name ; as the Miniflers of it are, by their being f Parated to Him, and by his Authority, for all the religious Adminiftrations that belong to their holy Fundion. To be baptized in the Name of the Holy Ghofty equally with the Father's and Son's, is it feif a very folemn Ad of Worflnp ; the Perfons fo baptized are thereby dedicated to Him as Gody and are obliged to refer all the following Ads of their Religion to Him equally with them. 'Tis an acknowledg- ment that the Holy Ghoft is their Covenant- God, C 2C9 ) t^odi, every way fufficient to feal the Bleilings of the Covenant to them, and to enable them to reftipuiate unto Him. 'Tis a de- clared Submillion to his divine Authority over them, and a folemn Profeilion that they owe and come under Covenant-Obligations to yield all Faith, M/brfbip, and Obedience unto Him; and if they ad according to their baptifmal Engagements, they muft pay all After-aBs of Worfhip to Him equally with the Father and Son. Hence we are told, i Pet. ?, that the Thing iignify'd by Baptifm is the^l. AnfweYy or, as (ome render it, thef Siipula-y^'^-?''^' tion, of a goodConfcience toward God. And to '"^' what God fhoiild Confcience anfwer or fli- pulate, in Covenant-Tranfadions with Him, according to baptifmal Obligations, but to that God in whofe Name we are baptized ^ And that- is as much the Holy Ghoft, as the Father or Son. ¥ov t[\^ Father in this fo- lemn Ad of Worfhip is diftinguifh'd from the Son and Spirit, not by his effential, but by his/'-r/W/^/Name ; which fhews that the Son and Spirit are not diftinguifh'd from God, but only from the firfl Per/on in the Godhead, and that they all together are the One God to whom we ftand-obliged by our Baptifm. Who can think that God and Creatures fliould be equally joih'd in fuch a folemn com- plicated Ad of Worfhip ? *Tis certainly a moft urging Afiront to God, to fuppofe that we (hould be equally devoted to Him and to Creatures, and be thereby bound as much to the Faith, Worfhip, and Obedience of one, as of the other ,• and ytt this muft be fuppofed, if we fuppofe the Holy Ghoft not to be God. But fince this is too fliockinga P S p- ( 210 ) Suppofitiion to admit of, and fince in Bap- tifm we are really devoted for all religious Worfhip to the Holy Ghoft equally with the Father and Son, we may be aHar'd that He is God together with them, and muft be worfhip'd as fuch. Furthermore, as there is but one Faith, and one Baptifnh by which we profefs, and are oblig'd to have, that Faith ; To there is but one Lord, in whofe Name we are baptized, and in whom we are thereby bound to be- lieve, Eph. ^. 5. Now, tho in this Place, the Son is ferfonally diftinguifh'd from the Father and Holy Ghof}, by ihe Title of one Lord ; yet the Father and Holy Ghoft muft be eJJentiaUy the one Lord as well as the Son ; becaufe the one Baptifrn is in their Name as well as His, and we are thereby oblig'd to believe in them together with Him. Hence, as all allow that our being baptized in the Name of the Father fuppofes Him to be ef- fentially the one Lord, 'tis very harfli and in- congruous to fuppofe that the Holy Ghoft is not fo too, fince we are baptized in /;/iName equally with the Father's, and this Baptifm is but one. This is fuch a* piece of religious Homage, the Honour of it is fo grand and compre- henfive, that it can belong to none but the only true God. Hence when there were Party Contentions among the Corinthians a^ bout feveral Miniilers, the Apoftle Paul w^s thankful that the Providence of God had fo order'd it, that, fince they were fo fond of the Names of Men, and of his among o- thers, he had baptized but few among them, left any ^fl]Ould have thought, orinvidioufly fiiggefted, that he baptized in his own Name, and r 211 ) and To engaged them to pay religious Ho- nour to himjAf. Now this I fay, that every one i Cor. i, ofyoufaithy 1 am ed unto Mofes in the Cloud. But why i, may not this PafTage be underftood as ligni- fying, that they were baptized by Mofes, or by or among his Adminiftrations j fince the Prepojttion here ufed is the fame that is rea- der'd by the Difpoficion or Adminiiiration of AcIs 7 Angels, when it is faid, they received the^^. Law * by the Difpoftion of Angels .<* However, * «V fuppofing the VVords are to be underilood as'^'*^>'^V they lie in our Tranflation, yet to be bap- tiz.ed unto or into Mofes, and into the Name of Mofes, are very different ExpreiTions. Mofes is fometimes put for the Docinne taught by Mofes ; thus 'tis evidently to be taken when 'tis faid, They have Mofes and the Prophets ; Luk, 16. and // they hear not Mofes and the Prophets, ^9, ^i. neither will they be per f 'jaded tho one rofe from the ^ ^^* Dead ; and Mofes of old time hath in every City them that preach him, being read in the Sy^ nagogues every Sabbath-day. And fo to be baptized into Mofes, is only to be baptized into a ProfefTion and Belief of the DoSirine taught by him ; the whole Tenor of which Doctrine was, to dired all our Worfhip and Obedience to God alone. Hear O IfraeJ, the Lord our God is one Lord, and thou fbalt love the Lord thy God with all thine Heart, and with '■^^'^* all thy Soul, and with all thy Might; and thefe i'^,^/ P 2 words :^, C 212 ) "ciords ivhich I command thee this day, {hall he in thy Heart. ^^^'^^T'hou fJjalt fear the Lord th^ God, and f ewe him, and fialt fwear by his Name, Te Jhall not go after other Gods, &c. Hence the Ifraelites are never faid to be baptized into the Name of Mofes, as we are into the Name of the Holy Ghofi ; nor are God and Mofes join'd together in that Baptifm, as if his and Mofes's Authority were equal, as the Father, Son, and Holy Ghofi are join'd iti the Inftitution of Chriflian Baptifm.to denote the Equality of their joint Authority therein; Furthermore, the Baptifm of Mofes, refer'd to by the Apoflle, is not fpoken of as an In- flituted Rite of the Covenant^ or as an Ordi- nance of Worfliip ; for I don't find that any fuch Ordinance was then InfricuteJ, or that the extraordinary Baptifm mentioh'd by the Apoilie was fuch an Inflitution. But the A- poflle fpeaks of it allufively to, or as an oc- cafional Type and Figure of that Baptifm, which was become an Inftitution of Worfhip when he wrote this Epiflle. And fo confi- dering that as a Typical Baptifm, and Mofes as a "Typical Mediator, the Dodrine taught by Baptifm into Mofes, was Baptifm into Qhrip:. This naturally leads ws to obferve that, as the "Jevis principally objeded againft ChrifFs being that Mejftah, who is the Son of God^ the Apodles, fpeaking to them, ufually men- tibn'd only Chri/i's Name, tho not to the ex- cluiion of the Father's and Holy Ghofi 's, as that Name into which they were baptized., Whereas, when the Inflitution of Baptifm is fpoken of as refpeding the Gentile-World^ who were to be introduced and bound there- by to the Faith and acknowledgment of the true ( a'3 ) true God, according to the Revelation of him in the Scripture, all the Perfons of the Godhead are exprefsly mentioned, as the one God of reveal'd Religion, whom they were to own and believe in, and in whole Name they were to be baptized, to the Ex^ clufion of all others. And this Dodrine be- ing put into the initiating Rite of all our Religion, it kerns to be the Bajts of it ; and its being j'oin'd with the Preaching of the Gofpel in all Nations^ is an Intimation, that the Godhead of all the three Perfons, and the Worfliip that is to be paid to them, is to be preach'd and entertain'd as the common Dodrine of the Church; and accordingly fo it has generally proved. This brings us to the laft Head of Evidence, that Worfliip is due to the Holy Ghoft. Therefore, J. We have fever al INST'ANCESy or Examples in Scripture of divine iVvrjhip paid to the Holy Ghoft. What has been offer'd under the two laft Heads furniQieth us with Inftances of this fort. The Prophets and "Teachers in the Church at Antioch evidently paid divine Worfliip to the Holy Ghoft, when, in Obedience to his Command, they in a religious Manner zu/>/? Prayer and Fajiing feparatedBavnab3.s and Saul to him, for the IVork to which he calfd them. Ads 13. 152,3. And as they did this in Obedience to his Authority, and for his Honour and Glory, we can't reafonably fup- pofe but they apply'd to him, as well as to the Father and Son, as the Objed of their Prayers on that folemn Occafion. Ads of Worfliip were likewife perform'd to him, as often as any were baptized in the Name of ' P 3 thQ ( 214 ) the Father, Son, and Holy Ghofi, according to Chrift's CommilTion : And, (as Dr.lVater-^ land has obierv'd, Serm. 8.) " We have fuf- " ficient Proof from Church-Writers all a- *^ long, and as high as "Juftin Martyr, who " liv d in or near the Apoirolick Age, and '^ zvrote within forty Years of it, that it was " then the conllant Praclice of the Church " to baptize in this Form, puriuaut to our " Lord's Commifllon; and there is no juffc '' Reafon to (ufped, but that Baptifm had " been conftantly adminifter'd in that very «« Form, from, and in, the Times of the " Apoftles." Bf-iides thefelnPcances of Wo.rfhip paid to the Holy Ghoft, which have been already infifted on, we may obferve feveral others. He together with the Father and Son may be conlider'd as the Obje<5l of that folemri Ifa. 6. 5. Adoration of the Seraphims, M/ ho cried one to another (as we do when we iing the Fraifes of God together, Col. 5. 16.) and/aid, HOLT^ HOLT, HOLY, is the Lord of Hofls ; which feems to relate to each Perfon of the adorable Tnnity dijli net ly, as has been before obferv*d from the Context. And why may not the Acclamation, Grace, Grace, at the Re-build- ing of the Temple, peculiarly refped the Holy Ghofc? It was He that had in much Grace and Favour enabled Zenibbahel to hrihg forth the Head-flone, ac<;ording to the '^■ic./!^.6.TVord of the Lord, faying. Not hy Might nor by Power, but by MY SPIRIT': And iince this gave the Occafion to thofe Shoutings, ver. 7. GRACE, GRACE, unto it, methinks we are naturally led to consider chcfe Shoutings as an extatick Admiration of, and' Fraifes for ihe Grace which that Spirit had (hewn them therein ; C 515 ) . therein : and as an Application to him with the utmofl Fervour for a continuance of his Grace and Favour to it. He is particularly reprefented as the Ob- jed of the Church's Prayer, when fhe deno- minated Him from his Workings, and faid, Aivake 0 North Wind, and come thou Souths llovj ^^"^' 4* upon 7ny Gard-my that the Spices thereof may fioiv out. The-Srile of this Book of Solomon s Songy is generally allow'd to be Figurati've. Spiri- tual Things are all along reprefented in Al- legorical Strains. But there is a Dodrinal Meaning in the Allegories fuitable to their refpective Natures ; and fpiritual Tranfac- tions between Chrift and the Church are as really intimated thereby, as if they were ex- prefs'd in proper Terms. Now according to the Genim of this Book,' the Church is often reprefented as a Garden, and her Gra- ces as Flowers zxid Spices; and agreeably the Holy Ghoft is here reprefented as thQfFind,2Ls He likewife is in other Parts of Scripture, And under this Confideration of Him, with refped to his peculiar Work, the Church prays unto Him, that, like the North W/nd, He would l^low upon her Garden with puri- fying Influence to blaft her indwelling Cor- ruptions, which anfwer to his Work as He is a Spirit of Judgment and of Burni}ig to refine l^^* ^- 4^ us, and to confume our Iniqdities. And fhe prays to Him that, like the Sotuh jViud^ He would refrejj) her Garden, and cherifh his Gra- ces planted in her, that they might thrive and flozvout into every fuitable and acceptable Ex- ercife, in all the Goodnef, Faith, Love, Joy, Peace, and every other Grace, which are the Fruits of the Spirit. The Metaphor fuits q^i^ ^^ the Holy Spirit and his Work: I can think ii/zj' P 4 pf of nothing that it can be apyly*d to fo agree- ably as to him; and the Things here defire4 are fuch as peculiarly belong to him to be- llow. He therefore is the Objed of this Addrefs, and is diredly apply'd to by the Church, in a way of Prayer, to work thefe his fpecial Works by his e&Ciual Gales upon her. *Tis to this Spirit (as has be^n fhewn) that the Apoflle direded his Prayer for the *theJJalonians ; He being diftinguifhed from the Father and Son, as the Lord, to whom the Apoftle apply 'd for gracious and efFedu- 2-Thef.3.^^ Influences. The LorddireEi your Hearts mto 5, the Loue of God, and into the patient waiting for Chrift. And at another Time, he mention'd the Holy Ghoft under the Title of the Lord, and apply'd for Bleffings in the fame manner to Him, as he did to the Father and Son. jjjjgf^^^iVbxi; God himfelf and our Father, and the Lord It, ! z, J^c/^ Chrift, direU our vcaj to you ; and (fpeak- f 3' ing of a third Perfon diftind from them) the Lord make yon to increafe and abound in Love one towards another, and towards all Men, even Oi Vie do towards you ; to the end he may eftahlijh your Llearts unhlameable in Holinefs before God, even our Father, at the coming of our Lord ^efm Chrifl zvith all his Saints. This is one Continued ExprefTion of \}is Heart's Defire to God for them, and the Lord here mentioned has been fhewn to be the Holy Ghoft, as Perfonally di- ftinguifhed from the Father, and from the Lord Jefus Chrift. And he is mentioned as the Objed of this Prayer, in the fame man-r ner as the Father and Son are, fince one part of it is as diredly addrefs'd to him as the o- ther is to them, AccQrd"^^ ( 217 ) Accordingly the Apoftle hlejfed the Church in the Name of the Holy Ghoft, as the Per- Ibn from whom he ask'd Bieffings, as well as from the Father and Son : "The Grace of the zCota^. Lord Jefiis Chri/i, and the Love of Cod-, (vix,.^^* the Father, as 'tis exprefs'd Gal. 1.3.2 T'tm, I. 5. and T/>. i. 4.) and the Communion of the Holy G.'oftjf be with you all^ Amen. In whofe Name fhould Perfons be blefs'd, but in the Name of God only ? And yet we are blefs'd in the Name of the Holy Ghoft equally with the Father and Son. The Apoftolical Blef- lings fucceed and anfwer to thofe that were ufed by the Priells of old, and were called their putting the Name of Jehovah on the Children of Ifrael. Thefe BlefFings feem to me to have been of a ?«/V^ Nature: In their Forrn^ an Application to the People ; but in their Intention, an Application to God him- felf to blefs them. On this xvife, faith God, NumK ye fiall blefs the Children of Ifrael, f^y^*^^ ^^^^^ ^* ^' them. The Lord blefs thee, and keep thee; the'^^^~^^'' Lord make his Face jhine upon thee, and he gra- ciom unto thee ; the Lord lift up his Countenance upon thee, and give thee Peace ; and they Jhall put my Name on the Children of Ifrael, and I will blefs them, Tho' they herein fpoke to the People, yet 'twas in the Name of God, that he might blefs them ; and in another Place, their bleffing them is call'd their Prayer ; which fhews that their Hearts afcended in a way of Prayer to that God, in whofe Name they blefs'd the People, that he would blefs them indeed, "ihen the Priefls the Levites arofe, ^ Clion, and BLESS'D the People, and their Voice was ^^' ^^^ heard, and their PRATER came up to his holy Dwelling-place, even unto Heaven. The Man- ner of their Bleffing was the fame with the Apa- ( 3l8 ) Apoftle's ; and fince their's included Prayer to Him in whofe Name they blefs'd, why lliou'd not we think the Time oF the Apo- ilie's.^ The Prieiis of Old blefs'd in the Name of the Lord thnce repeated^ which the Hebrew Dodors obferve was with a diffe- rent Accent ^ and which Ainjvjonh fays deno- ted the Myftery of T^hree Perfons in the Godheads who are one 'Jeho'uah, whofe Name is otie.-f Accordingly the Apoftle biefs'd in the Name of the fame Jehovah as perfonali- zed in the Father, Son and Holy Ghoft. Now I dare appeal to the common Senfeof Man- kind, whether there is not the moll manifeil: Face of divine Worfhip paid to Jehovah in the Priefls Bleffing Ifrael in his Name : And as the Apoflle's Bleffing the C hiirch in the Name of the Holy Ghofl, together with the Father and Son, is exadly the fame kind of religious Act, it feems to me that nothing but a Defign to ferve an Hjpothefisy could make any one doubt whether divine Wor-- fhip is therein paid to the Holy Ghoft. Yea, whenever a good Man ferioufly, and in a re- ligiciis Manner, willieth or defires that God would be with, and blefs his Friend, there is in the Nature of fuch Delires an afpiration of Soul toward God, that he would blefs ""em ; as there apparently v^as in Jacoby who Gen. 48. meaning Chrift, faid, 'The Angel that redeemed ^ * me from all evil, blefs the Lads. And we can't fuppofe but this was the way of the Apo- ftle's Heart, in his mofifolemn Defires of Blef- fings from the Holy Ghoft, in the fame man- ner as from the Father and Son ; and fo 'twas f See Jbifwonh on Numl\ 6, za. ( 219 ) an evident paying divine Worfhip in a way of Prayer equally to them all. •In like manner the Apoille John invoked the Holy Ghoft, as well as the Father and Son, for Grace and Peace to the Churches : Grace he to you^ and Peace from hhn whkh ?>, and Rev. i, which zuaSy and which is to come, and from the 4, s» feveri Spirits^ which are before his 'Throne ; and from Je'.m c'hrifly dec. The f even Spirits denote the Holy Ghoft, who by this ExprcfTion is reprefented under the Variety and PerfeElion of his Gitts and Operations, tho' in himfelf he is but one Perfon, as is fhewn at large in our Text and Context. Accordingly Chrift is faid to have thefeven Spirits ; which anfwers Chap, 5. to his having the Spirit not by Meafure. And J* :the feven Spirits of God are faid to be fiJeni"^^^ " ^' ' Lamps of FIRE burning before the Throne ; Rev. 4„ which plainly anfwers to the Gifts of this 5. Spirit to the Apoftles on the Day of Pente- cofti when there appeared to them cloven Toyigiies Acts 2. CIS of FIREy and fat on each of them, they be- 5, 4* ing filed with the Holy Ghofl. Thefeven Spirits are but once more mentioned, and then are fpoken of zs feven Eyes, and feven Horns, de- i^cv. 5, noting IVfdom and Power, and ace called the ^• feven Spirits of God fent forth, as fufficient for all inlightning and powerful Operations, into all the Earth : And this exadly anfwers to the Holy Ghoft's being cali'd the Spirit of God, and to his being fent for fuch Operations. So that 'tis exceeding plain to me, that the feven Spirits can denote no other than the one Spirit of God, who is reprefented in the Fulnefs of his Gifts and Operations, by the myftical Number Seven, and that particularly with a regard to the SEVEN Churches of A- iia, to which this Apoflk wrote, and for alj of ( 220 ) of which this Spirit was as fiifficient, as if there had been feven all-fufficient Spirits, that each Church might have had one wholly and alone to it felf. He is here mentioned be- tween the Father and Son, which fhews that his being mentioned lafl: in other Places, is no Argument for his Inferiority, in Nature or ejfenttal Glory, to them. And he is as di^ reElly apply'd to, or regarded, in this Prayer, as the Fountain of Grace and Peace, in the fame manner as they are ; which fhews that He is the Objed of our Worfhip equalh with them. And thck feven Spirits are never men- tioned as Worjhipping among the Saints, An- gels, and the whole Creation, in any part of this Book, where alone this Expreffion is to be found. From all this we may conclude, that the Holy Ghoft is invoked equally with the Father and Son, and fo is the Objed of Rom.to.our Faith together with them ; for how jhall i^. we call on him in zvhom we have not believed. Once more, a folemn Oath or Jpfeal to God as the Witnefs of our Hearts, who knows the Truth or Falfhood of what we fay, is an Ad of religious Worfhip ; And the Apoftle paid this Worfhip to the Holy Ghofl. / fay Rom. 9. ^^^^ Truth in Chrifi, fays he, / lye not, my Con- !• fcience alfo bearing me Witnefs in the Holy Ghofl : /. e. I fay the Truth as in the Prefence of Chrift, and in the Prefence of the Holy Ghofl, whom I call upon to Witnefs with my Confcience that I lye not, and to whom I ap- peal for the Truth of what I fay. TKis is fuch an Ad of Worfhip paid to the Holy Ghoft, as imports that he knows the Secrets of the Heart, and \s the Avenger of Falfhood. The manner of this Appeal \s much the fame as this Apoftle at other Times ufed to the only ( 221 ) only true and all-knowing God, faying, God Rom. i, 26 my !4^itnefs, and God is my Record. And ^- this is elfewhere fpoken of as his calling God ^ Qqj\j] for a Record on his Soul ; which fhews it is of i 5. the Nature of a religious Oath, and confe- quently is fuch an Ad of Worfhip as is pecu- liar to the only true God ; For thou Jl a It fear Deut, 6; the Lord thy Gody and /halt fwear by his i5« Name. If any fhould Objed, That fuch kind of Worfhip as this, was paid to the holy Angels, when the Apoftle charged Timothy before God, 1 Tim.j and the Lord Jefus Chrifl, and the eleB Angels y ^*- to obferve his Inflrudions : It may be an- fwer'd, That there is a manifeft Difference in thefe Cafes. The Apoftle delivered his Charge in the Prefence of the Angels, not as Judges of the Truth of what he was faying, nor as A- njengers of Faljhood, in cafe he he had been guilty of it j but as TVttneJfes of external A&Sy and particularly of that folemn Charge he was then giving to Timothy. The holy An- gels, by their daily Attendances on the Heirs Heb, i. of Salvation, are Spe(51:ators of their outward ^^' Ads, and are critical Obfervers of what they fay and do in religious Worfhip. Hence the Apoftle urges Women to a decent Behaviour in Publick Worfhip, hecaufe of the Angels ; i. i Cor, e. becaufe they are prefent at the Worfhip of ^'* *^' the Church, the manifold Wfdom of God be- Eph. ^ ing made known ftill more and more to them ^^* thereby. The Angels therefore were proper Witnejfes of this Charge of the Apoftle to Ti- mothy ; and he might mention them its fuch, to remind him that they would obferve how he fhould behave according to it, and would be prefent too, when that Behaviour fhould be brought into Judgment. So that the A- poftie*s C 222 ) Hies charging "Timothy in the Prefence of God and the holy Angels, is to be underftood much after the fame manner, as we fhould have un- derllood him, if he had been at that Time in an Aflcmbly of Chriftians, and had faid, / charge you in the Prejence of Gody and of this JJJembly. But the Cafe is quite different in the other Inftance : For that 'is a {olcmn Protejlation with refpe^i: to the Tnah of what the Apoftle was then fpsaking, in an Appeal to the Ho- ly Ghoft, as the Witnefs of it, and as one who knew the ApoFtle's Confcience^ and would give Judgment upon what he laid, according to his Sincerity or Prevarication therein. And this was an Ad of fuch divine Worfhip paid to Him, as is fo peculiar to the Heart- fearching God, that \would be mere Imper- tinence to pretend to pay it to any other; be- caufe no other can be a proper capable Judge of the Sincerity of fuch an Appeal. Thus upon the whole, it appears, that the Holy Ghoil: is the Objed of divine Worlliip, as well as, and together with, the Father and Son ; and therefore he mufl needs be the on- ly true Sovereign and Almighty God toge*^ thcr with them. APPLICATION. This may be of \\(^ to direB us in our U^or* ffjip. Wc are to condder the Father, Son and Spirit, as the one God,who is thtObjedofour Worfhip ; and when we moft particularly ad- drefs any one Perfon in the Godhead, it fiiould not be to the Exclusion of the other Two, ( 325 ) Two, but incliifive of them all. For the formal Reafon of the VVorfhip we pay to ei- ther of them, is not, I humbly conceive, their perfonal and relative Properties, but the ^Z- vine Nature and ejjential Properties of it, which all thofe Perfons are equally pofiefTed of Wc are therefore to worfhip each and every one of them as God, and to manage our Wor- fhip in fuch a Manner as becomes finful fallen Creatures in their Approaches to God. We muft never think to ferve God fpiritually but by the Spirit, nor acceptably but thro' Jcfus Chrift ; and therefore our Addreffes are or- dinarily to be made to God, or to the God- head, con(ider'd in the Perfon of the Father, thro' the Mediation of Jefus Chrift, by the Afliftance of the Holy Ghoft.. And yet, as the Reafons of Things fuggeft, and as we find our Hearts influenc'd according to them, we may addrefs our felves direclly to the Son, or to the Holy Ghoft, and fo to the God- head as perfonalized in them ; and that ef- pecially when we are feeking for thofe things which are by Difpenfation their peculiar Work to do for us or in us. And which ever Perfon we moft directly apply to, as the Object of Worfliip, on the account of his di- vine Nature and Perfedions, ftill the Media- tor iat Office of Chrift mull: be kept in our Eye, as the Medium of Accefs, and as the Ground o^ Acceptance ; ana all our Pleas and Expeftations are to be only on that account. SERMON ( 224 ) SERMON VIII. 1 COR. xii. 11. But all thefe worketb thai one and the felf^fame Spirit^ dividing to everj Man fever ally as he will. I Have gone thro' feveial Heads of Argu- ment to evince that the Holy Ghoft is the Sovereign and Almighty God : And fhall now fhut up that part of my Defign by ad- ding, Ar^. 6 Sixthly, A VRACl'ICAL Proof taken from EXPERIENCE, Experience is a convincing Evidence to> them that have it. When it is clear and plain, there is no difputing againft it : And fo far as the Perfons that have it are to be credited iii their Report, and fo far as the Effcds of what they declare to be their Ex- perience appears to others, it ought to have its Weight with them. God did many things to and for his People of old, that they by their own Experience might know that he is indeed the Lord. Thus, fpeaking of tlie Taber- C 225 ) Tabernacle, Hefaid, There mil I meet withth^ Children of Ifrael, and the T'abernade jhall /^fc-Exod-zp fanEiified by my Glory, and I vjill dwell a- 4^>— 4^« mong the Children of Ifraely and will be their God ; and they jhall KNOW I'M AT I AM THE LORD THEIR GOD. The like may eaiily be obferved in feveraJ other Piacesjand on other Occafions. Hence He appealed to his Peoples own Experience to prove that he is what he has declar'd himfelf to be, the So- vereign and Almighty God. For the Lord [ball judge his People, and repent himfelf for his 6V-Deut.u. 'vantSy when he feeth that their Power is gone. >'^' ^7- ^And he Jhall fay. Where are their Gods, ^^' ' their R?ck in whom they trufled.' SEE now that /, even I am he, and there is no God with me ; / kill, and 1 make alive ; / wounds and I heal ; neither is there any 'that can deliver out of my Hand, Sec. And by their Experi- ence of what He did among them. He gain'd the fulleft Teftimony within their own Bo- foras unto his only true Deity. Hear me, O Lord, faid Elijah^ hear me, that this People may ^ xirgs KNOW that thou art the Lord God, and that »8. 57, thou hafi turned their Heart back again, T'hen^^^^ 19- the Fire of the Lord fell, and confumed the Burnt- offering, and the Wood, and the Stones, and the Duft, and licked up the Waiter that was in the Trench, And when all the 'cople faw it, they fell on their Faces, and faid, THE LORD HE IS THE GOD, T'HE LORD HE IS THE GOD. Something of the like way of arguing may be ufed to prove the fupreme Deity of the Holy Ghoft. His almighty, gracious and effectual Influences on his Peoples Hearts, are living and abiding Credentials of his Godhead. Every one of them are fo many Q. {land- ( 2^6 ) •{landing Proofs of divine Grace, to the endlefs'Praife of its glorious Author. Inflead I^a. $S- QJ fjjQ q'hoYH jhali come tip the Fir-tree, and in- ^^' fiend of the Brier fl)all come up the Mp'tk-tree^ and it fljall be to the Lord for a Namey for an everlafiing Sign, that jh all not be cut off. The Way that the Gofptl has made in the World under tiie blcfTed Spirit's victorious Agency, and the fupernatural divine Effeds, which he has wrought in all Ages by it, are ftrong Tcftimonials to his Deity. When we behold or refled on thefe, as his peculiar Operati- ons, we have Evidence fufficient tojuft.fy the Acclamation, if, meaning Hmy we fay, T'he Lord J He ts the God. But that which I here intend, is fomething more peculiar to the feeling Obfervaiion of fuch as ktiow the Grace of God in Truth. When they experience the inlightning, quickning and renewing Operations of the Spirit, they feel his Power as the Power of God. The eflPedual Changelic makes by his Word upon their Hearts and Lives, con- vinces them that He is God. The Li^ht He conveys to their dark Mmds to give them the Knowledge of themfelvesand of Chrift ; the fweet and powerful Turn He gives to their perverfe and oblHnate IVil/sy which before were fixedly bent againil: God and Godli- nefs, and would not be prevail'd on by any Means, to yield to Him ; the happy Altera- tion He makes upon their depraved JffeBions, to bring them off from Sin, Self, and the World, and to fet 'em upon God, and Chrift, and heavenly and holy Things ; the Peace He fpeaks to their diftrefs'd Souls fometimes in a Moment ; the Hope and Joy He raifes within them, to expel their guilty Fears and over- r 227 ) overwhelming Sorrows; and the Strength and Vigour He infpires them with, for Newnefs of hifi: and Converfation, to walk humbly and holily with God, to fiibdue remaininf:^ Corruptions, to defeat the Temptations that always iifed to be too hard for them, to break the Snares that always iifed to intangle them, and to do and fuffer the Will of God with Patience and Delight, in the mod diili- GUit felf-denying Inftances of SubmiiTion and Obedience, even to the Lois of all Things pertaining to the Body, and of Life it felf : Thefe are a Cloud of 'VitneiTes, and fo ma- ny Dcmonftrations to a Man's own Confci* ence of the divine Power and Authority of the Holy Ghoft. Thefe are Operations which are in Scripture ufually afcnbed peculiarly to Him, and are look'd upon 3.$' His, by the happy Subjeds of them ; and the Light and Energy, with which they are feen and felt, carry fuch Evidence of a Day of Power upon their Hearts, that they can't but think that the blefled Spirit, who doth all thefe, muil: needs be the great and fovereign God. Many Perfons have felt the Power of the Spirit, in the Adminiflrations of Gofpel- Ordinances, as the Power of God ; fo that, from their own Feeling, they have been even forced to fall down, and fay. Surely God is in this Place ; as the Apoftle fpeaks on occa- fion of the Power of the Holy Ghoft put forth on the Heart by the Preaching of the Gofpel. If all Prophefyy and there cometh //^iCor.?4, one that believeth not, or one unlearned, he is^^* ^^' convimed of all, he is judged of all : And thm the Secrets of his Heart are made jyianifeft, and fo falling down on his Face, he willworjhip God, and Q__ a report C 228 ) report that God is in you of a Truth, The A- poflle fpeaks of this as an EfFed wrought by yi^2insoi Propbefjing or Preaching, in Oppo- fition to a miraculous (peaking with l^ongues. Now it has been {hewn, that all the Power of the Miniftry on the Heart, is properly the Power of the Holy Ghoft : And accordingly that Work upon the Heart, which convinced them that God was there, was peculiarly his ]oh. 1 6 W^oi^k w.ho convinces the World of Sin, and Righteotifnejs, and Judgment, It was from the Alteration they felt within themfelves, that they concluded God was in fuch AfTemblieSa they being convinced that nont but God himfelf could make fuch Difcoveries of their Hearts, and work in fuch a transforming manner upon them. And fince the convert- ed Heathens immediately knew, by thefe Operations on their Hearts, that God was with the Miniilration of his Word, they who are acquainted with the plain Dodrine of the Scripture, which evidently reprefents the Holy Spirit as the moft immediate Operator on our Hearts, can't but be thereby aiTured in themfelves that He is God. Or i^ any fhould underftand this Conviction of the Heathens to be by fome miraculous Effeds, which they might behold inChriftian Ailem- blies ; (lill, as the Spirit was the immediate Worker of them. He mufi: be the God, who they were convinced by thofe Works was in that Place j becaufe that Convidion arofe from Apprehenfions, that he who wrought fuch Works cou'd be no other than the moft high God. The more we live under this Spirit's Influ- ences, and the more we feel and are experi- mentally acquainted with his efficacious O- perations. (359) peratjons, the more firmly perfiiaded and fettled we ordinarily are in our own Minds about his Deity : And the \q(s Experience we have of lively, fpiritual, and holy Exerci- {qs of Heart by the gracious Prefence of this Spirit with us, the more apt we many times are to be Oiaken in oar Belief of his Godhead. I think I am not miftaken in this Point of Experience; and I dare appeal to the inward Senfe of your own Hearts, tf fo be ye haie^ Pet. 2, tafled that the Lord is gracious, whether you have ^* not the mod: high and honourable Thoughts of the God-like Power of the Holy Ghqi^i when you are moll: fenfibly favoured with nis gracious AifAanccs. Do you then think Him to be only a Minifter, an Angel, or a Mejfen- ger from God ? Do you then think Him to be a Creature ? Do you then think the happy Alteration you find in the Senfations and Actings of your Souls is wrou|hc by any but God, or that the Power ypu itt\ is any lefs than that of the Great and Almighty God himfelf? Do you not at fuch Seafons enter- tain and regard him as God^ or as a divine Perfon, who in his workings on your Hearts puts forth the infinite Power of God ? And if this is the moft prevailing Judgment you have of Him when you are under his mod prevailing Operations, I dare farther appeal to you, whether you don't really think that this is the Judgment you ought to abide by, and that this is far more likely to be true, than any Notions contrary to this, which may at other times arife in your Mu:ids, ei- ther thro' fome unaccountable Temptation, or thro' the Intanglements of fubtile Dif- putes, when you are not under fuch a maqi- feft Condud of this Spirit, teaching you the 0^3 Things ( 230 ) Things concerning himfelf, by and according to his Word. As far as I am acquainted with my felf or others, I am perfuadtd that I have the Ver- did of the Conlciences of the Generality of Chriftians at their beft Seafons, for the Divi- nity of the Holy Ghoil:. And can it be fup- pofed that the Sprnt of T^ruthy v^ho is Truth it fclJF, and is employed in teaching Truth, and can teach us nothrag but Truths fhoiild by his inlightning and impreffive Operations upon opr Minds and Hearts, ufually lead us into iinijlakeU) and even blafphemous Notions con- cerning Himfelf ? Can it be imagined, that ' when we are moft under his Influences, we lliould be moft mifguided by theni ? God for- bid that we fhould have fo unworthy Ap- prehenfions of the Integrity of this blefled Spi* tit. Yea, on^^the other hand, fince at fuch times we are moft apt to believe his God- head, 'tis mofi natural and.juil: to fuppofe that, if He is not really God, He would then more efpecially take Care to undeceive us, as the Apoftles did the People, when they took them for Gods, becaufeof the wonder- ful Works that were wrought by their V n Means. When Paul and Barnabas were at 8 1^, 3. L>y?^^7j ^nd a Cripple was miraculoufly heal- * ed at the Apoftle's Word, and the People on that account thought the Gocls were come down to them in the Ltkenefs of Men, and thereupon attempted to offer them divine Honours, they rent their Clothesy and ran in among the People^ ^"^ crying out, and faying. Sirs, why do ye thefe things ? we affo are Men of like Paffons with you, and preach unto you that ye jhould turn from thefe Vanities unto the living God, And when the ver. I 15- C 251 ) the Apoflle John feem'd to be mifled by the Granduie oi: an Angel's Appearance to him,ReV' ip« fo as to oft-'er him religious Worfliip, the An-*^* gel immediately undeceived him, and faid. See thou do it not ; / a?n thy Ftilow-fervanty auJ of thy Brethrerij that have the lejiirnony of Jefns ; vjoYjbip God. How much more may we fuppofe the good Spirit of God would take fome Methods with our Hearts, to turn off our Apprehenfionsof tiis being God, on the account of his powerful Workings within us, i^ He really was not that God, which by means of thefe Operations we are com- monly induced to apprehend Him to be. And fince all the Tnlightnings and Impref- fions, which the Holy Ghoft makes upon our Hearts, are by and according to the Scripture, none of them being ever contrary to, nor ordinarily without the u(q of the written Word, it appears very plain to me, that the Doctrine of the Sprnts Gcdheady taught 4nd confirmed by thefe inward Illumi- nations and Impreliicns, is the very Dochim of the Scripture y which was indited by the fame Spirit, and by Means of which he work$ in this manner upon our Hearts. The Power of this /'n/f?/t:^/ Argument i$ fo ftrong, that you may take it for a general Rule, coniirm*d by inconteftible Fact, that they, who moft believe the Necefftty and Effi- cacy of the Spirit's Operations? univerfally believe his Deity ; and they, who deny his Deity, ufually think and fpeak but 77ieanly of the NeceiTity and EfHcacy of his Operations, ■and too many of them profanely deride 'em as Enthiifiajmy and exclude 'em from Chri- ftian Religion. But if any of you can't be Q^ ^ con- ( 230 contented with a Religion, that is not ani- mated by the Spirit of God ; and if the Im- preiTions you have from Him lead your Hearts to receive and regard Him as G(?^,that Experience is a living Witnefs to your Con- sciences of his Godhead ; and you may as well fufpedt that 'tis al/ a Delufion, as that He, who perfuades you of his Deity by it, is not God. This brings us to the third ge- neral Head concerning the Importance of this Dod:rine, to which I fhall proceed, after I have made one fhorc Improvement of this pradical Argument, and that is this ; APPLICATION. Let m labour after an EXPERIENCE of the, Holy Spirit's GRACIOUS and EFFECtUAL Operations on cur Hearts, Without thefe Operations upon us, what- ever Notions we ha-.e of the Spirit, or what- ever we believe concerning Him, 'twill not Job. 3.5. favingly profit us. For except a Man he BORN 'OF T'HE SPIRIT, he cannot enter tnta the Kingdom of God, And if ever we are fa- ved, it mufl: be accord? ng to God's Mercy, or free Grace in Chrift, ly the wafiing of Regene- rn,l,^, ration, and RENEWING OF THE HOLT GHOST. It is not Notions of the Spirit in our Heads, but the Work of the Spirit in our Hearts, to inlighten them with the Know- ledge of Chrift, and to turn them to God thro' Him, that will prove effedtual to Salva- tion at laft. If we have a Heart-acquaint- ance with his efficacious Workings by his Word, This will fecure our Souls for Eterni- ty ; and while we are in the way. This will cut fliort all Pifputcs in our felves about the P^eahtj ( 233 ) Reality oF his Godhead, at leaft fo long as we are ut-dtr his moft remarkable InHuen- ces. Whiie others weary themfelves with critical Difputes about the Deity or' the Ho- ly Ghoit, the humble ferious Chriftian, who lives and walks in the Spirit, will be moft at Reft in his own Bofom about it. It is a good Heb. i^. thing that the Heart be eftablijhed with Grace, as 9» a Prefervative againft being carried about with divers and grange DoElrines, Let none therefore take up with Spiritlefs Notions about the Spirit, nor with flight and ineffedual Touches on their Affedions : But look to it, that you have a real Experience, and as evidential as may be, of a thorow Change in Heart and Life ; and, under a Senfe of your own utter Infufficiency to make this Change upon your felves, look to the Holy Spirit to make it upon you. Prefs after this Change, and after him to work it in thee, as well as thou can'fl, and as far as thou findeft thy felf ftrengthned fo to do. Don't reft contented without his Renewings; but fettle it as a fure Conclufion, That un- Rom. 8. lej's you have the Spirit of Chrifi for this Pur- 9» pofe, you are none of his. I now proceed to the Uft general Head, and that is to confider, 'The great IMPORTANCE of the DoEirine III. of the Deity of the Holy Ghofl, Having proved his Perfmality at the Be- ginning of thefe Difcouries, I (hall moftly take that for granted now, and fuppofing him to be a Perfon, fhall reprefent the Importance pf the Doftrin^ of his Godhead. This, ( 2-34 ) This is not a Point of Indifference, in which we may as wcW believe one way as the other ; bat 'tis a Point that runs thro' our Religion^ ana gives a vafrly diftcrent Turn to it:^ accoiaing as this is received on one hand, or rejected on the other. It can't but be of exceeding great Moment, whether the Spirit ot Gpd is to have a continuing Hand in our Religion or no ; and if he is, whether He is really the great and fovereignGod, and is to be regarded and treated as fuch by us or no. I fhall therefore, by his Afliitance, en- deavour to fet out the Import ance of the Doc-r trine of his Divinity in feveral Refpeds, in the moft plain and ufeful Manner I can. Firll, 'T/J of great Importance with refpeB to the ONLTT'RUE GOD in general I. If the Holy Ghoil: is not, together with the Father and Son, the only Sovereign and Almighty God, there muft be more Gods than vne. I hope it has been. fairly proved, that all that is ejjential to our Notions of God, and fufftcient to diftinguifli Him from all that are not God, is afcrib'd in Scripture to the Holy Ghoft ; and what is this but to prove Hini to be truly God i* To fay that, notwithftand- ing all the divine Peculiars which are afcrib'd to Him, He is not really God at all, is to abufe Mankind with equivocal Sounds, to renounce the common Meaning of the pi aineft Words and Propofitions, and to fling all our Ideas of God and Creatures into the iitmofl: Confufion. For who can be faid to be God, ii: He is not God, who is defcrib'd in Scripture by thofe very Names^ 'titles^ At- trihuteh ( 335 ) tributes. Works y and Worjhip, which are the Scripttire'Def:r'ption of the only true God, and are abfokitely incompatible with the mofl ex- alted Notions of a Creature, and are accord- ingly deny VI to belong to any but God ? And this has been fhewn to be the Scripture-De- fcnpaon of the Holy Ghoft. Moreover, it has likewif^ been fhewn, that God, in no Confideration ot Him, is ever faid to be the Cod of the Holy Ghoft-, and if the Holy Ghoft has not a God, He himfclf muft be the true and fovereign God : For no Abfurdity can be greater, than to fuppofe that any Creature i]]Ould be fo exalted as to have no God ; or that any but the Supreme God himfelf can be faid not to have a Sovereign God. TheHoIy Ghoft therefore mu ftbe either the one true God^or anotkerxxutGod ditlerent from the only true One. To fay that He, together with the Father and Son, is the one true God, is to own what has been hambly pleaded for. And to fay that He is a true God, and not the only trtie God, is (befides the Contradidi- on in Terms) to aflert a Plurality of true Gods : Or, to fay that He is the true God^ and not the fame God with the Father and Son, is either to fay that neither of them is God, or elfe that there really are feveral Gods ; neither of which- is, in a ftri6t and proper Senfe, a God to the other. But as a Suppofition of more real or true Gods than one, is infinitely dijhomurahle to the one So- vereign God ; fo 'tis diredly contrary to the plaineft Principles of Reafon, and to the cur- rent Do6trine of the Scriptures, in which the great Jehovah abundantly allures us there is, np God befides himfelf. /, fays the Lord, am ( 236 ) •45' am he ; before me there vj as no God formed, neit . ther [ball there he after me. And, / am the ^* ' fir fly and lam the lafl^ and befides me there w no God. ^— Is there a God befides 7ne ? Tea^ there is no God ; I know not, any. But if the Holy Ghoft is God of the fame undivided Effence, Power and Glory, with the Father and Son, the U^ity of the Godhead a- bides, and all thefe three Perfons are toge- ther but one divine Being, which is the fanie as to fay, they are but one God, and there is none befides Him. Butfome Thoughts of this fort t P.T67 were purfued at greater Length, when I dif- — 171. ' cours'd on Chrtft's Godhead-t 2. If the Holy Gholl; is not God; God is a very different Being from what the Scripture repre* (ems Him to be. That the one God revealed ih Scripture is the Father, Son and Holy Ghoft, appears very plain, in that (as has been frewn) the very fame divine Names, Nature, Profertiesy IVorksyZnAWorjlip, are in the fame proper Senfe afcribed to them all -, and what is faid abfolutely of the One God in fome Places, is in the fame Senfe of the Expreflion apply'd in others, fometimes to one, and fometimes to another of thefe Perfons, as that God of whom they were firft fpoken. This Trinity of Perfons appears by Scrip- ture-account to be as neceffary to the very Being of God, as any Perfection that can be named ; for all the Exiftence of the Godhead is only and equally in thefe Perfons. Nor is it fuppofable that it can exift in any other manner than it doth, and confequently any otherwife than in them. Hence to alter the Scripture-account of God, to the Exclufion of C 2?7 ) of any of thefe adorable Perfons from the Godhead, is to make a bold Alteration in the revealed Idea of God, and is to fay that the Deity has not fuch an Exiftence as Revelati- on fays it has. This is to refufe to believe God's own Teilimony concerning what He is, and to fet up our natural Notions of him againft it. And how infinitely great muft the Affront be to him, thus to renounce his Au- thority, and to take up Notions of him con- trary to thofe which that Authority binds upon us ; becaufe what he hys of himfelf is too fublime to comport with the fcanty Mea- fures of our Reafon ? And how provoking muft it be to Ungod him in one or more of the incomprehenlible Subfiftences, which are fo neceifary to his Being ? But thefe Things were alfo farther urged on a like Occafion, with refped to Chnfi's Godheadf t P* '^^5 3. If the Holy Ghoft is not God, a great part of God's own peculiar Glory is given, and is in danger of being given, to one that is not God. The "Titlesy Attribtites, Works, and WorJIjip, which have been fhewn to belong to the Ho- ly Ghoft by Scriptural-attributions of them to him, are too grand and ftately to be gi- ven to the moft exalted Creature. They would fet him too much upon a Level with the only true God, and indanger our giving that Glory to another, which is due to the great God alone, and which he has declar'd his utmoft Jealoufy about, as it infinitely be- came him to do. /, C^ys He, am the Lord, ira.42.8. that is ?ny Name, and my Glory will I not give to ANOTHER, neither my Fraife to graven /- C 33§ ) mages. And I'hou Jhalt worjhip no other God } tyiod.^for the Lord whofe Name is Jeakusy is a jealoia M- Cod, Nowfuppofing theHolyGhoflnottobeGod, can it be thought that this jealous God fhou'd convey fuch Characters of his Godhead to him, as fhould make him vie with himfelf in any Perfedions ot his Nature, and fhould render him as uncapable of being alter'd by God, as God himfelf is of being alter'd by him ? Can it be for God's Glory, that any other Being fhould be dignify 'd at fuch an immenfe rate, and made fo like to God, that none but the mofl: fubtile Heads can diftin- guifh him from God himfelf j and yet the ge- nerality of ferious Chriftians fhould be led by the Magnificence of his divine Charaders to pay divine Honours to him as God ? The more excellent a Being the Holy Ghoft is, the more likely we are to be drawn into the moft religious Obfcrvances of Him, as the Church in Fail has generally been m all Ages down to this Day. But whatever are the ex- alted Excellencies and Dignities of his Be* ing, yet if he really is not God, we ought no more to pay divine Honours to him than to the moil defpicable Objed m the whole Creation ; becaufe God has declared^ and the eternal Reafons of Things require, that none fhould have fuch Honours paid him but H'nnfelf. Hence all the divine Honour that is paid to the Holy Ghoft, in Cafe he is not the trueGodjis a Robbery of that God,and a giving his peculiar Glory to one who is not God. And fince there is fuch prevailing Evi- dence in Scripture, as we have heard, /or/ and no Intimations againfl oar paying religi- ous Honour to the bleffed Spirit, God certain- ( 239 ) ly has not fufficiently guarded the peculiar Honour of his own Name, according to his unyielding Jealoufy tor it, if the Holy Ghoft is not to have it paid to him as God. But if he is, together with the Father and Son, the only great and fovereign God, what- ever Glory he has in himfelf, and whatever divine Honours we pay him on that account, 'tis not a giving the only true God's Glory to another, but a centering it all wholly and alone in that God himielf, On this Suppo- fition all the Holy Ghofl's Glory is in the propereft Senfe the Glory of the only true God, and all our religious Acknowledgments of it, and Actings toward him according to it, are fo many Ads of divine Honour paid to God himfelf alone. And as to the Glory of God in our Salva- tion, (which he feems to take themoflcom* placential Delight in, of all the Glory he ever has difplay'd) if the Holy Ghoft is not God, a great part of that Glory is given to another. For the Glory of applying to us all that the Father and Son have done for us, that is, the Glory of making all that they have done about our Salvation effeBual unto us, or of making us Partakers of it, doth in a very peculiar manner belong to the Holy Ghoft. This is a Glory too indeanng, and too great to be given away from God, or to be fhared in by any other. This part of Sal- vation-Work is mentioned as peculiar to God, and as defign'd by him to illaftrate the Praifes of his Grace towards us. God, who £p|- ^^ is rich in Mercy, for his great Love where-d^ith he 4, 5, 7, loved m, even when we ivere dead in Sins, hath quicken d tis together with Chrift ; (Jjy Grace ye are Javed) ' ihat in the Ages to come, be might pew C 240 ) Jhexv the exceeding Riches of his Grace in his Kindnefs towards us^ thro Jefm Chrift. Arid yet this quickening Work, which is to recom- mend Gcd to us in the exceeding Riches of his Grace and Kindnefs towards us, is moft immediately the Work of the Holy Ghoft as Joh» 6. the proper Efficient of it. For the Words I ^S* Speak unto you, fays Chrift, they are Spirit, or are accompany'd by orfill'd with the Energy of the Spirit, and fo they are Life. How fweet and engaging a Work of God is it, to apply himfeif in a way of Grace to us, to quicken dead Souls, inlighten dark Minds, gently and effedtually draw ftubborn rebellious Wills, to melt frozen Affedions, and to fill us with divine Confolaiigns ? How dear is God to us, in and for his working thefe Things within us? And what high and valuing Thoughts have we of the Holy Ghoft on fuch Occalions as tJie Sovereign Worker of them in us, according to the Scripture ? It can't be f:iir!y dcny'd but all thefe Things depend on his Agency upon us ; and, consi- dering the God-like manner m which it has been fhewn he works 'em, he can't but fliare in the Glory of them. Bat furely, i^ he is not God, this is to make him /hare with the only true God in a moft exalted and tender Point of Honour, in a Point too high and valuable for God to futfer any Partners in it with himfeif. But it the Holy Ghoft is God, the Glory of his Work, as well as of the Father's and Son's, is the undivided Glory of the one on- ly true God. Whatever Glory he dify\2iys in the Work of Salvation, it is God himfeif that difplaysif, and accordingly whatever Glory belongs or is given to him on that account, it C 241 ) it belongs and is given to God himfelf. For God elTentiaJIy confider'd, is as diredly and immediately glonfy'd in the Spirit's Glory, as in the Father's and Son's Glory. And to upon the Foot of the Godhead of the Holy Ghoft, the intire Glory of Salvation-works from Firft to Laft, from the Foundation to the Top-ftone, is Glory redounding wholly and alone to God, (to the Exclufion of all Creatures from any ftiare in it) v/ith Shoutings^ Grace, Grace. If therefore we value the Glory of God, and would be tenderly concern'd for it : If we would have the Glory of his Being, and of all Salvation-work referved intirely and peculiarly unto him only, the Doctrine of the true Deity of the Holy Ghoft muft needs be of great Importance in our Account. Secondly, 'Tis of great Importance with reffeEi to CHRIST in {articular, I. If the Holy Ghoft is not God, we fiall loje the Godhead of Chrifl. There are either T/^r^^ Perfons in the God- head, or theie is but One, This is, I think, generally infifted on, on all Hands. They who" deny the Deity of the Holy Ghoft, ufu- ally contend that there is but One divine Per- fin ; and they who alTert his Deity, maintain that there are Three. And where any Plura- lity of Perfons in the undivided Godhead is allow'd of, they are commonly own'd to be Three. If therefore there are no more Per-^ fons in the Godhead than One, /. e. it there are no more divine Subfiftents than one, who have one and the fame undivided Godhead> and yet diftindly bear perfonal Characters, R and ( 240 and fland in perfonal Relations to each o- ther, then the Son is excluded from being God, as well as the Holy Ghofl. But if there are more fuch divine Subfiftents in the undi- vided Godhead than one, then all the Argu- ments that prove the Holy Gholt to be one of thofe Subiiftents, are fo many Proofs that the Son is another, and confequently that the Son as well as the Spirit is one God with the Father. Yea, if the Spirit is God, the Son can't but be fo too, bccaufe he is the Spirit of t\\tSony who eternally proceeds from him, and is in an agreed Difpenfationy^T?^ by him as well as by the Father ^ which could not be, if the Spirit is God, and the Son is not God likewife. On the other hand, the fame fort of j^rgu- ments that fupport the Godhead of thrifty fupport the Godhead of the Spirit. And many of the fame OhjeHions that are urged againft one, are likewife urged againft the other. So that the Doctrines of both (land or fall together ; and if we lofeone, we fhall "find it exceeding difficult to maintain our Faith in the other. Hence all the Importance of the Dodrine of Chrift's Godhead, and of the Godhead of the Spirit, are mutually wrought into, and interwoven with one ano- ther ; and therefore i^ there is any in that^ there muft be reduclively the fame in this, fo far as the Divinity of both thefe Perfons is infeparable from each other. And furely it can't be a fmall matter in your account, whe- ther Chrift, )Our Saviour^ is God, or no. 2. If the Holy Ghoft is not God, Chrifly as Mau^ is khvlden to a Creature for his Human Nature^ C 243 ) Naturey and Ojfice- Qualifications in that Na- ture. That the Holy Ghoft was the next imme- diate Former of Chnft's Human Nature, and of all its hoJy Furniture of" Gifts and Graces for his Office- Work, has been already fhewn. 'Twas he that did by his own Power and moft immediate 'l'o.W^^7 Agency, n^^ke that Man which the eternal IVord aflum'd into Perfonal Union with himfelf; and 'twas he that by the fame fort of Agency throughly qualified that Man for the Work to which, in his Per- fonal Union with the Son of God, he was call'd. The Father and Son in his Original Nature, aded therein by the Holy Ghoff, and together with him ; but the Energy that pro- duced thefe Effetts, was as much hu as their s^ and He exerted it, tho' in a different man- ner inconceivable to us, ytt with the lame proper Efficiency and divine Sovereignty with themfelves ; and therefore Chnfl, as Man, was as much obliged to Him for thofe Operations, as to either the Father, or him- felf, confider'd in his Divine Nature. The Virgin Mary was paffive in the Pro- dudion of Chrift's Human Nature. His Bo- dy was form'd of her Subflance, it being made Gsl.4. u of a Woman ; but her Will did nothing to produce the Eifecl:, tho' it approved of it. She was infinitely obliged to him as God, that he would affume a Body of her Subftance into fuch an exalted Union with himfelf^ but he was no more beholden to her for his Bo- dy, than Adajn v/as to the Dufl of the Earth out of which his Body was lorm'd. All ihe Obligation was to the God that form'd it. The holy Angels mini(ierd to Ghrifl: at the End of .^ his Conflicts with Satan : Then the Devil lea* R 2 ii(th ( =44 ) Mat. 4. veth him^ and heboid ANGELS came and MI- **• NISTRED unto him. They probably brought fome Food to him in the WiJdernefs ; for, ver. z. having fafled forty Days and forty Nights^ he was hungry. An Angel was likewife laid to ftrengthen him, while he was in his Agony, praying to his Father in the Garden, and fay- ing^ Father^ if thou be willing, let this Cup Luk, iz.p^fi f'om me ; neverthekjs not my Will hut thine iji, /{I, he done. And, hereupon, there appeared to him an Angel from Heaven ftrengthening him. At this Seafon the divine Nature withheld its comforting Influences from the Human ; Chrift thereupon felt the moft inexprellible Dolors in apprehenfions of the terrible Death that lay before him. In this Diftrefs he pour'd out his Soul to God for Relief; and in anfwer to his Prayer, an Angel was dif- patch'd from Heaven, and probably brought fome Meilage to Chrift, relating to Affift- ance in, and glorious Iffues of his Sufferings, which encouraged him to go thro' them, how tremendous foever they might prove. But thefe Angels apparently aded in the Quality oi Servants, as they are often declared to be : And tho' Chrift fo deeply humbled himfelf for our Sakes, as to be made for a Seafon, with refped to his Human Nature, a little B^'^'^^l' lower than the Angels, and fo by Difpenfatioii that Nature needed their Ailiftance : yet he was not fo much obliged to them for what they did to him, as an abfolute Lord is to his Servants for what they do to him : For Chrift, on the account of his Original Na- ture, has a more hill and abfolute Power o- ver the Angels, and a higher Right to all their Service, than the greateft ^ian upon Earth ( ?45) Earth c^n have to the Service of his meaneft Slave. But the Holy Ghofl is never fpoken of as a Si'vvant either to the Father or to the Son ; but is reprefented as ading, with refped to the Man Jefus, like the Sovereign God by his own Power and Will : iVnd therefore, Chrift's HiiinanNature was really under infinite Obli- gations to him ; It owed its al/, except /^r- fonal uniting, to him. How far the Holy Spirit might be concerned in uniting Chrift's two Natures;, we can't pretend to determine : But it feems as i^ affuming the Human Nature into Perfonal Union with the Divine, which I take to be the uniting Ad,- was a perfonal Ad of the Son himfelf toward himfelf in his original Nature, an Ad which immediately refpeded only his own divine Perfon, and therefore was moft immediately and emi- nently exerted by the Son himfelf Hence we are told that, Forafmuch as the Children Utb.z, are partakers of Flejh and Blood, He (Chrift) 14, 16. alfo himfelf took part of the fame, ■ ■«* ». For n)erily he took not on him the Nature of Angels, but he took on him, or * laid hold upon, the H^^a^- Seed of Abraham. The Ad of Affuming is^^^t'^Tw/* hereby afcribed to the Son himfelf • but whe- ther this was done without the intermediate Agency of the Spirit, I dare not be pofitive. But fetting afide this, Chrift's Human Na- ture moft immediately owed its Formation and Endowments to the Spirit, as the proper and moft immediate Author of them. Now it don't look very confiftent with the Honour of fo great an Qne, as Chrift is, to fuppofe that he was under fuch infinite Ob liga-' tions to the Holy Ghoft, with refped to his Human Nature and Office-Qjjalilication's, .0.5 and (240 and AiTiftance, if the Holy Ghofl is but a Creature. It feems to be altogether unwor- thy of the infinite Dignity of Chrift's divine Nature, to fufi'er his other Nature, which is perfonally his own, to be fo highly indebted to any but God himfelf. Nor doth it feem to comport with the vaft Dignity which his Human Nature it felf was raifed to, in the firft Moment of its Union with the Divine, to be obliged to any but God, for all its e- minent Qualifications and Affiflance. But if the Holy Ghofl is God, and adcd as fuch toward the Human Nature, the Father and Son ading therein by and together with him, all the Obligations of the Man ,Chrifl Jefus were Obligations wholly and only unto God. And it can be no Difhonour to the Human Nature of Chrift, nor any way unbecoming its perfonal Union with the eternal Logosy to be under fuch infinite Obligations to Cod. 3. If the Holy Ghofl is not God, the Glo- ry of Chriji in this World lies in infufficient Hands. Chrift is indeed capable of making his own Glory appear with the utmoft Lufter, His infinite Deity is of it {d£ fufEcient for this : But what he doth herein, he doth by his Spirit ; for this Work is by Difpenfation committed moft immediately and peculiarly Joh. i5. unto him. When he, the Spirit of Truth, is sh 14- come, fays Chrift, HE SHALL GLORIFT ME ; for he jhall receive of mine, and Jhall jhew it unto you. But if tlje Holy Spirit is not Gody every where prefent, and knowing all Things, he can't be capable o£ glorifying Chriji in num- berlefs and diftant Places of the World, and in ( 247 ) 5n the Hearts of his People, as they are fcat- ter'd over the Face of the Earth, at one and the fame Time, as is hereafter to be fhewn. If he himfelf is not God, he can't difcover Chrift's God-like Glory, nor the Glory of his Mediation before our Minds ; He can't fecure his Honour in the Churches , in their Prefervation, Increafe and Edification, and in the Hearts and Lives of the Profef- fors of his Name, and that in defiance of all the Intrsagues, Infiilts and Defamations of his inward and outward implacable Enemies. The Glory of Chrift would (oon depart from this World, not one Monument of it would be feen long on Earth, it the Spirit was not God to fjpport it by his divine Agency a- mong us. But can we think that Chrift, after all his deep Abaferaent and exquiiite Sufferings, would leave that Honour, which is the Fruit and Reward of thofe Sufferings, in uncertain and infufficient Hands ? God forbid. But if the Spirit is God, he is as capable of fe- curing Chrift's Glory in the World, as either the Perfon of the Father or Son are, were they to ad in the mod: immediate Manner to fecure it. They could put forth no other Power* than he can for this Purpofe, be- caufe his Power is efl'entially the fame with their's. 4. If the Holy Ghofl is not God, the Love and Care of Chriji to his Church in fending him^ is inconceivably hfs than 'tis generally taken to le. When Chrift was going to Heaven, he comforted his Difciples with AfTurances thac he'd fend the Spirit to fupply, and more than R 4 make (n8) make amends for, his corporal Abfence from Job. t6. them. Now^ fays he, I go myrcay to him that 5> 0, 7. j^y^i; ;^g.^„- Becaufe I have faid thefe Things to you. Sorrow hath filled your Heart ; neverthelefsy 1 tell you the T/uth, Jt is expedient FOR TOU that J go away ; for if I go not away, the Com-' forter will not come unto you *, but if I depart, I will fend him unto you. This was indeed a wondrous and afFeding Inftance of hisKind- nefs and Grace, of his tender indearing CompafTions to them, and of his abiding ef- fedual Care of them. But this Love and Care recommend themfelvts to us in propor- tion to the Dignity and *S'/^Jz67>;29'-of the Com- forter whom he fent. If the Holy Ghoft thus promifed, and fent according to the Promife, is not God, his coming to them did not make up the Lofs of Chrift's perfonal Prefence with them. It is true, the FaEl is otherwife ; but that is be- caufe the Spirit is God. But in Cafe he is not God, but only a Meffenger fent from Chriil, the Prefence of the Servant could not be fo good and honourable as the Prefence of the Lord himfelf : Nor could the Holy Ghoft on this debafingSuppofition be thro'ly capable of that great and needful Work he was and is to do fromChrift for us.But if he is indeed the true God, equally with the Father and Son, what a bleffed Promife is that offending him > Who can ever think high enough of the Love and Grace of Chrift, in taking effeflual Care, that God himfelf fhould be our Co?nforter ',x.\\2it he in the moit intimate and abiding Manner fhould dwell with us, and that we fliould live under his Condud and Influence till we get fafe to Glory» Thus, ( 249 ) Thus, if we value the Godhead oi Chrifl^ and are concern'd for his Glory in the World ; If we woald entertain the moft honourable Thoughts of his Perforiy and of his Love and Care towards us ; The Dodrine of che Holy Ghoft's Godhead, in which ail thefe are near- ly interefled, can't but be of very confidera- ble Moment in our account. APPLICArtlON. What has been faid concerning the Impor- tance of this Doctrine with refpect to Gods calls us to adore him as Incomprebenjible. How fublime is the Scripture-account of God ? It fets before us but one divine Being, which exifts in three diftinft Perfons, with- out Confujion or Separation^ Father, Son, and Holy Ghoft. No wonder all our Attempts are baffled when we pretend to reafon out the vaft Idea, as i^ infinite Thoughts in their fuUeft Stretch could be grafp'd by finite Minds. And why fhould we attempt it, or think hard that we cannot do it ? Is there no Room for Adoration and Ailonifhment in our Thoughts of God ? Is there nothing a- bove our reach, nothing too deep for us to fathom, and nothing too intricate for us to adjuft, relating to his infinite Majefly ? Sure- ly it can't be otherwife. The more we find out the Truth concerning God, according- to the Revelation he has made of himfelf, the more we find him to be unfearchable. The very Thought that he is God^ is a Thought that he is abfolutely perfect beyond alt Thought. This fhould make us flirink as it were into nothingj in our Opinion of oui^ felves. ( 250 ) (elves, and of our own fhallow Capacities. This fhould make lis willing to quit our own dctcdiivc and fallible Reafonings for his un- erring Didates concerning himfelf This fhould difpofe us to fall down before him with the humbleft Confcioufnefs of our own Darknefs, with the moft thankful Acknow- ledgments of what he hasreveal'd of himfelf to us, and with the moft ardent Supplicati- ons for his Spirit to lead us into ftill farther Acquaintance with him. And this fhould command the mod facred Veneration and ftedfaft Belief of what he fays he is, beyond what we csinckarly and diftinEily ^onceiv^ hinj to be. There is certainly a noble Pleafur'e in adr miring thofe Accounts of God, which, as far as we are acquainted with 'cm, reprefent hin; in the moll lofty and excellent Strains, and which appear before us as containing farther Excellencies infinitely beyond the Reach of our Underflandings. As when there is a, delightful boundlefs Landskip before our Eyes, the more we can ken of its beautiful Varieties, the more admiring Apprehenli- ons we have of what lies beyond the Com- mand of critical Obfcrvation ; and thofe Apprehenfions, mix'd with the diftant Views we have, increafe the Pleafure of the Prof- pCiS:. So, when the boundkls Perfections of God lie before our Minds, the more we difcover of their tranfcendent Glories, the more admiring Apprehenfions we have of fomething that we fee beyond clear and di-^ ftinEi Perception, and this gives us the more affecting Pleafure in the unfearchable Prof- pe(^. 'Tis happy lofing our felves in an ami- able Ocean of all Agreablcs ; this is a be- ing C 351 ) ing ingulfd in Pleafure that has no Shore or Bounds. Hence when we meet with infinite Depths and Breadths in God, which we can neither plumb nor fpan^ relating to the Doclrine of the Trinity, and particularly to the Sublic- ence of the Holy Ghoft in the one only God- head ; let us turn them into the fublime En- tertainments of melting Aftonilhment, like the bleffed Spirits above, who are fwallow*d up in God. The more Incomprehenfible we find him to be in thefe Reprefentations of him, the more awful adoring Apprehenfions we fhould have of him, mixing holy Admi- ration with our imperfeft. Praifes of him, who, when we and Angels have faid and thought all that we can, is infinitely exalted ^^^-9*^^ in himfelf aLove all Bh[fmg and Praife, SERMON ( 252 ) SERMON IX. I COR. xii. IK But aU theje worketb that one and the felf^fame Sfirit^ dividing to every Man feverally as he will. WE are confideritig the great Importance of the Doctrine of the Godhead of the Holy Ghoft, which I have reprefented with refped to the only true God in general, and with refped unro Chrifl^ in particular ; and now proceed to confider it. Thirdly, With refpeB to the HOLY GHOSt Himfelf ; and that with regard to his Per/on^ and to his Lovey and Grace, I. 'Tis of great Importance zvith refpeB to his own PERSON. If he is not God, we fhall be at an utter Lofs what to determine concerning Him ,• and whatever elfe we think or fay of Him, is very diflionourable and injurious to Him. Some fay he is only a different Appellation of God ; and that Father, Son, and Spirit, are but three Names, fignifying one and the fame ( 253 ) fame Perfon. But as this is diredly contrary to the manifeil: DijlinElions I have fhewn the Scripture puts between them ; fo it makes the Holy Ghoft (and indeed the Father and Son too, as diftinguifti'd from each other) to be only a Chimera. It deftroys his real Ex- iflence as the Holy Ghoft, and reprefents him to be only a Notion, or an external Deno- mination ; which is in effed to fay. He is really nothing at all. Others fay. He is only the Power of God, which fome of *em call a created Power ; O- thers fay, He is a divine Qiiality form'd by God within us ; Others, the Gifts of God be- ftow'd upon us ; and others, the Gofpel fent from Heaven unto us. 'Tis hard to find out certainly what they mean by the Holy Ghoft. But all thefe Accounts of him deftroy his Perfonality, and fo at once run counter to all that I have fhewn the Scripture clearly repre- fents concerning his being a Perfon ; and at the fame time rob him of all his Bkjfednefs. For if he is not an intelligent Perfon, he is not capable of Pleafure in enjoying himfelf, or any thing elfe, or in doing any thing for the di- vine Glory, or for the good of others .* Nor can he poffibly enjoy any kind of Bleffed- nefs, fince only intelligent Perfons are capable of enjoying. Others fay. He is a Creature, fome way m.3.dt or produced by the Son, they know not how nor when. Others fay. He is a created . Power -mini firing to the Son, as the An eels do ; but that he is in all Things, by a JDi- • vifion of himfelf every where in Infinitum : And fo they feem to be in Sufpenfe, whe- ther they fhall allow him to be a Perfon, or no. And others fay, He is a Perfon of great Power C=54) Power and Dignityy but of a Nature totally different from the Father's and Son's, and that he is in all refpeds inferior to them, ex- cept that he was fuperior to Chrift's Human Nature, during his State of Humiliation. But how the Holy Ghoft came by his Being, whether he was created or no, or when he began to be ; or whether he is God or a Creature, or any inconfiftent unimaginable Thing between both, they have not thought fit to tell us. So that according to thefe Accounts we know not what to make of him. The Windings and Turnings of Error are endiefs ; and when a Man raiffeth the Truth, which is but One^ he often knows not where to reft, or what to fix on. And how highly foever fome of thefe may feem to fpeak of the Perfon of the Holy Ghoft ; yet if he is not really, together with the Father and Son, the only Sovereign and Almighty God, he is infinitely lefs than that God. To fet him but one ftep below the Deity, is to fet him infinitely below it, there being an abfolutely infinite Difproportion between the higheft Being that can be ima- gin'dj or that can be produced by the only^ true God, and that God himfelf. Yea, if the Holy Ghoft is not God, he is but of Tef^erday, corapar'd with God's eternal Ex- jftence. For if we fuppofe God to be one Moment in being before he gave Exiftence to his Spirit, that Suppofition makes him to have exifted an infinite Eternity before him. For any thing that comes into Being after the eternal unbeginning Exiftence of God,* had a Beginning. And whatever had a Be- $^inning, muft be Younger by an antecedent Eternity, than that God who had no Begin- ning, ( 355) nfng, it being all one and the fame Thing, with refped to God's foregoing Eternity, whether any Thing was made numberlefs Millions of Ages before this World, or at the Date of this Creation ; becaufe he was as infinitely before one as before the other, if he was infinitely before either of em. And if the Holy Ghoft is a being produ- ced by God ever fo early, he is, according to all the Notions I can have of Things, in Reality a Creature, and nothing more ; there being no middle Nature or Perfon between that of God and Creatures, which is neither one nor the other. And if he is a Crea- ture, he is a mere Dependent on God, as all Creatures are without Exception ; And.fo he riiight never have been at all ; and, fetting afide a Decree to the contrary, he might have been thrown back into nothing long before now, and may flill be deftroy'd as eafily as any of the meancft of God's Creatures : Or another Perfon may be produced equal, yea, fuperior to him, as fome fuppofe the Son to be ; and fo another might, for what we know, be ftill advanced above them hth : For who fhall pretend to fay that the infinite God has already done his utmofl in producing or exalt- ing a Creature ? Hence the moft magnificent Reprefentations of the Holy Ghofl, which fall (hortof his proper and eternal Godhead, are merely paffing a Complement upon him, which under all its pompous fhew really means that he is as nothing, and Vanity it felf, compar'd with the only true God, on whom he as intirely depends as any of his other Creatures do ; as 1 have fhew'd more at large with refpeift to the Son^ in Cafe he is , not God.t f.^,'.'- Now C 2sO Now what an infinite Indignity is this to the Holy Ghoft, thus to fink him into Vani^ /^with the reft of the Creation ; thus to un- god him, and, comparatively fpeaking, to make nothing of him, in defiance of all the infinite God-like Things which the Scripture fays concerning him ? Surely it can't but be a high Ad of Rebellion againfl him, thus dif- gracefuUy to dethrone and deny him. And, fpeaking after the Manner of Men, he can't but be exceedingly provoked, and grieved, to be treated at this injurious rate. This feems to be an Affront too great for him to take at our Hands without the.fevereft Re- fentments of it. May we not therefore juft- ly, fear that a contemptuous fpreading Op- pofition againft if/V, together with Chriffs^ Deity on one Hand ; and a too prevailing Indifi^erence about afferting it on the other, Wq, at the Root of thofe remarkable With- drawings of the Spirit, which are fadly felt and lam.ented by fome wakeful Souls, and may too eafily be difcerned in the Stupidity, Senfuality and Unfruitfulnefs, not to fay A- poftacy of others, in this irreligious fceptick Age. And unlefs he in Jealoufy for his own an'd Chrift's Honour, and in Mercy to us, comes again to revive and bring us back to the Light and Grace of the Gofpel, we have 11 ill more awful Things to fear. But to re- turn; 2. TheDodrineof the Holy Ghofl's God- head is of great Importance zuith refjpeB to his LOVE AND GRACE to m. This bleifed Spirit is known by the Cha- Heb. iQ.rader of the Spirit of Grace. As this Title *p. refpeds his being the Author of all Grace m us> C 257 ) US, it may denote that in his free Favoiif to* wards us, he beftows it upon us ; for Grace in us is called by that Name, becaufe it pro- ceeds from the free and bounteous Grace of him that works it in us. Such a free and gracious Agent is the Holy Ghoft, who with refpe^: to Grace, as well as fpiritual Gifts, diftributes as he will. For as the JVmd blow^ joh. ^8. eth where it lifieth, — fo is every one that is born of the Spirit. Hence David, praying for the Supports of the Holy Ghoft in his graci- ous Operations, calls him God's free Spirit ^Pfal. 51. and at another time fays, "Thy Spirit is GOOD j H; let him lead me to the Land of Uprightnefs, as it ^|^^•^4^ might be rendered. And the Word here u- fed is the fame by which God's Goodnefs is exprefs'd, when he is fpoken of in his Acts of fpecial Grace and Favour to us. ForthuuVU 2^6, Lord art GOOD, and ready to forgive, andplen- 5« tectis in Mercy to all them that call upon thee. Hence the Apoftle fpeaks of the Love of the Spirit. / befeech you Brethren, for the Lord^^^'^-^^* Jefm Chrtli's^fake, and for the LOFE OF THE ^^' SPIRIT, that ye firive together with me in your Prayers to God for me. By this Love tf the Spi- rit, fome underftand the Grace of Love, of which he is the Author, and of which he is the ObjeB, as it terminates on him. And taking it in this Senfe, our Love to him, for his working Grace in us, muft rife in Propor- tion to the account we make of him. Bjt it feems moft agreeable to the Apoftk'5 Scope^ to underftand it of that Love which is in the Spirit himfelf to the Church : For the Apo- ftle here befeecheth the Brethren by the Love of the Spirit, in the fame manner as he doth by the Lord Jcf^ Chrijl, or, as it might be rendered, FOR THE SAKE of the Love of S the ( 2s8) the Spirit, as well as FOR I'HE SAKE of the Lord Jefus Chrifi, the Form of Expref- fion in both being juft the fame in the Greek^, And as his befeeching them for the fake of Chnft is an Argument taken from Ghrift's Love, and his great Expreffions of it to them; fo his befeeching them for the fake of the Love of the Spirit, may be molT: properly confider'd as an Argument of the like fort, taken from the holy Spirit's Love, and his great Expref- fions of it toward them. And fo it exadly anfwers to a like Form of Speech, urging them by an Argument drawn from the Mer- Ch.fi.T.^^^^ of God; I befeech you Brethren by, or for the fake of, the Mercies of God, that ye pre- fent your Bodies a living Sacrifice, holy, acceptU" ble to God. All the Holy Spirit's Works of Grace in us are from his own, as well as from the Fa- ther's and Son's Kindnefs, Love and Friend- fhip towards us. It can't bur be an Ad of Rom. 5. Love in the Spirit himfelf, to fied abroad the 5* Love of God m our Hearts, that we may fee how all the adorable Perfons in the Godhead love us, and have in their Love concerned themfelves about us. Hereby he makes us I Cor. z. kmiu the things that are freely given to us of tz> God ; and feals us to the Day of Redemption, And to fhew that what he doth herein is in his great Love and Kindnefs to us, the Apo- ftle, fpeaking of him after the manner of Men, cautions us 2L^2iin{i grieving him with Eph. ij. refped unto that Work : Grieve not the Holy ^o. Spirit of Godj whereby ye are fcafdunto the Day J^ A/et 78 KutU y^fwv 'l«(rtf Xe what Chrift himfelf fpoke, merely as a Alauy and as a Mtnifler or Prophet fent from God, is faid to be the Words of God, becaufe he was therein un- der the mod immediate Condud of the Holy Ghoft. He whom God hath ftnt, ffeaketh the t^^ Words of God ; for God giveth not the Spirit l^y ^/ meafure unto him. Thefe Things of God, which Chrift, the Apoftles, and Prophets, fpoke as they were moved by the Holy Ghoft, make up that holy Scripture, which is the only Rule of our Faith and Pradice. And the committing thefe Things to Writing, that they might be con- tinued thro' all Generations for the ftanding Ufe of the Church, was under the unerring Guidance and Influence of the fame Spirit. Hence the Apoftle Peter, fpeaking of thefe Sacred Writings, which he calls iht fureWordi Pet.i, of Prophefy, fays. No Prophefy of the SCRIP- i9y 2-0, lURE is of any private Interpretation, or ac-'^'* cording to the private Suggeftions of the Minds of the Writers themfelves : For the Prophefy came not in old time by the Will of Man, hut holy M^'n of God fpake, either in the Scrip- ture, or according to what is recorded in the Scripture, as they were 7noved by the Holy Ghoft, And accordingly when fome Places of Scrip- ture are quoted in others, they are often al- ledg'd as the Sayings of the Holy Ghoft, or as the Holy Ghoft's fpeaking by the Prophets, in whofe Writings thefe Texts are to be found. And the Apoftle acknowledges this ^^/^to^ of the Spirit in the Scriptures of the New T'ejlament, which he and other infpir'd Pen- men wrote under the fame Infpiration, when he fays, Which things alfo we fpeak, not in the j Col 2 . WORDS which Mans Wtfdom teacheth, but i^,, S 4 which C 264 ) which the HOLT GHOST' teacbeth ; cdmfaring fpiritual "things imth fpiritual. Moft of the Things here briefly hinted, have been alrea- dy infilled on more largely in a fomewhat different Light. Thus the Holy Ghoft 'is the immediate afting Perfon of the Godhead in inditing the Scripture, yea, and in confirming its divine Authority by all the miraculous Signs and Wonders, by v/hich they were proved to be own'dofGod, and to come from him. The Father and Son are ufually reprefented as ad- ing herein only by him, and together with him, in fuch a manner as is fully confiftent with his own [overeign Right and original Abi- lity to fay whatever he pieafed. For to fup- pofe that they fpoke by him as an Under- Agent, who deriv'd his Authority from them, and was influenced by them, is to place him in an inferior Rank, like that which the in- fpir'd Pen-meir bare, in that Work. But this can never comport with the fuperior God- like Manner in which he behaved it:, influ- encing them, and fpeaking by them accor- ding to his own Will. He was not guided John 1 6. into Truth, but is the Spirit of truth that Jv guided them into all truth. He was not a- nointed for this Work ; but is Truth it felf, I Job. 2. and became an UnBion to oxho-vsy teaching ^7. them all that they fliould fay. And his/peak- ^^ " ing not of hi mf elf, but whatever he hears, (which by the way relates only to what enfued on Chrift's Afcention) has been before fhown to Gonfift very well both with his Effential One- nefs with the Father and Son, and with his ading by voluntary Difpcnfation in fuch a Manner as is no Impeachment of bis original Knowledge as God, nor of his original Right, as fuch, tp reveal tl^em. That which is now ( a65 ) infifted on to pur prefent Purpofe (and which I hope has been fufficiendy proved in this and fome foregoing Pares of thefe Difcourfes) is. That the authoritative dilating of the whole Scripture, was irioft immediately and feculiarly his proper Work, and was mana- ged by him according to his own Sovereign Will andPleafure j fo that the Scripture comes to us upon the Credit of the Holy Ghoft as the proper Authqr of it ; yea, and of all thofe Teftimonials by which it comes attefted to us as divine Truth. Now to fuppofe that the Hply Ghoft is the proper Author Qf the Bible, fo as to didate it by his own Wifdom, and command it to be fpoken or written by his own Autho- rity ; and yet that he is not the true God, is a Suppofition that overthrows the divine Authority of the Scripture, inafmuch as it maintains^ That the Scripture came from one, and at the fovereign Will and Pleafure of one, who is not God. He might indeed, if he was not God, have been employed as an Under-Agent to convey the Mind of God to the facred Writers, ^s they were to convey it to others. But then, on this Suppofition, thofe Writers were only under the Guidance and Influence of a Creature ^ for 'tis not pre- tended by any that I know of,that God influ- enced them any otherwife than by the Agency of the Holy Ghoft upon them. And if the Ho- ly Ghofl: is but a CreaUire,he could not beab- fplutely Infallible in his Guidance of them, unlefs, like thpfe that were infpir'd by him,he himfelf alfo had been infpir'd,or qualify 'd and influenced, byGod's free and immediate Agen- cy upon him, or by fome other intermediate Agent between God and him,whom Godim- incdiately influenced to dired: and move him when C »«« ) when and what to fpeak to them. But as - we never read of any fuch divine and quali- fying Influeuces upon him, to fecure the In- fallibility of his Influences upon them : So on the other hand, He in a fovereign de- fpotick Manner taught and order'd them by ills own Wifdom, and according to his own Will, to fpeak or write the holy Scriptures, as theRule of the Church's Faith and Obedience, If therefore he is not (3od, he muft either never have fpoken to apd by the infpir'd Pen- men, the Words of his own Wifdom and Will, what and when he pleafed, as it has been fhewn he did ; or elfe, in fuch Cafes, we ought not to have regarded his Words, as the abfolutely unerring Words of God, bound upon our Confciences with the fame fupreme Authority, as if God himfelf fppke them. For upon this Bottom, the Scripture delivered to the Churches of the Old and New Teftament by the Prophets and Apollles,were the private Interpretations or Suggeftions of one who is not God : And thisis to reduce the the Dodrines of the Scripture to the private Sentiments of a Creature j2is really as if they had been the private Sentiments of thofe Writers ; only this Creature is fuppofed to be Superior to them in Underflanding and Goodnefs, and io lefs likely to be miftaken in his Apprehen- (ions about God's Mind and Will on one hand, or to put a defign'd Cheat upon us on the other. So that, according to this State pf the Cafe, the Meaning of what the Apo- ftle Peter fays about the divine Authority of the Scripture is no more than this ; No Pro- % Vet,i,P^^fy ^f ^^'^ Scripture is of any private Interpret 20, 21. tatioyiy i.e. of any private Suggeftion of the Prophets own Spirits^ but only of the pri- vate C 2^7) vate Suggeftion of a fuperior created Spirit, viz,, the Holy Ghoft ; For the Prophefy came not in old time by the iVtU of Man ; but holy Men of God /pake as they were moved by the Holy Ghofly according as that more excellent and knowing Creature will'd. For the Antithejis between the JVtll of Man, and the Holy Ghoft' s moving the holy Men of Gody plainly imports, that the Will of the Holy Ghoft, or his moving them according to his Will, is oppofed to the Will of Man, as the Principle and Ruleo( what the holy Men of God fpokein the Scripture. And is not this to fhock the divine Authority of the Scripture, and to refolve it into the Wifdoin and Will of a Creature, i^ the Holy Ghoft himfelf is but a Creature ? How then can Confcience reft with full Satisfaction and affured Confidence on his Authority, Wif- dom and Veracity in his Word ? Or how can our Faith in that Word be, ftridly and pro- perly fpeaking, a divine Faith ? No mere Creature can be abfolutely infallible ; and therefore 'tis not the Wifdom and Authority of an Angel, or of the moft exalted Creaturey any more than of a Man, that can warrant a divine Faith in his Teftimony. Hence the Apoftle puts them on a Level, in this Confi- deration of them, when he fays, l^ho'* vjsy or ^ , an Angel from Heaven, preach any other Gofpel ^ '** ' unto ycu, — -~- let him be acctirfed. But if the Holy Ghoft is the Sovereign and Almighty God, then all that he has faid by the holy Men of God in Scripture, are the Sayings of God himfelf, in 2ls proper and im- mediate a Manner, as if the eternal Father had immediately fpoke unto them, and mo- ved and guided them to fpeak from him, what he by them has faid to us. This Con- fide ration ( 268 ) fideration of the Divinity oF the Spirit puts a Stamp of divine Authority on his Word, and abfolutely fecures the Infallibility and Veracity of it. Upon this Foot there is no room for Fear or Hefitancy about the Truth and Obligation of the Scripture that he in- dited .• But v/e may fafely receive and de- pend upon it, as a perfect and abfolutely certain Rule of Faith and Pradice, bound upon our Confciences by the undoubted Au- thority of that God, who is Truth it felf, and cannot lye, and who hath a right to re- veal to us, and command from us, whatever he pleafes. To fay the leaft, it appears to me with undeniable Evidence, that the divine Au- thority of the Scripture is moft effectually fe- cured by the Deity of the Holy Ghoft. For if this is allow'd, there is an End of all Doubt or Difpute about the Truth and Obligation of what he fays in the Scripture; but if this is deny'd, a Door is opened for Diftruft and Jealoufy about it, and for a very free and contemptuous Treatment of the Sacred Wri- tings. And fince thefe are the Standard of all Moral and Chriftian Truth and Good- nefs ; of the Jaftnefs of our religious Hopes and Fears ; of God's gracious Regards to us, and of our Obligations to him ; and fince our bed and eternal Interefls are all imbarkt upon this fingle Bottom ; fo that if this holds, we are fafe in our Venture upon it ; but i£ this fails, v/e are like to be Ship-wreck'd, and never make the Port we are bound for ,• certainly it behoves us to take the fafefl Courfe to fecure a Veneration of their di- vine Authority and Obligation on our Con- fciences. And Tiiice the Godhead of th^ Ho- (269) \y Ghofl is (o nearly interefted herein, it furely muft be a Point of very tender and momentous Confequence. Fifthly, This Dodrlne is of great Impor- tance with refpeB to the Believer's UNION and COMMUNION with Chrift, and with God in him, That there is a noble intimate and vital Union of true Believers with Chrift, as God- Man, Mediator and Head of the Church, and with God confider d in him, which is fundamental to all our Communion with him here, and Enjoyment of him in his Glory hereafter, is fo plainly the Doctrine of the Scripture, that one would think an unpre- judiced Mind can^t but obferve it. This fa- cred Truth is neverthelefs treated with Deri- fion by feme ; and it being prepofterous to talk of the Importance of our Dodrine with refpeift to this Union, if this Union it felf is a Nullity, I hope I fhall be excufed if I en- large a little on the Evidence which the Srip- ture gives us of its Nature and Reality, At one time 'tis call'd, Chyift's dwelling in ^P^- 1- our Hearts by Faith ; at others, his living in ^^' us: Ilivey fays the Apoftle, fpeaking of his fpiritual Life, yet not I, but Chrift liveth in me,^^^- ^• and the Life which I now live in the Flejh^ I live ^°' by the Faith of the Son of God. At other times 'tis called our living by Chrift, as we do by the Food that is incorporated with our Bo- dies, and his dwelling in us, and our dwel- ing in him. My Flefh, fays he, is Meat indeed, John 6. and my Blood ts Drink indeed. He that eateth 5 5? 5^> my Flefi and drinketh my Blood, dwelleth in me, ^ and I in him. As the living Father hath fent 7nej and I live by the Father ; fo he that eateth C 37° ) mcy even he JhallUve by me. This can't relate to a proper corporeal eating and drinking the real Subflance of Chrift's Flefh and Blood ; for this is deteftably inhuman ; and *tis altoge- ther brutifh to imagine that fuch a Cannibal^ Feaft frould be of any fpiritual Advantage to an immortal Soul. Nor can it relate to eat- ing and drinking in a corporeal manner the inftituted Signs of Chrift's Body and Blood in the Lord's Supper : For this Ordinance was not inflituted till a Year or more after Chrift fpoke thefe Words i And fince the Inftituti- on, a bare eating the Bvead and drinking the lVineyC3.nt profit to eternal Life, where there is not the Faith in Chrift crucify'd, which is fignify'd thereby : and thisFaith profits to eter- nal Life.tho' Chrifl's Flefh and Blood have not bttr\facramentallyYQCciv*d.For however incum- bent a Duty it is on true Believers to partake of the Lord's Supperjin Obedience toChrifl's Command, and as a Means of nourifhing them up to eternal Life ; yet it mufl be a prodigious Excefs of Charity on one hand, to iiippofe that all the vile Wretches that ever unduly received it, have found it a PafTport to eternal Life : And it muft be a Cenfure a- bominably rigid on the other, to fuppofethat every ferious Chriftian, who has true Faith in the Blood of Chrift, is certainly damn'd ^fj ithoutf acramental Eating. It therefore can • not be this eating and drinking the Fle/h and Blood of Chrift, which he lays fuch an infinite Strefs upon. But Chrift*s Flejh and Blood here fpoken of^ is evidently Chrift con- lider'd as crucified, together with all the Life- giving Virtue and Efficacy of his Death,and h of the fame import with his being the living Bread, which affords all fpiritual l^i^^ and Nourlfti- ( 271 ) Nourifliment to thofe who in ^fpmtualm^in-' ner receive it. Thus Chrift himfelf explains it, when he fays, I am the Uv'rng Breads "^'^^^^ ver, we are one. I IN THEM, and thou IN MEi that they may be made ferfeH in one. But becaufe ( i72 ) becaiife thefe heavenly Things are too fubliMe for our Underftandingsto conceive of as they are, and becaufe thefe exalted Reprefentati- ons carry Ideas of fomething excellent and in- timate in this Union, beyond the Grafp of our narrow Minds ; therefore *tis at other times taught us in a more familiar manner, by • the moft excellent Unions that are to be found among earthly Things, and which we our felves are acquainted with. ^ 'Tis fometimes reprefented by a Vine and its Branches^ which are vitally united, and live by a Participation of the fame Sap diffufing John 1 5.^^" ^^^^ ^^^^' them. Al^ide in me^ fays Chrift, 4, 5. * and I in you. As the Branch cannot hear Fruit of it felfy except it abide in the Vine ; no more can yey except ye abide in me. I am the Vme, ye are the Branches : He that abideth in me, and I in him, the fame bringeth forth much Fruit ; for without me ye can do nothing. And at other times 'tis reprefented by the Head and Mem- bers of a natural Body, which are animated by the fame Soul, and in which the fame vi- tal Spirits defcend from the Head to invigo- rate and actuate every Part. Thus the Apo- Eph. 4. ^^^ fpeaks of growing up into him in all things y 15, 16. which is the Heady even Chrifl : From whojn the whole • Body fitly joined together y and compared by that which every joint fuppliethy according to the effeElual working m the meajitre of every party maketh increafe of the Body, unto the edifying it felf in Love, And at another time he calls Chrift the Head, from which all the Body Col. i. yy Joints and Bands y having NOURISHMENT^ *^* mini fir edy aud knit together y Jticreafeth with the increafe of God. This C 273 ) This vital Union, in which the united Things are enliv^en'd and aifluated by one and the fame Spirit, or by one Principle of Life common to them all, is the moil noble and intimate of all that we are acquainted with. A Union by Adhefion of Parts, how clofe and compad: foever, is not to be com- pared with this. For tho' the Parts of Maffy Gold, and of fome precious Stones, are thruft and fettered together in a much clofer manner than the Head and its Members, or the Vine and its Branches ; yet they have no fuch Advantage by their Union, as the Mem- bers have by their Union with their Headj and the Branches with their Vine. The Na- ture and peculiar Excellence of this Union, don't confift in the clojenefs of the Pofition of Parts, but in every Part's being animated by one common Principle. Hence the moft dX- ftant Members from the Head are as really united with it, and the remotell: Branches are as really united with the Vine, as the neareft, while they are as efFedually enliven'd by vital Influx from the Head and Root ." But \£ any of the Members have the Numb-- Palfy, or any of the Branches dye, tho' they Hill cohere with the other Parts of the Body or Vine, yti^ not partaking of the fame vi- tal Influx from the Head and Root, as the other Members and Branches do, they are not properly, and in fo noble and beneficial a Senfe, united with the Head and Vine, as thofe other Members and Branches are. Now in that excellent Union between Chrift and Believers, (which the Scripture illuflrates by thefe noblefi: Unions in Nature) the vital quickening, and aduating Spirit-, which dwells, m.oves and operates in him as T Head ( 274 ) Head of the Church, and in them as the Members of his myftical Body, is the Holy Ghofl, He is, as it were, the Life and Soul of this Union betwixt Chrift and them, as he influentially dwells both in him and them. Hence fays the Apoftle, fpeaking of Chrift myftical^ in the Word immediately following iCor.u, our Text; As the Body is ONE, and hathma* «i> I^ ny Members ^ and all the Members of that one Body, being many, are ONE BODY ; fo alfo is Chrift. For by ONE SPIRIT are ive all bap- tiz^ed into one Body, whether we be Jews or Gen-' tiles, whether we be bond or free ; and have been all made to drink into ONE SPIRIT. As all the Members of the Natural Body are one Body, they being all animated by one Soul or Spirit ,- fo all the Members of Chrift'sMy- fiical Body are one Body, they being all quickened and united to one another, and to Chrift their Head, by that one Spirit, which they receive from him. This Spirit dwells principaily and moft eminently in Chrift, fil- ling his Human Nature with Gifts and Grace John 3. without Meafure. For Godgiveth nottheSpt- 34- rit by MEASURE unto him. And, It pleafed the ^''^' ^- Father that in him fhotild all FULNESS dwell. And this fame Spirit defcends from Chrift un- to his Members, filling them with like Gihs Eph.4.7.and Grace, according to the MEASURE of the Gtft of Chrift. Accordingly he promifed to John i^'f^^d his Spirit, upon his Departure, to dwell compir'd^*"'^ ^^/^e With his Difcipks/c>ir e'ver ; and all with Beliei^ers are faid to receive of HIS Fulnefs, L.[).iC\j. Grace for Grace. Hence as Chrift wzs bapti- John I. ^j ^^.jj.]^ tl^^ Holy Ghoft, he baprizeththem ' ' With the fiime, according to John's Record at Chap. I. his BnptKm, faying, I faw the Spirit DESCEN- Ji, 35. DING from Heaven like a Dove, and it abode upon ( 275 ) tipon him.*' The fame is he zvhich BAPTl- ZETH zvith the Holy Ghojl. And by recei- ving this Spirit from Chrill: as the Head, all his Members are made to DRINK into one Spirit, hz bemg that/m>z^ Water which Chriftcj^^p gives them to drinL If any Man thrift , fays lo. he, let him come unto me and drink. He that J^hn 7. helieveth on mey as the Scripture hath faid, out ^^' ^^> of his Belly fiallfloiu Rivers of LIVING F/A-^^' TER. But this fpake he of the SPIRIT, which they that believe on him fooiild receive. Accor- dingly, the Rock from which Ifraelv72LS flip- ply'd with Water in the VVildernefs, was a Type of Chriftj with refpect to the flowing of his Spirit from him in the Virtue of his Blood, as well as to the flowing of his Blood in its pardoning Efficacy unto us. They did all drink the fame SPIRlfUAL Drink ; for they i Cor. drank of that fpintual Reck that follow d them : 10. 4* And that ROCK WAS CHRIST. Still farther to fhew that by this Spirit Believers are mofl: intimately and vitally u- nited toChrift, their Conjunftion withChrift is call'd their being one Spirit with him : He , CorA that is joined to the Lor d, is ONE SPIRIT. 17* And that this is meant of the indwelling of one and the fame Spirit in Chrift as the Head, and in Believers as his Members, appears from what the Apoftle fays in the fame Con- text, where he calls their Bodies the MEM-vtr. 15, BERSof Chrift ; and, fpeaking of them un- der that Confideration, fays, Wmt know ye ver. 19, not that yottr Body is the Temple of the HOLT GHOST which is IN you ? If we are true Members of Chrifl:, vitally united to ■ im, the Holy Ghoft is in us, and fo we are one Spi- rit, or are partakers of, and quickened by one T 2 ■ Spirit, Rom. 8 II. C 276 ) Spirit, with him. Accordingly we are toldj Rom. 8. that if any Man have not the Spirit of Chrift, he 9' is none of his, by a living Union with Him. ver 10. Hereupon the Apoftle adds, If Chrift he in youy viz. by his Spirit, the Body is dead becaufe of Sin ; hilt the Spirit is Life, becaufe of Right e- oufnefs^ i. e, the Body dies becaufe of Sin ; Chap. 5. for Death enter d. into the World by Sin : But the '^* Spirit of Chrift is a Principle of Life to it, to raife it again to eternal Lik, becaufe of Chrift's perfed Righteoufnefs, through which ver. 21. Grace reigns to eternal Life. They being in Chrift as his Members, juftified by his Righ- I Cor. teoufnefs. Death hath no Sting to them, and J^5. S^^ th^ Grave no ViBory over them. But if the Spirit of him, faith the Apoftle, that raifed up ^efm from the Dead, dwell in you ; he that rai" fed up Chrifi from the Dead, Jkall alfo quicken your mortal Bodies by his Spirit that dwelleth in you. So that Head and Members quickened from the Dead by one and the fame Spirit, as a common Principle of Life to both. From all this it abundantly appears. That this excellent Union of Chrift and Believers, principally coniifts in their partaking of, and being influenced and aduated by the fame Spirit with him : Or, that 'tis the Holy Ghoft's dwelling in the Human Nature of Chrift, and in them, as a common Principle of fpiritual hiic and Grace to both, that makes up the moft valuable Part of this im- portant Union between them. The Manner of this Union, and of the Spirit's ading from Chrift upon us therein, is inconceivable to us, as the Manner o^ 2l\\ vi- till Unions, and of all adings of invifible Powers upon us are : But, as 'tis a Unioa between Chrift and rational Creatures, whofc Per- ( 377 ) Perfons remain diflinB from his, and from each other's, we may conceive thus much of it, according to what the Scripture has faid about it, viz.. That Chrift by the firfl effec- tual Communication of his Spirit to us, be- gets an inherent Principle of fpiritual Life within us ; and the firft genuine Ads of this Principle are reflexive back again in a way of I^^- '♦ Faith to Chrift, as it receives and trufts in him. |^^' ^ j Hereby the Union between him and us be- i^, ' comes reciprocal 'y He ading by his Spirit to- wards us, and we re-ading by Faith under the continuing Influences of the fame Spirit toward him. Hence he is faid not only to dwell in us by his Spirit, but J ike wife by that Faith which his Spirit begets in us, and which by the Power of his Spirit abiding in us, we exert in receiving him, and in applying to him for all the farther Communications we are to receive by his Spirit from him. This the Apoftle plainly leads our Thoughts to, in his Prayer to the Father of our Lord Jefm Chap. 3, Chrifiy -^'"^T'hat he vjould grant m, according to H» *^» the Riches of his Glory , to be ftrengthened luith '' ^' Might BT HIS SPIRIT in the inner Man, that Chrifl may dwell in our Hearts BT FAITH, — -^ that vje might be filled vjich all the FiUnefs of Cod. Thro' this Union, which we have by the Holy Ghoft with Chrifl, as Mediator and Head of the Church, we have like wife a blef- fed Union wjth God in him. For as Chrift, with whom we are united, is himfeU God, he is eflfentially in the Father, and the Father ^o\i-^:^ in him : And therefore, by our vital Union ic, with Chrift, we have likewife a vital Union with the Father, or with God confider'd as ;he divine Being, who influenceth our Hearts Tj by J (278) by the Spirit thro' Chrifl as Mediator. Hence ver. 19, fays Chrift, Becaufe I live, ye jhall live aJfo. zo, z^ j^f i-fj^f Day ye pmll know that I am IN MT FA'tHER, andyiu IN ME, and I IN YOU. « — -> Jfany Man love me, he will keep my Words y and my Father will love him, and WE will come unto him., and make our abode with him. Ac- cordingly the Apoflle fpeaks of God's dwel- ling in us, and our dwelling in him. If we I ]o\i,^, love one another, God DWELLS, CH IN US. iz, 13, 'Hereby know we th(tt we DWELL IN i$> i^. HIM, and he IN US, becaufe he has given us of his Spirit. — Whofoever jhall ccnfefs that Jefm is the Son of God, God DWELLETH IN HIM, and he IN GOD. And we have known and believed the Love that God hath to m. Cod is Love ; and he that dwelleth in Love, DWELLETH IN GOD, and God IN HIM. And this indwelling of God in us, is by the Eph 2 Holy Ghojft. For we are an Habitation of God II, ' * THRO' THE SPIRIT. Now if the Koly Ghoft is not the infinite God, every where prefent in Heaven and Earth, in every true Believer's Heart at once, he cannot be the uniting Spirit between Chrift the vital Head in Heaven, and all his living Members on Earth. He camrot be in Chrift and them, without a Divlfion of himfelf i as he muft be, if he is in them at all, becaufe he is but one indivifible Spirit, tho' he divides his Gifts and Graces as he pleafes ? Hence j:ph.4.il,the Apoftle tells us, that as there is but one myftical Body, fo there is \i\xlone Spirit, to a- nimate that Body in all its locally- di ft ant Parts. A finite created Spirit may indeed be eafily enough a Principle of Life to the Head, and ^11 its Members, in a Natural Body, becaufe they < ^^19 ) they are locally united by a Contiguity of Parts, and by Nerves and Mufcles, Arteries and Veins, which are adapted to receive and convey the Blood and Spirits thro' every Part. By means of this orderly Contexture of ^ Things, the Soul can exert its Energy for Life and Motion in the animal OEconomy. Or if any fhould fuppofe that the Soul it felfispre- fent at once \\\ every Part of the Body ,• yet a finite Soul would befufficient for that, be- caufe 'tis but a finite circumfcrib'd Body m which it dwells. But if any Parts of the Bo- dy are diflever'd from the refl, or if there is a total Obftrudion in the Veilels that lead to them, the Soul has no farther Power to influ- ence or move them ; Much lefs can it ani- mate, and fo move or ad upon any other Bo- dies at a diftance from its own. How theq can the Holy Spirit, \i he is not infinite, and fo every where prefent, be a Principle of Life and Adion, and intimoufly dwell in Chrifl's Human Nature above, and at the fame time in his Members here below ? How can he by his own Prefence operate, like a common Principle, both in him and them, as they are widely fcatter'd abroad at vafl pittances of Place from him, and from one another, over the Face of the Earth ? This invaluable Unipn muft be loft, fo far as it depends on this Spirit, unlefs he is an infi" ntte Spirit. And to fuppofe that any but Gq^ is fo, is to confound all our Notions of God and other Spirits, taken from Reafon or Re- velation. For he fpeaks of this by way of Eminence as his Peculiar ,• Am I a God at handy faith the Lor d^ and not a God afar o^'?— • jer. 22. Do not I fill Heavm and Earthy faith the Lord ? i ? , 2^. J 4 But ( a8o ) But if the Holy Ghoft is God, all the Dif- ficulties of the Cafe are removed : 'Tis then very obvious, that he may be a uniting Spi- rit betwixt Chrift and all his Members. For what fhould hinder his being fo wherefoever he pleafes ^ If he is indeed God, iilling all Places, and every where prefent at once, 'tis as eafy for him to operate in a fpecial graci- ous manner in, and to be a quickening Spirit to Millions of Perfons, at the greateft Diflan" ces of Place from one another, as to be fo to any one of them. If therefore we think there is any Value in our UmOi2 with Chrift, and with God in him ; if that is a Bleffing of Importance to us, as I think it is to the laft JDegree, The Deity of the Holy Ghoft, on which it depends, can't but be fo too. The fame may be faid with refped to that Communion with Chrift, and with God in j him, which flows from this Uriion with them. Our Communion with them confifts in mu- tual Tranfaclings of a fpiritual fort, wherein they gracioufly and evidentially communicate faving Bleflings to us ; and we chearfully re- turn all Love, Obedience and Praife to them, together with all holy Confidence and De- light in them. This Communion of the Fa- ther and Son is vouchfafed to us by the Ho- ly Ghoft, as the ading Perfon therein be- tween them and us ; He filling us with their Rom, 5. Light, and fiedding abroad their Love in our 5- Hearts ; and we having Accefs to them, to ^^' ^* Chrift immediately, and to the Father thro' him, in a way of Faith and Love by one Spi-' rit. Hence our Communion with God is zCoM?.^^jl»^ ?/;(? Communion of the HOLT GHOST, Y^i\,i^.,2^iK^the Fdh'wjhi} of the SPIRIT, as well as C 28f ) FeUoiujhip ivith the FaiheY, and i^ith his Sou i John Jefm Chrifty becaufe 'tis by the Holy Ghoft *• '^• that we have all the fvveet and holy Fellow- fhip, which they gracioufly condefcend to allow us to have with themfelves. But more of this will fall in with fome Things that are farther to be offer'd. In the mean while it may net be amifs to Obj. obviate an ObjiHion againil the Importance of the Dodrine of the Holy Ghoil s Godhead, as if we might be fafely ignorant of that Dodrine ; and that is. That the Apoflle Paul found fome of Johns Difciples who believed^ ^^^ ,p^ and yet had not fo much as heard zohet her there z. be any Holy Ghoft. In Anfwer to this it may Aiif. be faid. That Perfons might be more fafely ignorant of fome Things then than now, becaufe there was not fo clear a Revelation of ^em then, as there is now. However, 'tis extremely evident, that the HolyGhofi in this Place fignifies not the Perfony but the extra- ordinary Gifts and Operations of the Holy Ghoft, particularly as a Spirit of Prophefy. This appears from the Apoftle 's Qiieftion in the former part of the Verfe ; Have ye received the Holy Gbofl ? Compared with the manner in which they afterwards received him, ver. 6, 'the Holy Ghofl came on thcm^ and th^yfpake with Tongues, and Prophefy d. The Spirit of Pro- phefy had departed from Ifrael for feveral Hundred Years ; the want of this was one of the five Things, fay fome ; fix, fay others, with refped to which the Jews complained that the Glory of the fecond Temple was Ms than that of the firft. For tho' there was fomething of the Spirit of Prophefy left in the Prophets Haggaiy Zechariah, and Malachi, who liv'd after the fecond Temple v/as built ; yet on ( 382 ) on their Death, which (fay the Rahhim) hap- ned all in one Year, the prophetick Spirit •j- See wholly ceafed from among them f. Now Prideaux thefe Difciples having been abroad at great Connedl. Dfftances from Jenifalemy had not heard of P^i^p. ^^^ Return of the Spirit, as a Spirit of Pro- phefy, infpiring holy Men again. But as the Spirit was frequently fpokcn of in the Old Teftament, and as the Lofs of the Gift of Prophefy from this Spirit, was a common Lamentation among the People, 'tis not fup- pofable that thofe Difciples, who were Jews^ could be ignorant that there was fuch a JPerfon. SERMON (jSj) SERMON X. I COR. xii. II, But aU thefe worketh that one and the felf-fame Spirit^ dtmding to every Man fever ally as he will, I Have two or three Things ftill farther to propofe unto Confideration, relating to the IMPORTA NCR of the DoBrme of the Holy Ghoffs Godhead, Therefore, Sixthly^ 'Tis of great Importance with re- fpeB to our WO R S HIP, And this may be confider'd, (i.) With regard to its OhjeB ^ and, (2.) With regard ro the Ghry and Effi- cacy of Its Ordinances. I. If the Holy Ghofi is not Cod, there is a very great Alteration made in the 0 BJ ECT' of om' iVorjhip J and the Church of God in all Ages has been guilty of ididatrous Mifiakes about it. How very dtferent is the Objed of our Worfhip, if we confider it as one divine Be- ing, inclufive of Father, Son,and Holy GhoU, to wliat it is, if we exclude the Son and Spi- rit, and confine it only to the Father 5 or if we ( =84) we exclude the Spirit^ and confine it to the Father and Son ? They who pay divine Ho- nour to God, under thefe different Appre- henlionsof him, worfhip a VQvy dif event God : And if the Objed of one fort of thefe V/or- , fbippers is the true God, the Objed of the other mud be a falfe God ; or at beft, the true God under fuch a falfe Notion of him, as either compounds, or divides him, and fo in great meafure ungods him. Either one of thefe forts worfhip Ofie, if not two, Perfons for God, who by Nature are not fo ; Or the o- ther for p exclude 0/2^, ifnot^iuo, Perfons from their Worfhip, who really are the fame God in Nature with the Father, and ought to have divine Homage paid to them as fuch. If the Holy Ghoft is God, we ought moff certainly to worfhip him, and are guilty of Irreligion ^nd Atbeifm, with refped to him, in not do- ing fo. And if he is not God, we certainly ought not to worfhip him, and are guilty of idolatry in offering it to him. What a vaft Alteration then doth the admitting or deny- ing the Holy Ghofl to be God, apparently make in the Ol^jeci of our Worfhip. That the Son and Spirit have been worr Ihipp'd as God, together with the Father, in all Ages of the Chriflian Church fron^ the Beginning down to this Day, has been often maintain'd by proper Evidence, from the befl Ancient Writers of Ecdefiaftkal Affairs ; and is allow'd to be Fad, with refped to moftpf thofe Ages, even by thofe who pretend the Fad was otherwife in the two or three firfl Centuries, The Proof of this Point againft thofe Pretences, is fallen into very good Hands ; and 'till what they have quoted from 'Ju[iin Martyr i Clemens Akxandrinm, and o- thers^ (285) thers, is fairly difproved, I fhall beg leave to fuppofe it to be true, with refpect to thofe, as well as after Ages. If therefore the Ho- ly Ghoft is not God, what have we and the Churches of Chrid: in all Ages been doing, in paying divine Honour to that Deity, which includes Father, Son, and Holy Ghoic ? And how melancholy is the Thought, that God's People fhould be generally left to the Foi/y Siud Impiety of Worihipping the Son and Spi- rit as God, if the Father only is tiie true God ? On this Suppofition, all their Worlhip has been Mockery and Delujion, an Affront to God, and a Cheat upon themfelves ; and the In[crip' ^o^^ ,7, tion, 10 rHE UNKNOH^N GOD, which 23. was found on an Altar at Athens, mufl be written-. on the Devotions of the Chriftiaii Church, as well as of the Heathen World. But can it be thought, that after the true God has been fo plainly declar'd, as he has been in the Scripture, the Church (Lould ne- verthelefs live in fuchSuperflition, Ignorance and Idolatry, as to worfhip an unknoivn God ftill, or to worfliip fuch for God, who i^y Na- Gal.4.8. ture are not God, which was the very Ido- latry of the Heathen ? Can we imagine that that Gofpel, which was fpread among the Gentiles to banifh their Polytheifm out of the i xhef. World, and to bring them to know 2LV\dferve i. 9. the living and true God, fhould be fram'd at^ ^^^ fuch a rate by the only wife God, v/ho is jea- ^"^^ '^" lous of his Glory, as to lead his People,lcarn'd and unlearn'd, thro' all fucceeding Genera- tions, into an idolatrous Worfhip of fuch for God, as are not by Nature God ? Can we fuppofe that God fhould never once Caution them againft this Inftance of it ; but fhould Countenance them with his gracious Pre- fcncej fence, even while they live in the conftant Pradice of fiich a flagrant Sin } Or can we think fo very diihonourably of the Holy Ghoft as tofuppofe, that the Church fiiould be brought by his Condud and Influence to pay divine. Worihip to himfelf, and that moji of all, when they are mofl: remarkably under his Influence, and yet that he really is not the God to whom it is due ? Thefe are all Suppofitions fo foully refleding on, and injurious to the only true Jeho'vah, to the Per/on and Office of I Tim. I. the Holy Ghofl:, to the glorious G off el of the V' , yiejf^(i ^^'^y ^^'^^ to the Generation of his Chil- j[^*^^' dren ; Suppofitions fo contrary to the Faith- fulnefs,Care and Loi'^e of Chrifl: to the Church, fo contrary to the Integrity and Goodnefs of the Holy Spirit^ and fo contrary to the many exceeding great and precious Promifes of the Gofpcl, in reference to the Church's Prefer- vation and Guidance in Thingsof the great- eft Moment, that nothing Ihort of the clear- eft Demonftration fhould make us give them the leaft Entertainment. But if the Holy Ghoft is God, all thefe (Locking Suppofitions are at once removed : And it will then appear, that the Care and Rindnefs of God to his Church, has kept it from fetting up any other God b^/ides him- felf ; that the Gofpel has anfwer'd its de- fign'd End, in turning us to the only living and true God; that the blefled Spirit has aded the part of the Spirit of Truths in leading the Church to worfhiphimfelf, together with the Father and Son, as the one God of whom that Gofpel is the Revelation to us> and that Pf.14. 5. (^Oii ^-f ^^ tl^^ Generation of the Right eom. Upon this Foot only we are fiife, and may be at reft in ( 287 ) in our felves, with refped to the adorable Objed whom we worfhip. 2. If the Holy Ghoji is not God, we lofe thi EFFICACY AND CLORTofth^ ORDINAN- CES of Gofpel-J/Vorfljip, All Ordinances ot Worfhip are appointed of God, not only for his Honour in the World, but likewife as the Means of Grace, for Vouchfafements of his fpecial Prefence to his People, that in them they may commune with him, and enjoy him here, 'till he fhall take them up to the neareft Communion with him, and fulleft Enjoyments of him, in his Glory hereafter. This Prefence of God with them is by his Spirit ; and the Prefence of that Spirit is the Prefence of God himfelf Thus his People always efteem it ,• as fuch they long and pray for it; as fuch they value it, when thay are favcur'd with it ; as fuch they la- ment the Lofs of it, when it withdraws from them ; and as fuch Chrift reprefented it, when he fpoke of his Spirit's dwelling in his Difci- pies, and thereupon added, that his Father Jch. 14, and himfelf would make their abode with them. i^> X7» When the Spirit is prefent with us, the Fa-^5« ther and Son being the fame God with him, are prefent with us too. Tho' one of thofe divine Perfons may more immediately ope- rate in an Ordinance than another, and the bleffed Spirit is ufually reprefented as doing fo ; yctt\\Qiv Nature or Eflence being they/2;w£', they can't be divided or feparated in Prefence or Operation. Hence, when we are called the Temple of God in whom he dwells, the Apoftle interprets it by his Spirit's dwelling in us, which intimates that the Spirit's dwel- ling is God's own dwelling in us. Know ye i Cor, ?. not that ye ars the Temple of God, and that the i<5. Spirit C 288 ) Spirit of God dwelleth in you ? Accordingly Be^ Chap. 6.iievers are called the Temple of the Holy Ghofi^ ^' as well as of God. They are alfo faid to be the ^p 1. 2. jj^^i^^^fiQyif^j- Qf^^^jy^^g'^Q^ ]^Y^ the Spirit I And 2 Cor. 6. this is call'd God's own dwelling among them. *6. But if the Holy Ghoft is not God, his dwelling in the Church, and filling the Or- dinances of it with his Prefence, could not be the Prefence of God himfelf. The Ordi- nances themfelves might as well be call'd God's Prefence^ becaufe they are his Appointments^ and the Means of enjoying him ; his Mini^ (iers might as well be call'd God's Prefence^ be- caufe he has fent them, and promifed to be prefent with them in their holy Miniflrations, as the holy Spirit s Prefence is call'd Go^'i Pre- fence^ if he is not God, but only a Creature, whom God fends, with whom he is prefentj and thro' or by whom he conveys his Grace to us, and communes with us. At this rate of thinking there are no Tranfadions between God himfelf and our Hearts, in any Ordi- nancesof Worfliip ; there is no fpecial Prefence of God himfelf with his People in them : But he himfelf is ftill a God afar off, as to his own gracious Workings upon us ; 'only he fends a Creature to fill his Ordinances, and his Peo- ples hearts by means of them,with all thePow- er and Efficacy that is felt or enjoy 'd in them. If God himfelf is not fpecially prefent by his gracions Operations among his People, the Glory of New Te(lament^Worfoip falls vaft- ly fnort of that of the Old, For it was the great Jehovah of Ifrael himfelf that was re- j'jj.^ .^ markably prefent, and appear'd in his otun 3^, '^s.Di^p^^ys of Glory among them. It was he I'KirtcrS.that by hiso:i;;^ Operation filled the Tahrna- lo, Ti. cle and Temple with his Glory, and thereby fiiew'd C 289 ) fhew'd Himfelf to be gracioufly prefent there.' And he condefcended in a gracious manner to meet with, and dwell among the Children £xo. 29. of Ifrael. But if the Spirit is not God, and 43, 45. God is now fpecially prefent with his Church in their Worfhip only as his Spirit is fo, we have loft the Glory of our Worfliip ; and the Gofpel-Adminiftration is not fo excellent above the Old "Tejlament Adminifir at ioHy as the Apo* ftle reprefents it, when he fays. That even z Cor. ^ that which was made glorious, had no Glory in\^* this refpeSi, by reafnn of the Glory that excelleth. For what is the Prefence of the moft glorious Creature among us, to the grand Appearan- ces and gracioufly operating.PrefenCe of the glorious Jehovah himfelf/^ Or what are Ma- nifeftations made by the moft exalted Mini- Jler, to be compared with thofe of the infi- nitely blefled 6*0^ himfelf? But if the Spirit is God, then his dwelling by fpecial Relati- on, and gracious Operation among his Peo- ple, is God's own peculiar abode among them, according to his Promife in the New Tefta- ment, anfwering to that which he made of his dwelling among his People in the Old, faying, / will dwell in them, and walk in them, 2 Cor, 6, and I will be their God, and they fhall be my Peo- *^ • fie. And as this Spirit, who is God, is more eminently prefent in a way of internal Ope- ration on Believer's Hearts in Gofpel-Admi- niftrations, than he was in Old Teftament Ordinances, the Glory of our Worfhip is ptoportionably greater than that of the Old Teftament. And this Glory rifes in propor- tion to the Degrees of the Spirit's Prefence with us. Hence the Apoftle, fpeaking of New Teftament Worfhip, favs, Be not drunk with Eph. 5, U Wine, 18. ( 090 ) iVme, ivberein is excefs ; but be filled with the Spirit. If there is no Communion between God himfelf and our Souls, in his Worihip ; no Imprefs of his own immediate Authority on our Conlciences ; no Intimations from Him^ felf of his Love and Favour in Chrifl to us ; no effedual Workings of his own Power upon our Hearts, all the Apprehenfions his People have had of that fort, have been delufive I- maginations, and all their a(3:ingsof Faith and Love to him, and Defire after him, which they have been direded and influenced unto by thofe Apprehenfions, have been founded upon Enthiijtafm. And yet fuch Enthufiafts they have always been, and can't but defire .ftill more and more to be, let others call them by what odious Names they pleafe. Should we feparate this gracious Prefence of God himfelf from his Worfliip, how low ■would this fink the Glory of it ? And how fenfibly would it abate that holy Awe and Re'verence on one hand, and that Admiration^ Love and Praife on the other, which we pay as to God himfelf, working on our Hearts therein ? Our Communion with God in Ordinan- ces hercj is a Prelibation and Earneft of what we are to have with him in Hea-jen hereafter. The Nature of the Enjoyment is the fn7ne, tho' the manner of it is very different. Hence Pfal. 7g. fays the Pfaimifiy Whom have I in Hewuen but ^5; i^. T^HEEy and there is none upon Earth that 'I de- fire befides 'T'HEE, Mj Flejh and my Heart faileth ; but GOD is thi Strength of my Hearty and my Portion for ever. Surely 'tis God him- felf that is to be enjoy'd in Heaven ; 'tis he that makes up the full Felicities of that glo- rious r 39' ) rious State ; and his Prefence in his Ordinan- ces here, is a fort oF Heaven began upon Earth ; and therefore the Pfalmift adds. It is good for me to D R AW NE AR 1^0 GOD, ver, 28. Accordingly David vents his prefling Defires after Communion with God himfelf in his Worfliip, when he fays, As the Hart panteth ^^^^' 4*» after the Water-brooksy jo panteth my Soul after '^^ ^' THEEy 0 God. My Soul thirftethfor GODjor the living Ged : When Jhall I come and appear before God, This is the common Language of truly gracious Souls. 'Tis God himfelf that they thirft after an Enjoyment of in his V/orfliip ; and nothing fhort of himfelf can fatisfy them. They vahie his Ordinances, as they are di- vine Appointments for his Glory and their Soul's Advantage. But 'tis his own Prefence, which they reckon tnt Crown and Glory oi all Ordinances ; for 'tis only in the Enjoy- ment of him, that they are enabled to glori* ^Y him, or to profit in his ways. They don't take up their Reft in the Prefence of any Be- ing that is not God, or of any M/nifter, Mef- fenger, or Servant of God, under whatever Character he is fent forth from him. But they are fully fatisiied with the Prefence of the Holy Ghofl, becaufe they take that to be the Prefence of God hirnfelf They receive him under the Charader of that Spirit of Gody who is one in Being with the Father and Son, and can't be feparated from them ; and there- fore they reckon that, whenever he comes to commune with their Hearts in the appointed Ordinances of Worfhip, the Father and Son are likewife prefent together with him, and that they have Communion with them all. They expert all the Efficacy of Ordinances U z moft ( 290 moft immediately from the Holy Ghoft ; they look for him to enable them to pray jpirituallyy to hear pofitably^ and to ufe the Seals of the Covenant fiduceally. But the original Ground of all their Expedations of this kind, is the Deity of the Holy Ghoft> as he is that Perfon in the Godhead, who moft immediately exerts its gracious Energy to make the Adminiftrations of Gofpel Or- dinances effedual to them. The Gofpel is I Cor.5. called the glorious Mimftration of the Sfirity 6. B. which Spirit giveth Life, And as it comes to 1 Qo\, z,ns in Demonftration of the Spirit^ fo, and fo 4' only, it comes vvith Power : But this Power of the Spirit, with which it comes, is in the next Words called the Power of God ; I'hat ver. 5. jQ^Y Faith Jhould not fiand in the Wtfdom of Men, but in the Power of God. And at ano- Rom. i.j-i^ej; timt 'tis called the Power of God to Saha- tion, to every one that believes. Yea, the Apo- flle, fpeaking of Gofpel-Miniftrations, af- fures us that all the Increafe of fpiritual Fruits produced thereby, is wholly of God, as the only efficient Caufe of it. Who then is Pauh I Cor.^ Qy r^jfjQ j^ Apolloy but Minifters by whom ye belie- ^ ' '* ved, even as the Lord gave to every Man ? I have planted^ Apollo watered ; but God gave the Increafe, So then neither is he that plahteth any things neither he that watereth ; but God that giveth the Increafe. And therefore, when the Power of the Holy Ghoft is felt in the Ordi- nances of Worihip, to an Increafe of Con- verts, or of Light and Grace in them who are converted, the Soul that feels it, reckons the bleffed Effed is wrought by the Spirit ; Ch*i4. not as a Creature, but as God ; It falling 2S« downy will worjhip Gody and report that God is among that People of a "f rut k. ( 293 ) If the Holy Ghoft is God, there is iiQ Doubt but he can fill all Ordinances with a Glory, and can commune with our Hearts to the moft valuable Purpofes, wherever we are attending on them ; and his Prefence with us therein may, in the propereft Senfe, becaird the Prefence of God himfelf with us. And O what an Honour is this to Duft and A- {h^s, that God himklfwil/ indeed dwell on Earth 'Kin. 8. among them ! But if the Spirit is not God/^' his People in vain expeft that his Prefence can be with them in their feveral AfTemblings together, and in their private Retirements at numberlefs different Places for religious Wor- Ihip. And if they had his Prefence, yet, in cafe he is not God, they would but amufe themfelves with pleafant Dreams, if they fhould take that to be the Prefencaof God himfelf. And if the Prefence of the Spirit is not God*s own Prefence with them, they muft never exped to have God's own gracious Prefence in his Worfhip at all, becaufe his gracioufly operating Prefence with his Peo- ple is no otherwife than by his Spirit, as he moves upon their Hearts. What a vaft Al- teration muft this different State of the Cafe make in the Glory, Efficacy and Delight of Qof - pel- Ordinances > When God was difpleafed with Ifrael for their Idolatry in worftiipping the Golden Calfy he refufed to go up with them to the Land of Canaan by his own glorious Appearances among them ,• but inftead of that, he told 'em he would fend an Angel, evidently mean- ing a created Angel, to go before them. /, fays Jehovah, will fend an Angel before thee, Exo. ;?, "* unto a Land flowing with Milk and Ho- ^> 3> 4' fiey : For I will not go up in the midjl of thee ;for U 3 thou ( 294 ) thQU an a fliff-neclied People, lefl I conjmne thee in the way. And when the People heard thefe e- vil 'Tidings y they mourn d. Stiff-necked as they were, they could not be fatisfied with the Prefenceof a created Angel inflead of God's own Prefence w.tb them. This, together with other Things that were fpoken againft them, was a jull: Caufe of their Mourning And Mofes was fo fenfibly touch'd and affed- ed with this part of the e^^il 'Tidingi^ that he coa d not reft without eitncftly interceding with the Lord to rev^erie it. And Mojes fad \\ii,j $,unto tie Lordy See, thoufayeft unto me, bring up this People, and thou hafi not let me know whom thou wilt fend with t/^c'.— •««— if jTHT PRE- SENCE go not witk) me, Larry us not up hence. Such (ort of me!:incholy Tidings God's Peo- ple would take diem o be, if they were to be told from God, that he himfelf would withdraw from them in his Ordinances of Worfhip, but yet would fend a moft excellent Spirit, whom he had created on purpofe to be with them in his own iflt ad. O how would Ter. 3. 4. they I'everally /row that time cry unto him. My Father, thou art the Guide of my Teuth ? Let me have thine own blelfed Prefence, tho' I have none but thine. That alone is fuiScient to fatisfy me ; but without that, all the Crea- tures which thou haft made cannot content me. As the Prefence of no Creature, how excellent foever, could fatisiy Mofes ; fo the Prefence of the holy Spirit would not fatisfy true Believers, if they really thought that he is not God, and that they fhould have no o- ther fpecial Prefence of God with them, than what conftfts in the Prefence of chat Spirit. Surely then the Doctrine of the Godhead of the C 295 ) the Holy Ghofl miift be of great Importance on this account. Seventhhy This Dodrine is of great Im- portance with refpeH to the POWER OF GOD- LINESSy or to all true Jpiritucil ReUgion m Heart and Lije, All true Religion begins in the Heart, and •from thence fpreads and diffufeth it felf thro' the whole Life and Converfation. Outward Pretences to it;, how fpecicas foever they may appear, are little worth, unlefs they proceed from truly fpiritual and gracious Principles within. 'Tis the hidden Man of the Heart*' j Pet.?. which is in the fight of God of great Price. And, 4. ^ a Man thinks in his Hearty fo is he. Hence Pfov,i> what Chrift fays with r^fpedto Dodrines, is ^' like wife applicable unto Practice. Either make j^iat. 12. the Tree good, and his Fruit good ; or elfe make 5S. the T'ree corrupt, and his Fruit corrupt ; for the T^ree is known by his Fruit. And, Do Men ga- Chap. 7. ther Grapes of 1 horns y or Figs of T'hi files ? Even ^^» ^"' fo every good Tree i^ringeth forth good Fruit ; but a corrupt Tire bringeth forth evil Fruit. The Mind muft be in fome meafnre inlightened in Eph. i. the Knowledge of Cbrifty to underftand the way ^1^ ^^• of Peace, Comfort and Holinefsby him; for that the Soul be without Knowledge y it is not goody pr, as it might be rendered, without Know- ^^^'^-'^9' ledge the Soul is not good. Accordingly the^* faving Work of God's Grace upon us begins in opening the Eyes of our Minds, and turning ^^-^ ^,5. ^ from Darknefs to Light. The Heart mull alfo be brought over to what we know, fo as to approve of it, and to chufe to ad accor- ding to it. Andthisy fays the Apoftle, I pray Phil.1.9 that your Love may abound yet 7nore and more in ^^> ^*' Knowledge^ and in all Judgment^ that ye may U 4 approve ( 596 ) approve things that are excellent^ that ye may he f.ncere^ and viithout offenccy till the Day ofChrift ; being filled with the Fruits of Righteoufnefsy which are by Jefm Chrifi, unto the Glory and Praife of Cal.5.6. ^od. Faith zvorkmg by Love, muft be the Prin- ciple of all our Holinefs and Obedience .* For in Chrifi Jefm neither Circumcijion availeth any thing, nor Uncircumcifion ; but Faith which work- eth by Love. The Glory of God muft be our ^ higheft &i in it : Whether ye eat or drink, or ^,^ ' 'whatever ye doy do all to the Glory of God. The Power by which we perform all holy Duties, muft be derived from Chrift, by Virtue of Joh. 15. our Union with him, without whom we can do S' nothing in a fpiritual manner ; and the Accep- tablenefs of the Performance muft be looked I Pet 2 ^^^ ^ y ^^ Chrift : To zvhom coming as to a li- 4, 5/ '^i^g Stone, di fallowed indeed of Men, but chofen ofGody and preciousy ye alfo m lively Stones are built up a fpiritual Houfe, an holy Prieflhood, to offer up fpiritual Sacrifices y acceptable to God by ' Jefm Chrift. And the Rule of all this is the written U/ord of God, to which all Notions and Praftices, that concern our living to God, muft be reduced, as to their proper Stan- Ifa. 8. dard. To the Lawy and to the 'Teflmony ; if ^o» they fpeak not according to this Wordy it is becaufe there is no Light in them. This is the plain Ac- count that the Scripture gives of true Holinefj^ and Obedience. This is real pradical and fpiritual Religion ; and the more we abound in Obfervances of thefe Things, the more . the Power of Godlinefs prevails in Heart and Life. The whole of this Work is begun and car- ry'd on in us by the Holy Ghoft, by his fpecial Agency in us, and efFedual Influences upon us. Whatever of this fort is found in any of us, ( 297 ) us, or truly praflifed by us, is the Fruit of the Spirit, as the Apoftle reprefents in many Inftances of it. 7^/je Fruit of the Spirit is Love, Gal. 5. Joy, Peace, Long'fufferirig,Gentlenefs,Goodnef,'^^y^l- Faith, Meeknefs, "Temperance, And, The Fruit £ h o of the Spirit is tn all Goodnefs, and Righteoufnefi, ^ and Truth. Accordingly the whole of a Chri- ftian's Life and Walk in Holinefs before God, is called a living and walking in the Spi- Gal. 5. rit. And 'tis made the Defcription of the ^5. Life of true Believers, that they mind or fa- Rom. 8, vour the things of the Spirit ; and walk not after 4, 5. the Flejh, but after the Spirit, or according to his Dictates to them, and Influences upon them. But if the Holy Ghoft is not God, how can he be every where prefent thus to didate to, and influence the Hearts of Believers, in all Places at one and the fame Time, fince none but God is Omniprefent? If he is not God, how can he know our Hearts, and find out all the Deceitfulnefs of them, that he may fet 'em to rights, and influence them unto fpi- ritual and holy Exercifes,fince God only knows j Kiu^ys the Hearts of the Children of Men, and finceS. 59. none but he canfearch out their Deceitfulnefs, and deal with them, either in a way of Mer- ^^^' ^^' cy or Judgment, according to their IJ^orks ?^' Hence David appeal'd to God, as the only Omnifcient Being, to fearch his Heart, in or- ppa.rjp. der to cure the evil of it, and to lead him in z?,'24/ the ivay everlafiing. If the Holy Gholf is not God, how can he mafl:er all the Difficulties that lie in the way of his Work, and carry it on to Vidory and Triumph, in Defiance of all the ftrong and united Oppofition of the World, the Flefh, and the Devil, that lies againfl it ? A little Obfervation of our own ( '98 ) own Experience, and of the Scripture-account of the manifold Difficulties that muft be over- come, before our Hearts can be effedually brought over to God, and thorowly engaged to live a right unto him, may convince us that, unlefs the Spirit is God^ this Work muft needs mifcarry ni his Hands, as it depends on him. Such is thc/tnfal Darknefs and Error of our Minds, their Ignorance of fpirituai Things, their grofs Miftakes about *em, and proud Reafonings againfl 'em, that none but the infinite God himfelf can fill us with faving Light, and filence all our Cavils. Accord- ly the Apoftle fpeaks of it as his peculiar 2 Cor. 4. Work, when he fays, GOD who 'commanded ^r the Light to fiine out of Darknefs, hath [hined in our Hearts, to give the Light of the Knowledge of the Glory of God in the Face of Jefm Chrift. Ch. 10. And, 'The l4^eapons of our War] are are mighty 1» 5* THKO' GOD to the pulling down offirpng Holds ; cafling down Imaginations^ and every high thing that exalteth it felf againfl the Knozuledge of God^ and bringing into Captivity every "Thought to the Obedience of Chnfl, Such is our natural Infi^ delity, with refped to all that God fays in his Word, efpecially concerning the way of Life and Salvation alone by Jefus Chrifl, and fuch is our Inability to believe to the favingof our Souls, that nothing lefs than the revealing God's own Almighty Arm, can work up our Hearts to an effedual Faith in the Lord Je- Ifa.§3.i.fus. Hence fays the Prophet, Who hath belie* ved our Report ? And to whom is the Arm of the Job. 6. Lord revealed ? And, No Man can come to me^ 44- fays Chrift, except the Father, which hath feni ?ne, draw him. Such is our Enmity and Re- bellion of Heart againft God and Godlinefs, that ( ^99 ) that none but God himfclf can fubdue them, and make them throughly willing to yield ta him. T'hy People [hall be willing in the Day o/^ Pfa, i j.o». tHT POWER, Such is the natural Madnefs 5- of our Hearts in the way of Sin, fo defpe- t2i.tc\y fet in its to do evil, fo confirmed in the Love and Practice of it by long continued Cuflom, zndio fi:ifi--neLkedj ftiibborn:, 2i\\a har^ dendy are they againft the Fear of God, in Defiance of ail his Methods of Mercy and Judgment towards us, that none but God can tame and turn them to himfelf. Ephrahns (sid. Experience of this, made him apply to God alone ibr a Recovery, asonefenfible that none but he could do it. -I have ftirely heard ]^' i*» Ephraifn bemoaning himfelf tlms ; 'Thou hafl chafiifed me^ and I was chafiifedy oi n Bullock unacciiflomed to the Yoke : Ttirn THOU me^ and I ]hall be turned ; for thou an the Lord my God, Such is the Difordcr ofourAffeBions ; their Self ijhnefs and Carnality ; their AddiBsdnefs to Things of Flefh and Senfe ; their infatiable Appetites and eager Purfuits after them, that none but God himfelf can t rn their Byafs ; make us ready to deny our feives ; and, when the Circum (lances of Things require it, to forfake all and follow him. IVitb Men this is Mar. lo. i?npofftblcy but not voith God ; for with God all^l' Things are poffible, as Chrifl argued with re- fped to this very Work. Such are the S}7ares and Allurements of this prefent evil World, to intangle our Minds, Hearts, and Affections, to feed our fenfual and irregular Appetites, to bribe us into the way of Sin by its deceit- ful flattering Pleafures, and to imboldcn us therein by its numerous Examples of the V/icked, who profper in their way ; and fucb ( 3CO ) fuch is the Artifice^ Powery and Vigilance of the Devih to play the World upon our Paf- fions, in all its Terrors on one hand, and de- lufive Charms on the other, to blind our Minds, flrengthen our Prejudices againft God and his Ways, and to blow up our Corrup- tions ; that nothing kfs than the Power of God himfelf can difintangle us from all thefe Snares, and burft thefe Cords afunder, by which the ftrong Man arm'd, as well as our own perverfe and fenfual Hearts, bind us down in the ways of Sin. Hence the Apo- flle fpeaks of it as the Work of God himfelf Col I. ^o deliver m from the POWER of Darknefsy 13/ and tranjlate us into the Kingdom of his dear Son, Now fince all this Work requires Omni- potence to effed it, and fince (as appears from this and fome preceding Difcourfes) that Omnipotence is never apply 'd for this Pur- pofe, unlefs the Holy Ghoft exerts it, I don't fee how we can exped it from him, an^ con^ fequently how we can expect it at all, if he is not God. For how can he put forth the Almighty Power of God upon us, unlefs he is himfelf God ? How can he fpeak in the Majefty and Authority of God to our Hearts and Confciences, and make 'em melt, and tremble, and fall down in Subjectipn before him ? How can he do that in us eifedually in a Moment, which no Argumens taken from God's Love or IVrath, Heaven or Hell^ Duty or Interejl, tho' frequently urged with the ut- moft Skill and Pathos^ could ever make any thing of before *, yea, and which neither the clofeft Conftderation we could bring our Minds to on one hand, nor the mofl: moving Eocpo^ Jlulations of one fenc from the Dead, on the other^ ( 901 ) other, could ever work within us ? For if^e hear not Mofes and the ProphttSy neither will we Luk. i5. l?e perfwadedy tho one ro[e from the Dead. Surely ^ '• if the blefl'ed Spirit is not God, we in vain exped fuch God-like Operations horn him to make us Ifraelhes indeed, and to advance true fpiritual Religion in our Hearts and Lives. As far as I fee, we mud either fay, that fuch divine and effedual Operations are not to be expeded from him, or elfe that he is God. To fay fuch Operations are not to be exped- ed from him, is in effect to fay they are not to be expected at all, fince (as has been fhewn) i£ we are partakers of them. He is their pro- per and moft immediate Author. And to fay they are not to be expeded at all, is to con- tradid the Current of Scripture, to take off om Dependence on God, to turn our Prayers in- to a Mockery of him, and to take up with a Religion that will bring no Honour to God, or Advantage to our own Souls. If there- fore we deny that the Holy Ghoft is God, we muft fet our Wits on work either to deny, or to explain away the proper Meaning of all the Texts on which our Expectations of di- i)ine Influence are founded, and muft drudge on in Religion without any Hopes of effectual Ailiftance ; or elfe muft wholly abandon all Attempts of being truly fpiritual and holy, according to Gofpel-Principles, in the Prac- tice of it. But if the Holy Ghoft is God, he can ea- fily rule, influence, and make ImprefTions upon our Hearts, as hepleafes^ for he- is Ornnifcientj Ornniprefenty and Omnipotent, as God, and fo every way ftifficient for this Work, how great foever the Difficulties and Oppofi- C 302 ) Oppofition may be that lie againft it. This lottv Apprehenfion of him frees our Minds from ail Perplexity la afcribing it unto him ; and emboldens a holy Confidence, that our Dependences on him, and Expedations from him, are not in vain, while we look for his divine Operations to promote the Power of Godlinefs in us, according to the Promifes. Hereby we may be fu'ly aifured, that there is an All-fuffuuncy in his gracious Agency to keep Religion pure and lively within, and to enable us to difplay its Beauties luithouty in all manner of holy Converfation and Godli- nefs. Hence, Eighthly^ This Dodrine is of great Impor- tance ivith refpeB to the HAPPT ISSUES of aH our Religion-, unto our frefent Comfort ^ and eter- nal Bleffednefs. This evidently follows from feveral of the foregoing Particulars. For if the Godhead of the Holy Ghoft is of great Importance with refpect to the divine Authority of the Scrip- ttire-i with refpect to our Union and Communion with Chrift, and with God in him, with re- fpect to the ObjeEi of Worfhip, and Efficacy of its Ordinances, and with refped to all true fpiritual Religion in Heart and Life, it can't but be of the like Importance with refped to our prefent Comfort in the Ways of God, to our PerfeveraHce therein, and to the/*«^/blef- fed ifiliesof our walking in them. The Re- ligion that ftands on /j^te Foundations, that leaves us at a Diflance and Eftrangement from God in Chrift, that is idolatrom in its Objed, iveak and jnefeBual in its Ordinances, dt{ii'' tute of inzvard gracious Principles of fpecial Faith ( 3^5 ) Faith and Love, and not exemplify d in Acts of Gofpel Obedience in our Lives and Con- verfation, can never withftand the Force of Temptation, afford true folid Peace in the Profeffion of it, nor have any comfortable Iffues in the Day of Death or Judgment. This is not the Religion of the Gofpel ^ this is not the Religion that comes from God, or will be own d and accepted of him ; nor i-s, it a Religion that an awaken'd Confcience can reft fatisfy'd with • and therefore not a Religion that will favingly profit us. And yet \i the Holy Ghoft is not God, this, as far as 1 fee, is all the Religion we can hope to attain to. And this is indeed all that many aim at, who -deny the Deity of the blefled Spirit, and thereupon look on his Operations as ufelefs, and treat all Notions of 'em with Derilion. But there '\% furcly too much Reafon to fear, that to deny the Deity ' and divine Operations of the Spirit, with profane Banter and Revilings of both, h to do define to the Spirit of Grace, And this the Apoftle fpeaks of as a Sin that expofes a Perfon to the fevereft Vengeance of God : Het[d\ ic, that defpifed Mofess Law, died without A 6, ?• the Cafe of Unbelievers, with refpect to their "^ ^* '^• believing and turning to God in Chrifl. For a free and fpecial Influence, tho' of different Confideration, is as neceflary to one, as to ;he Other. But the Promife rcfpeding the X 4 Matter Matter of the Command takes off th^ Diffi- culty in both Cafes, and makes all con/iftent. Hence is the Apoftle's Exhortation and Ar- Phil. 1. giiment to enforce it .• Work out your o-uiaSal-'. ii> '3- uatim ivith Fear and Tremlplifig, For it is God ^vho zvorketh in you, both to. 'will and to do of bts good Pkafure. Hence, Use II. Let the Confideration of the Ne- ceffity of the Spirit*s Operations caution Sinners againfi PRESUMPTION. What has been faid in anfwer to the fore- going Objedion, fhews, that there is no room for any of you to defpair of. the graci- ous and effedual Help of the bleffed Spirit in the ufe of the Means of Grace ; For there is enough in him, and in the free Promifes of the Gofpel, with refped to his Operati- ons, to take off all Difcouragements that may arife in our felves under a Senfe of our own nability and Unworthinefs. But the greateft Danger of Sinners lies in Prefiimpti- on. 'Tis this li\2.x. (lays its Ten Thojifands ; *tisi this that, like an epidemical Difeafe, fweeps away the Multitude, and is the moft com- mon Ruin of thofe that live in a Chriftian Nation. And this principally rifes from flight Apprehenfans oi the Neceffity of the Spirit's; Work upon their Hearts, and from too high an Opinion of their ovjn Power, They fecret-? \y flatter themfelves that they can believe, repent, and turn to. God, v/hen they pleafe ; and accordingly, when Confcience reminds ■em of the great Concerns of another World, they filence it with Promifes, that hereafter they will take Care of their Souls, and do all that is needful to fecure theii: eternal Inter reftsj ( 313 ) refts ; that when they have enjoyed them-* felves a little longer, got thro' the Hurries ot Bufinefs, gain'd comfortable Circumftances in the World, arrived to Tome propofed num- ber of Years, or to be fure before they die, they'll fet about Religion in earneft, and they don't doubt but God will accept their Repentance, and have Mercy upon them then. Their vain Conceits, that a little will do to carry 'em to Heaven, and that they are able at any time to do that little, make 'em ftifie Convictions, put off the vaftly Mo- mentous Affairs of their immortal Souls, and go on prefumptuoufly in the Ways of Sin, till God either righteoiifly gives 'cm up to a judicial Hardnefs of Heart, or (uddenly cuts 'em oft', and fends 'eni down to Hell before " they are aware. But did you duly confider, that Faith and Repentance, or believing in Chrifl; wtth theKom,to,, Heart unto Right eoufne[s, and turning from fin^^* and felf unto God in him, is a Work infi- nitely above your own Power and Will, and can be wrought only by the Power of God himfelf, put forth by his free Spirit upon you; and that this is not ordinarily to be exped- ed, but in the Ways of his Appointments ; certainly you cou'd not dare to negled this great Salvation now, and prefume upon fu- ture Happinefs, as you do. You would be afraid to let prefent Opportunities flip, in which you may have any Hopes-of meeting with this bleffed Spirit, left fuch Opportuni- ties fliould never return again : And you cou'd not but be defirous to fall in with, and purfue all prefent Convidions, Inlightnings, gnd Impr^flionsj left they fhqu'd we^r off a- gaio^ C 3H ) gain, and that fovereign and holy Spirit Ihoird be To provok'd by your Negkds, as never to renew them more. Use III. Is the Godhead of the Holy Ghoft of great Importance with refped to the Glory and Efficacy of Gofpel Ordinances ? ^hen let us look for his Prefence inthem^ as the Prefence of GOD himfelfy to make us frofit by them. A bare Attendance upon Ordinances will not avail us, unlefs we meet with God, and have Heart-Tranfadings with him, through Chrift in them. T^ke heed therefore of reil- ing in an external Performance of the Duty, as too many do, who make it a fort of Atone- ment for former Sins, and a fort of Difpenfa- tion for time to come. But reckon the Op- portunity loft, if you have no Accefs to God, nor gracious Communications from him in it j no divine Inlightenings in your Minds, nor Renewings in your Wills, nor Quickenings in your Affedions : no Exercife of jp^/>/;, Lovey yoyy Repentance, Humility ^ Reverence , or godly Fear -.^no Intimations of God *s Favour in Chrift, no ImpreJJions from him, and no Conformity to him, no Strength againft Sin, nor Enlivenings unto Holinefs. None but God himfelf pre- fent in his Ordinances by his Spirit, who is. God, can convey thefe Bleffings to you, or excite thefe fpiritual Exercifes of Heart in your Approaches to him ; Let therefore God himfelf be the Objed of your Aims and Hopes, and let nothing fatisfy in your Wor- fhip fliorc of him. When you pray, feek an Eph. 2. Accefs to the Father by the one divine Spirit^ iS. thro' the one Mediator. When you hear^ let it; (315) it be with this View, that you may hearv^hat Godfiallfpeak unto you by his Spirit according Pr.85.8, to his Word. When you fing his Praifes, let it be with an Eye to God, that he may ena- ble you to do it with Grace in your Hearts. CoL 3, And when you celebrate the Ordinance of >^* the Lord's Supper, feek Communion with Chrift, and with God in him, by the blefled Spirit ,• and that he as God may feal you to the Eph. 4. Day of Redemption. Look for the Prefence of 5c. " this Spirit as the Prefence of God, in every Ordinance, that you may have the grea- ter Reverence, Admiration and Efleem of him, the greater Confidence in him, the greater Value for his gracious Influ- ences, «nd the greater Satisfadion and Advantage in your holy Fellowfhip with him. And when you are partakers of the FeJloivjhip Phihz.i. of the Spirit, look upon it as God's own con- defcending to commune with you ; fo that you may warrantably fay on that account, "Truly our FelJoxvJhip is nx>ith the Father, and with i Joh. i, his Son Jefus Chrift. 5. Use IV. Upon the whole that has been faid on this Important Subjed, Let m HOLD FAST the Docirtne of the Godhead of the Holy Ghofl. We have abundant Grounds to believe it from what the Scripture fays concerning him, tho* we can't comprehend all that it fays a- bout him. For what can he be but the infi- nitely great and only true God, fince the Scrip- ture affures us fuch Things are fpoken and done by him, which are in other Places ^/'/j-o- priated to the only true God ? How can we believe him to be any thing lefs than, or dif. ferent (gi6) ferent from, the one great and fovereign God.> lince (as has been fhewn) he bears the Names that zvQpeculiar unto God, and are expreiTive of the Nature of God, and fince fuch ^^ht bmesy Wovksy and IVorJhipy are afcrib'd to him, as can agree to none but the only true God ? His divine Attributes C3,nt be feparated from the divine EJfe nee : His divine Operations are the Ads of his divine Attributes ; and the di- vine jVorJhip paid to him, is an Acknowledg- ment of thofe Attrihutesy as they are difplay'd in his divine ^r^j-. Why then fhou'd we doubt but that fuch an one, reprefented un- der fuch infinite and magnificent Charader^, is the great and fovereign God ? Why fliou'd we depart from the common Faith of the Cant. I. Churches, i?.ndforfake the ancient Footfieps of ^' the Flocky and quit a Truth that is built on fuch folid Scriptural Grounds ? Certainly the Evidence on the other fide ought to be irre- fiftible, (which can't be expeded in the Face of (o much Light to the contrary) before we • give up a Point fo well eitablifh'd, and recei- ved on the Foot of a divine Revelation, as this is. If 'twas a Matter of mere Speculationy th^t did not affed the Truthy Power y and Glory, of Chriflian Faith and PraBice, we might be the lefs follicitous about it. Bur,confidering how important a Point of Faith it is, with refpeft to the true God in general, with refped to Chrifiy and the Spirit himfelf in particular; with refped to our Union and Communion with Chrifl, and with God in him ; with refped to the divine Authority of the Scripture, and our Gofpel-M^orfldip, and Obedience according to it; ^nd -with refped to all our dearefl 4ixd eteiv pal C 317) nal Intereftsy we ought to be concern'd about it. If therefore we value the Honour of Gody the Interefl of true and fpiritual Rel'gi^ on, the prejent Profperity, and eternal Bleffed- nefs of our own Souls, we fhou'd be very ten- der of admitting this part of the Wifdom of Ood to be overthro\vn by the Wifdom of this World. A yielding up our Faith in this Point, will be very fatal (as it has generally prov'd) with refped unto many others : And there- fore we fhould keep clofe to the ^iKin M^ords and Meaning of the Scripture, that in its Light we may continue grounded and fettled in Col. i, this Faith, left at length we ihoxxdh^ inoved'^^* n-uiayfrom the Hope of the GoffeL FINIS. f/n t'cn cfTi cn'i ctf> OP Ci7> , CiP c£r> ci?* C/T> cp^ C(?"i <"zP . ciT* CJ^ CfP cJ* i:^ (vp cvj* Lately Printed for John Clark. TiHE Dodrine of the ever blefled Trinity Stated and Defended: By fome Z,oWo« Minifters. [The Introdudion, by the Reverend Mr. Tong. Ghap. I. By the Reverend Mr. Robinson. Chap. II. By the Reverend Mr. Smith. Chap. III. By the Reverend Mr.REYNOLDS.] Thefecond Edit. Pr. is. 6d. The Pfalms of Davidy imitated in the Language of the New Teftament, and apply'd to the Chriftian State and Worfhip. By the Reverend Mr. Isaac Watts. Thefecond Edit. 12°. Pr. is,'6d, A Colledion of Tunes, fuited to the various Me- tres in Mr. Watts's Imitation of the Pfalms of Davidy fit to be bound up with it. To which is added. An Introdudion to Pfalmody, in a new Method ; with feveral Tunes never before publifhed. Pr. ix. A Vindication of the Di (Tenters ; in Anfwer to Dr. Nichols's Defence of the Doctrine and Difci- pline of the Church of England : In Three Parts. I. Containing the Hiftory of Non-conformity. 2. Concerning the Dodrinc of the Church of England. 3. Concerning Difcipline and Modes of Worfhip. By the Reverend Mr. James Peirce. The Second Edition. 8vo. A Vindication of the true Deity of our bleffed Sa- viour : In Anfwer to Mr. Emlyn. By the Reverend Mr. Joseph Boyse of Dublin. The Third Edit. The Hiftory of New-England : Containing an impartial Account of the Civil and Ecclefiaftical Af- fairs thereof, with a new and accurate Map of the Country: And an Appendix, containing their pre- fent Charter, their Ecclefiaftical Difcipline, and their Muni- /. : ^^ PRINCETON, N. J. ^ Division. Section... r ■ r>*^